The Power and the Prophet
ROBERT DON HUGHES
PROLOGUE
ThePower's Gateway
They were mined from the finest veins in the Marsix huge diamonds, each the size of a giant's skull. A
company of war-riors, sworn to secrecy, bore them by horseback around the treacherous southwestern
route. They wouldn't dare enter Dragonsgate with diamonds of this size, for Vicia-Heinox would claim
them for himself. These stones were destined to be the dragon's bane, and that would end the conspiracy
at its begin-ning.
The Man warriors bore them to the scholars of the south, surrendering their treasures in the heartland of
their hated foes. All men were allies now, for there was dragonburn on the land. In the hallways of the
craftsmen, under the learned eyes of the wise, each diamond felt the chisel. Six three-sided pyramids
were carefully cutsix slivers of crystal, each tapering grace-fully to a point, each calibrated to fit
precisely with every other. Then the wise men summoned the powershaper to meld by his magic the six
sharp shards into a single diamond thorn.
There was a human failing. The cost proved too high. Un-willing to pay that price, the sorcerer
improvised. He attacked the dragon alone, wielding the sparkling weapon in his bare hands. The
battlevisible from distant mountaintopsleft the shaper destroyed and the crystal object shattered
once again into six three-sided pyramids. They all were lost for a millen-nium.
Now, a thousand years later, three had been rediscovered.
CHAPTER ONE
Pilgrims Through the Pass
An autumn wind stirred the grasslands of the Westmouth Plain, billowing Pelmen's robe out before him.
He walked briskly toward the east, his head up, his eyes fixed on the jagged peaks of Dragonsgate. He
could have flown. He was, after all, a powershaper; in his altershape, he took on the form of a falcon.
Yet Pelmen was tired of flying. He'd done little else for days. And he was certain the one he sought
would be on footif she was free to travel at all. Once again, Pelmen searched for Serphimera.
Something caught his eye. On the road above him, up in the foothills of the ancient pass, he saw a flash
of powder blue. He knew instantly what it was, and it amazed him. "A sky-faither? Here?" he murmured
and he speeded his already quick pace. His gown was of the same brilliant color, but he'd never before
seen another like it here in this ancient land of warfare and wizardry. It wasn't his wandering ladyshe
still wore the midnight blue of the old Dragonfaith. But it was someone who shared his belief, and, by the
Power, Pelmen wanted to know who.
By the Power! So much of what Pelmen had done in the past few years had been by the Power. Time
and again he'd been summoned to lay down his personal concerns and take up cosmic responsibilities.
Was Serphimera's disappearance a prelude to yet another such adventure? He could hardly tolerate the
thought. Yet if Serphimera's prophecies were trueand she'd never been proved wrong yeta new
burden was even now being placed on Pelmen's shoulders. Because of who and what he was, Pelmen
Dragonsbane could do nothing other than bear it.
He could see the figure above him clearly now, and his curiosity grew. The man clothed in skyfaither
blue slowly an-gled off the road toward the north. Pelmen glanced that way and frowned. There was a
path there, but it led only to a blind canyon. Was this skyfaither camped there? When Pelmen's gaze
flicked back to the blue-clad figure his frown deepened with concern; the man tripped and fell.
He didn't throw out his arms to cushion his fall. Instead, he clutched them to his chest, as if he shielded
something within his robes that was above value and that must be protected at all personal cost. Pelmen
would have raced up to help him then, but there was a shout from the canyon above. Almost without
thought Pelmen drew a shield of invisibility around himself, a spell shapers referred to as "the cloak." He
disap-peared.
There were boys among the rocks, playing at being men. They shouted back and forth, proving
themselves upon one anothera harsh process that could make the mildest of lads brutal for an
afternoon. Suddenly the noise died as they spotted the blue figure climbing toward them. They took his
presence as some kind of challenge. "Halt!" one of the larger boys commanded. When the bluefaither
kept on coming, a ring of lads quickly closed around him. Pelmen felt the threat of violence charge the
atmosphere and he drew near to help. He soon realized he didn't need to bother; as one boy whirled the
skyfaither around and drew back a fist to strike, the man opened his eyes. There were no pupils there, no
irises, no whites. There were only two blank balls of powder blue. The boys all saw it together, and it
sent them shrieking past the invisible Pelmen and down the mountainside. The man threw back his head
and laughed. As the echoes bounced eerily off the canyon walls, Pelmen remembered. He thought he
knew who this might be. He shed his magical cloak of invisibility and spoke.
"You dealt with them easily enough. I shouldn't have wor-ried."
Tahli-Damen grunted in shock and whirled toward Pelmen's voice. "Who are you?" the blind man
demanded.
"A friend."
"All my friends have names," Tahli-Damen growled, his forehead wrinkling in suspicion.
"Where are you going?"
"What's that to you?"
"I'd like to help you."
"Then name yourself!" Tahli-Damen snapped.
Pelmen didn't want to do that just yet. If this man was the one he thought, then Pelmen bore some
responsibility for those hideous powder blue eyes. "That isn't important."
"It is to me!" Tahli-Damen snarled. "Did Wayleeth send you? Well, I'll not go back! You can go tell her
to forget about me! I'm never going back there again!" Tahli-Damen crossed his arms protectively across
his chest. He was obviously con-cealing something within his robes. In his blindness, he was unaware of
how strongly that gesture directed Pelmen's atten-tion to the very object the man was trying to hide.
Pelmen knew at once what it was. "Don't try to block my path!" Tahli-Damen shouted and he started
backing away.
"I won't," Pelmen responded quietly. "But the mountain will."
"What mountain?"
"The one you're walking into."
Tahli-Damen set his jaw. "I'm climbing into Dragonsgate."
"I'd guessed that. Tell me. Have you encountered any pass-ing traffic?"
"There's been no traffic through the pass for a fortnight," Tahli-Damen grunted.
This news surprised Pelmen. It also caused him concern. Since he'd killed the great two-headed dragon,
Vicia-Heinox, the pass had been blocked only onceby the villainous Admon Faye and a company of
slavers. Did cutthroats once again control Dragonsgate? He glanced back at Tahli-Damen's sus-picious
frown and thought of another argument to convince the man they weren't yet in the pass. "Tell me this.
Have you ever known ladseven the bravest or most foolhardy of Man boys to stray so deeply into a
pass frequented by slavers?"
Tahli-Damen dropped his head and thought on that for a moment. "No," he grumbled sourly.
"I'm on my way through Dragonsgate myself, and your news startles me. Perhaps we can be of mutual
assistance."
"Mutual assistance!" Tahli-Damen snorted derisively. "I can't even take the right pathway!"
"I disagree," said Pelmen quietly. "The color of your robe tells me otherwise."
Shock registered on Tahli-Damen's face, and he leaned for-ward, as if to peer through his personal fog.
"You know the significance of this color?"
"I'm gowned as you are. But tell me, how did you learn what it means? Are you from Lamath?"
Tahli-Damen sighed.. "I've spent time in Lamath. I've lived in all three lands. I used to be a merchant,
back in the days of the dragona trading captain. I saw this robe occasionally there. Not very often."
"We were few then," Pelmen muttered.
"And," Tahli-Damen continued, "1 learned a little about the Power. Didn't believe it then, of course."
"But now you do?" Pelmen said, asking by his inflection why the change had come.
"I got in trouble with some wizards. It cost me my sight. That plunged me into depression.
Wayleeththat's my wife did all she could to make me feel better, but nothing could penetrate this
blue fog that surrounds me. Then I had the strang-est experience. I felt that something wonderful and
powerful was suddenly coming through me, as if I was" Tahli-Damen broke off, and he turned his head
in the direction of Pelmen's voice. "Are you sure Wayleeth didn't send you?" he demanded. His harshness
had returned.
"I don't even know your wife," Pelmen responded. "But it sounds as if she cares for you very much."
"Too much," Tahli-Damen grunted. "She thinks too much of me. That's partly why I'm leaving. She'll be
better off without me."
"What's the other reason?" Pelmen asked.
Tahli-Damen shrank back from him, clutching his arms across his chest once again. "Who are you?" he
demanded. "Are you from Flayh?"
Pelmen's eyes narrowed and his jaw clenched. That name bore bitter memories. "No," he growled. "I'm
not from Flayh." He relaxed then and went on more calmly. "If I'm from anyone, you may believe I'm
from the Power. I think it's possible that I'm here to help you by the Power's design."
Tahli-Damen's uncertain frown twisted his features as he barked, "But how can I be sure?"
Pelmen had faced that question himself many times. He had an answer ready. "You can't. But then you
can't be sure there's
any value in that robe you wear. You still wear it. That's why they call us 'faithers.'"
"You expect me just to trust you?" Tahli-Damen asked.
Pelmen thought a moment, then simply said, "Yes."
Apparently his conviction and sincerity were persuasive. After a brief pause, Tahli-Damen said, "Very
well then. Where's Dragonsgate?"
Pelmen took his arm and guided him back down the steep incline. Few words passed between them.
Tahli-Damen fo-cused his attention on not stumbling. Pelmen pondered the irony of this situation. He had
interrupted his quest for the woman who had deserted him in order to help this blind man desert a loving
wife. At least, he guessed Serphimera had deserted him. Wrenching as it was, he could tolerate that
explanation better than the other possibilities that had plagued his waking hours.
Pelmen and Serphimera had spent an idyllic summer. They'd explored the dirt roads of Chaomonous,
lodging with peasants in pleasant cottages or resting beside quiet pools of crystal-clear water, engaged in
a single, endless conversation. She'd told him her whole historyher girlhood, her growing fas-cination
with the dragon cult, those first frightening moments when she'd sensed a responsibility being laid upon
her, and the day she'd felt a new kind of power surge through her soul. Naturally she'd attributed it to the
dragon, and that had inten-sified her devotion. Pelmen had listened sympathetically, his eyes gentle with
understanding love. And he in turn had dis-closed more secrets than he'd ever revealed to anyone else.
She knew him better now than did the prophet Erri, better than his acting companion Yona
Parmibetter even than did Dor-lyth. She'd listened in rapt attention, laughing in the appropriate places,
weeping a time or two. The bond of physical attraction forged between them by competition had been
tempered by this intimacy into love. At last they'd declared it to one another.
But one barrier had remained. "We're not finished yet," she had constantly reminded him. "Neither of us.
I've seen it."
Pelmen knew it was true. Throughout the summer he'd acknowledged to himself that he would have to
confront the wizard Flayh. Even so, he'd seen no reason why that should separate them.
She'd left him resting beneath an oak at the edge of the Great South Fir, saying she was going to hunt
berries. He'd
waked hours later to find the daylight departed and Serphimera still gone. He'd started his search calmly;
but as the long hours of evening passed into dark night and on toward dawn, he'd lost control of himself
and grown frantic. He'd taken his falcon form and, for the next three days, had swept back and forth
over the dense forest on the wing, punctuating each long turn with a sharp, fierce cry of frustration.
Despite his enhanced vision and the advantage of flight, Pelmen never found a trace of her. It was as if
she'd vanishedand no one could disappear except through the intervention of a powershaper!
These thoughts led him back again to the dark door of Flayh. What could the man do now? Clearly
Flayh's powers exceeded those of all the shapers Pelmen had ever known. What were the man's limits?
Had Flayh even found them himself? Was Flayh somehow responsible for this new blockade of
Dra-gonsgate? As they headed up into the pass Pelmen probed his companion for more information.
"You said there's been no traffic through here for several weeks. Have you heard any rumors to explain
it?"
"Only rumors. The men of the House of Uda pride them-selves on being cautious. They prefer that
fiction to admitting their own cowardice."
"Yet you show little cowardice yourself, braving the leg-endary Dragonsgate alone and without sight."
"What do I have to fear?" Tahli-Damen murmured bitterly. "My House thinks I'm crazy. I've lost all
honor there. My wife treats me as an invalid, smothering me with affection. I've lost my sight, so I judge
myself poor material for slavers. You have more to fear from them than I."
"Perhaps," Pelmen acknowledged, the deadly tone in his voice making clear his opinion of slavers. "Yet I
wonder if it's those whom we'll encounter. Cutthroats have blocked the pass before, but they never cut
traffic off entirely. They make more money by controlling passage than they could by stopping it. Evil as
they are, I'm expecting to meet something more omi-nous than slavers."
"But what could be more"
As if in answer to that unfinished question, they heard above them the double-throated roar that had
chilled men's blood for centuries. It echoed off the canyon walls. It thundered down upon them as
palpablv as an avalanche Tahli-Daman's
about his total lack of fear melted away, and he crumbled to his knees in terror. He'd been a trading
captain. He knew that angry scream. Vicia-Heinox, the two-headed dragon, hovered in the air above
them.
The scream stiffened the hairs on the back of Pelmen's neck and knotted his body with tension, but he
didn't cower away. He turned his eyes up to stare at the monstrous beast and said, "Who would have
guessed it? The dragon."
"But Vicia-Heinox is dead!" Tahli-Damen wailed.
"Yes," Pelmen muttered. "The dragon is dead."
Vast jaws opened as one head shrieked in fury, "Who is this who dares trespass my domain?"
"Speak!" the other head demanded. "I asked you a ques-tion!"
"And I shall have an answer!" finished the first.
Pelmen propped his hands on his hips. "Why is it so im-portant that you know our names?"
"What?" one head thundered.
"You dare to answer me with impertinence?" the other roared.
"Please don't anger it!" Tahli-Damen begged. "I know this dragon! We'll be eaten!"
"I very much doubt that," Pelmen muttered. "Stay close to me," he told Tahli-Damen, but his words were
drowned by the dragon's bellow.
"1 always learn the names of those I swallow! It adds pi-quancy to the flavor!"
The other head seemed suddenly puzzled, perhaps even annoyed. "Pardon," it mumbled, "but 1 think I
recall that I am to swallow the next morsel!"
"But of course I am!" the first head snapped. "1 always get the next morsel!"
"Why are you haunting this pass?" Pelmen shouted. "Be-gone!" He noticed then that the blind bluefaither
was crawling away on his hands and knees.
"Haunting the pass?" one head sniffed.
"Begone?" the other snarled.
"1 live here!" the first trumpeted.
"You don't live anywhere. You don't live at all. You're dead, Vicia-Heinox, and I want you to stop
pretending oth-erwise!"
"I am dead?' the two heads chorused in unison.
In that moment something happened to Pelmen that both frightened and elated him. He was seized from
within by that which he knew as the Power. All shaper abilities drained from him, replaced by that
incredible sense of being shaped. Guided from without, he reached down to grab Tahli-Damen by the
collar and hoisted him to his feet while calling aloud, "Yes! You're dead!" Quickly he bent to whisper in
Tahli-Damen's ear. "Stand up, spread your legs and throw your arms out wide. When I say fall, fall
backward."
"That's the most ridiculous statement I've ever heard!" the head named Vicia howled.
"And I've heard all the ridiculous notions of a thousand years of men!" Heinox added noisily.
"Nevertheless, it's true. You were divided by Pelmen the player, and slain by Pelmen Dragonsbane!"
"Pelmen!" both heads screamed with deadly malice and they struck.
"Fall," Pelmen ordered, but he needn't have, since Tahli-Damen was already falling backward in a dead
faint. There was a sudden rush of wind off the plain behind them, and the two bluefaithers were suddenly
sky-born.
"Pelmen!" the heads howled again, this time from a hundred feet below them. But the dragon didn't give
chase. Pelmen thought he knew why.
"Wake up. We need to be moving."
Tahli-Damen opened his eyes to face the eternal blue fog. He had no idea where he was, the time of
day, or who was speaking. He could feel a brisk breeze on his face, but that told him little. His sense of
smell was dominated by the aroma of meat roasting over a fire. A warm, dripping chunk of it was thrust
into his hand, and he brought it to his mouth without a thought. He was hungry, and it smelled delicious.
The taste did not disappoint him. He swallowed with a gulp and grunted, "Where are we?" His mind had
cleared enough to remember the stranger and his assistance through Dragonsgate. Suddenly the memory
of that shocking encounter in the pass flooded his thoughts, and he trembled as the man answered his
question.
"We're several miles within Lamath, at the edge of the Tellera Desert."
"The dragon! What about the dragon!" Tahli-Damen shouted.
"What dragon?" the other man replied calmly.
"Vicia-Heinox! If it spots us from the sky"
"The dragon is dead."
"Butbut we talked to it!"
"We talked to something. Or someone. But I have it on good authority that the particular beast you
mention is very dead. There are more important things to worry about than being spotted by a dead
dragon."
"How did we get past it?" Tahli-Damen quailed. His terror didn't prevent him from gobbling the chunk of
meat. As soon as the last of it disappeared into his mouth, another slab was shoved into his hand.
"Do you believe in miracles?" the relaxed stranger asked him.
"I... guess I could," Tahli-Damen admitted.
"Then that settles it. There's plenty of that meat here for you. Eat all you canwe've got a long walk
ahead of us."
"The desert," Tahli-Damen mumbled as he chewed.
"A seven-day walk, at least. Or seven nights. Even in au-tumn 1 prefer to take the desert when the sun's
gone elsewhere."
Tahli-Damen nodded grimly and swallowed. Crossing the desert had loomed as a far greater obstacle
than had Dragons-gate. But then, he hadn't been expecting a dragon.
"Of course, we could make it in two and a half days on horseback."
Tahli-Damen was shocked. "A bluefaither? Riding?"
"I don't recall the prophet forbidding it," his companion said breezily.
"I've.. .just never thought of that before," Tahli-Damen admitted.
The stranger laughed. "Then think of it, by all means!"
"But where can we"
"You mentioned your House and your cautious kin. I know you say you've lost honor there, but surely
not so much that they would deny you a pair of ponies. Your Lamathian way-castle isn't farwhy not go
ask?"
The idea made splendid sense. Tahli-Damen didn't really want to walk across the desert. "Lead me to
it."
They found the castle within the hour, and Tahli-Damen walked inside the gates alone. His relatives
suggested that he at least stay the night, then tried to constrain him when he
refused, but at last they let him go, along with a couple of horses. In fact, they were relieved when he
left. His blindness made them uncomfortable. After all, he'd lost his sight by meddling with sorcerers, and
merchants took a dim view of that sort of thing. Besides, he was crazy. His ridiculous blue garment
proved it.
"Ah," the stranger greeted him pleasantly as he led the horses out the gate. "I told you we could be of
some mutual benefit."
"I hardly see why you need a horse," Tahli-Damen said, a bit suspiciously. "Why not just ride the wind?"
"You know, that's the trouble with miracles. They're great when they happen, but you just can't depend
on them." He helped Tahli-Damen climb astride his steed.
The blind merchant grunted. "I had thought it more magic than miracle."
"You take me for a powershaper?"
"I don't know what to take you forexcept a friend. You've proved yourself to be that. But should you
be a powershaper, I'd rather not travel with you. My experiences with shapers have not been good."
"I see," the other man said as he climbed onto his horse.
"I don't," Tahli-Damen said pointedly, "and powershapers are the reason. That one you mentioned,
Pelmen, for all his heroics, has proved himself nothing but a menace!"
"You'd be surprised how many times I've heard those very words," the other man muttered as he took
Tahli-Damen's reins and gently nudged the flanks of his own mount.
"He's the man who caused my blindness!" the merchant called as they cantered forward, then broke into
a gallop.
"Perhaps he would change that if he could," his partner called back.
Tahli-Damen clung to the saddle horn and gazed ahead into the blue. He didn't respond for a while. At
last he shouted, "I'm not sure, now, if I'd like my sight back. I learned so much by losing it."
"Well, as I said before: You can't count on them, but there are miracles."
The desert breeze, raised to a wind by their riding in the face of it, chapped Tahli-Damen's lips and
watered his sky blue eyes He closed them and clung more tightly to the saddle.
He said no more, and his companion offered no further con-versation. He imagined the nighttime sky
above them as their mounts carried them deeper into the Tellera Desert.
There was something reassuring about the emptiness of this place. He'd remarked on it every time he'd
crossed it and he'd made many trips in his years as a captain of caravans. He liked the desert's brooding
silence and the way the flatness of the distant horizon added stature to the horse and rider. He found a
peculiar grandness in being the tallest object visible between the earth and the open sky. While he
couldn't see the horizon, he knew it was there, stretching out before him like a sandy ocean, as flat, as
empty as
The blow knocked him from his saddle, hurling him to the ground with a crunch. His scream never had
time to form. There was the odor everywhere of desert dogs, of fetid breath, and of terror. One beast
leaped astride his chest and slavered in his face as another ripped at his gown. Still another batted his
head with a heavy paw. He'd been mauled by a dog before and thus had a horror of them already. But
these were no ordinary dogs. "Show!" one growled in his ear. "Where!" an-other barked. "Now!" a third
bayed at the sky, and the word turned into a horrible elongated howl. He fought them off, flailing his arms
and rolling onto his stomach to shield his treasure beneath him. This only incensed the pack, and some
began to burrow under him, raking his sides with their claws. Others ripped savagely at his back. Now
he screamed, screamed again, and screamed yet a third time as the high, fierce screech of a
fast-approaching bird of prey shattered the desert peace still further. He'd already given himself up for
dead and was bewailing the injustice of dying as the dinner of a pack of desert dogs, when the whole
pack scattered at a run. He heard the falcon screech again, at some distance now, then heard the fast
beat of powerful wings churning toward him, over his head, and away in the opposite direction. The
Tellera resumed its placid, silent character as if nothing out of the ordinary had happened.
Desert dogsreal desert dogsdid not attack human trav-elers. Tahli-Damen doubted these were
dogs at all, and the thought terrified him. But his dread and dismay rested not upon the attack of these
weird dogs alone, but also on the shape taken on by his rescuer. He had suspected it earlier, but forbade
himself to believe it. Now he knew with certainty the identity of his traveling companion. He couldn't
move from the place where he'd fallen. Had he been able, he would have burrowed into the sand.
"Let me help you up," his companion said quietly.
Tahli-Damen made no move to respond. "You're Pelmen."
The stranger sighed. Instead of hoisting up the blind blue-faither, he sat beside him in the sand. "Are you
surprised?"
"Not surprised," Tahli-Damen mumbled into the earth. "Just terrified."
"You'd thought taking the sky blue robe would free you from the influence of powershapers."
"I had hoped," the blind man said mournfully.
"Hmm." Pelmen nodded. "I thought that too, once. But as long as there are powers to shape, then
shapers will use them to their selfish, evil ends."
"So you battle powers with powers," Tahli-Damen said bit-terly. "And I am, again, between you!"
"It's either be between us or be alone with the dogs of Flayh. It wasn't me they attacked. It was you."
"To get at you," the merchant said evasively.
"No. To get that pyramid of crystal that hangs around your neck."
Tahli-Damen clutched the object to him. "So now you'll take it away, instead."
Pelmen snorted. "If I'd wanted it, I would have it already. You slept for several hours this afternoon,
remember?"
"Why didn't you take it, then?"
"I supposed that the Power we serve has given you some instructions concerning it. Am I right?"
Tahli-Damen responded grudgingly. "I've been sent to give it to the Prophet Lamath."
"Then I suggest we be on our way. If we stay here, those doglike demons will be backand not even a
powershaper has limitless energy."
Tahli-Damen felt himself being pulled to his feet and was led across the sand. He was relieved to hear
the stamping of his horse and to feel the animal's strong back come under him as Pelmen helped him up.
He'd feared that the horses were lost. After a moment of silence, Tahli-Damen got up the nerve
to ask a hesitant question. "Do you know the Prophet of La-math?"
"You might say that," Pelmen muttered. Then he grabbed the reins of Tahli-Damen's pony, and they
were off again through the desert.
By the time the sun rose on their third day of travel, they'd left the high desert behind and descended into
the region of the rivers. Here the moist air gave welcome relief to their dust-encrusted lungs. They began
to encounter trees, first singly, then in stands of six or eight. At last they were into the de-ciduous woods
that lined all the tributaries of the mighty La-mathian River. These were not tall, dark forests like the
massive Great Firs. They were, instead, comfortable parklands where boys could stage adventures and
young lovers could stroll in safe semi-privacy. The woods were interspersed with fields, and these were
crisscrossed with rows of yellowing stalks and withering vines. The summer's warmth fled before the
sharp, cool breath of autumn, and the crops stood waiting for the reaper. Already some of the trees had
changed hues, as ma-turing leaves tired of youthful greens and experimented with the gaudy colors of fall.
It was a beautiful, if forbidding, sight, and Pelmen appreciated it. He felt in the same moment a sad-ness
that hk companion was missing all this. He tried to restrain it, but a lingering guilt remained. Tahli-Damen
was right. Pel-men shared responsibility with Flayh for the bluefaither's blind-ness, and it bothered him.
He'd hoped to hide his identity a while longer. While not a Mari, Tahli-Damen had lived in the Mar long
enough to have a feel for events. Pelmen needed to update his knowledge; he'd been totally absorbed in
his quest for Serphimera. But his meeting with the pseudodragon and the encounter with the dogs of night
had convinced him that he could no longer ignore the menace in the land of mountains and mines. A
mongrel sorcerer of incredible might inhabited the High Fortress of Ngandib. Flayh had brought that
ancient tower to snarling, snapping life in a phenomenal feat of shaping. Now his potency increased,
stretching beyond the borders of the Mar to the edges of the other great nations. Pelmen wondered if it
reached to their heartlands as well.
That was something Pelmen would soon discover for him-
self, for they rode now to the kernel of the land of Lamath to the capital city itself. At this rate, they
would arrive by midmorning.
The ride was easy, and the surroundings pleasant. The peo-ple they passed, farmers mostly, were men
of simple appetites and open faces. The relaxing sway of the saddle combined with the long night's ride to
lull him almost to sleep. Pelmen fought it, stretching his arms, twisting his shoulders from side to side, and
shifting his weight from one aching buttock to the other.
He almost missed seeing the little chapel nestled in a grove outside a village. When he did see it, the
vision brought him awake with a shiver. The weeds had been cleared away from the door. It had been
newly painted a glossy midnight blue. And over the arch hung the terra-cotta figure of a double-headed
dragon.
"Come on!" he snapped to no one but himself, as he kicked his horse's flanks sharply and jerked on
Tahli-Damen's reins.
The merchant came awake with a shout. "What is it! What's happening! More dogs?"
"No," Pelmen snarled bitterly as their tired steeds finally got the urgent message and struggled to produce
a gallop. "More dragons!"
"Where!" the blind merchant cried, automatically throwing his head back, expecting to search the sky.
"Not there. In Lamathian hearts. Oh, how I wish it were just in the sky!" Pelmen saw no more of the
landscape. He brooded the rest of the way.
They entered the city unchallenged; but as soon as they passed the outer gates, they were joined by a
contingent of riders in sky blue gowns. Hearing the hoofbeats, Tahli-Damen grew more concerned than
ever. So distracted was Pelmen by the sight of the shrine that he didn't take the time to explain. They
clattered down the broad, cobbled avenue to Lamath's vast central square, and across it to the door of
the dungeon. Pelmen was off his horse in a moment and went quickly to Tahli-Damen's side to help him
down. Then he wrapped the merchant's shoulders in a firm, friendly grip, and guided him inside.
"Prophet!" a voice called in a warm, raspy bass. "The Power has answered my petitions! I've longed to
see you, and it's none too soon! Sit!"
Tahli-Damen was puzzled. "Who's he talking to?" he mum-bled to Pel men.
"I'm talking to the Prophet of Lamath," Erri said. "The one who accompanied you from Dragonsgate."
"That's not me, Erri," Pelmen grumbled. "I threw that man-tle on you."
"And the Power keeps shoving it back toward you! I'd be delighted if you could get that through your
skull and accept the responsibility!"
"ThenPelmen is the Prophet of" Tahli-Damen began.
"Pelmen is not the Prophet of Lamath anymore," Pelmen snapped. "He's not the prophet of anything.
This is the Prophet of Lamath, the former Erri the sailor!"
"Let's not confuse the man, Pelmen," Erri muttered, ac-quiescing to the title. "Sit. Please."
Pelmen finally looked around the room. "Chairs? At last?" He smiled at his short, wiry friend.
Erri hung his head. "While I was in Chaomonous marrying Bronwynn to Rosha the brothers came in and
took away my straw. Burned it. When I got back, these were here. They said they did it to ease my
aches and pains, but I think they were just tired of sitting on the floor."
"Good for them." Pelmen nodded, his eyes sparkling. Then they softened, and he looked over at his
traveling companion, who was gingerly lowering himself into a seat. "And this is Tahli-Damenlately a
merchant of Uda, now a bluefaither."
"Oh, I know him." Erri shrugged.
Tahli-Damen's forehead creased. "Have we met? Since I can't see your face, I"
"Only in dreams, my friend. Vague visions. I saw you coming."
"And I... heard myself called..."
"Which may serve as some reassurance that you're in the right place." Erri's voice conveyed many things,
among them being warmth, honesty, and a confident authority that could both inspire and challenge.
"It...does," Tahli-Damen replied. He'd imagined this meeting over and over in the past few days. In each
version he'd made a wise, prudent speech before presenting the object. But the humility in Erri's manner
pointed out to him his own pride. He said no more, but just thrust his hands into his robe
and pulled out the velvet bag that had hung around his neck for days. He drew its golden braid over the
top of his head and held the object out before him. "I was sent to bring you this."
Erri got up from his stool and walked over to accept it, his sandals slapping on the stone floor. As it left
his hands, Tahli-Damen's shoulders slumped. He'd rid himself of a great bur-den. He'd also forfeited the
purpose that had kept him going.
Erri sat the bag on the table, opened it, and disclosed its contents. "So this is one of the precious
pyramids." The crystal glowed with an azure iridescence.
"Don't stare into it," Pelmen warned. "I've told Bronwynn not to handle the one she has, but she's a
queen now, and can be trusted to follow her own counsel alone. Should she and Flayh happen to be
examining their pyramids at this moment, you could find yourself locked in a most unpleasant
confron-tation."
Tahli-Damen shivered at that. He'd viewed such a con-frontation through this very crystal. That had
been the last thing he'd ever witnessed.
Erri bagged the object with a look of distaste. "I've no stomach for that. I'm confronted with problems
enough al-ready."
"The rebirth of the Dragonfaith?"
"You've seen their reopened shrines?"
"Only onein a small village to the south-" Pelmen stopped. Erri had laid a hand on his arm to still
him, and now turned to the merchant again.
"Forgive us, my brother Tahli-Damen. We are old friends, with much to discuss that probably will not
interest you. A meal, a bath, and a bed may be far more to your liking and these can be provided." Erri
clapped his hands, and a pair of initiates popped their heads inside the room. Erri tugged on the former
merchant's arm, bringing him to his feet. Strolling with him to the door, Erri told him, "These two brothers
will tend to your needs. Tahli-Damen"
"Yes?" the blind man asked earnestly, turning his head toward Erri's voice.
"We can also provide you with other things here. Healing for your eyes is available. So, too, is a new
purpose. But it seems, at present, not both."
Tahli-Damen listened intently, and then nodded. He didn't reply.
"You're a wise young man, Tahli-Damen. Think it over well." Then the blind man left Erri's small, bare
cell and was led away to more comfortable rooms on the upper floors of the old palace. Erri looked at
Pelmen, and raised an eyebrow. "What about a walk on the wharf? I'm tired of these walls!"
Pelmen wrapped an arm around his short friend's shoulders and they walked out under the darkening
sky.
CHAPTER TWO
Murmurings in the Mar
Thunder grumbled in a sky turned sullen. Pelmen and Erri walked along the band of the gray-green river,
pulling their cloaks tight against the cold. Pelmen cast occasional glances at the threatening sky, but his
short companion ignored the mumbled warnings. The somber clouds wrestling silently above them
matched his mood. "This Dragonfaith," Erri said. "Can it be killed? I thought it dead, but now I hear daily
reports of chapels being reopened and new initiates donning its dark blue habit." Erri abruptly stopped,
and sternly fixed his small, dark eyes on Pelmen's face, "do you know the whereabouts of Ser-phimera?"
Pelmen sighed and turned away. A cool drizzle began, and he watched the river drink it in. They heard
the roar then and both danced nimbly under an awning as the curtain of rain swept over and around them.
The wind tore at the canvas momentarily, then raced onward, leaving behind a thick, murky downpour.
The awning sheltered a tackle shop that had been shuttered up. There was no one around to overhear
their con-versation as they shouted to one another over the rooftop roar. "1 did know! Up until last
month we were together!"
"Where?" Erri shouted back, shivering in his cloak. "In Chaomonous, near the Great South Fir." Erri
nodded. "What happened?" "She disappeared!"
Erri frowned, and nodded again. "I've heard from the north-west, from the Lakelands. A Unionist
monastery just reopened there. Worse," he added, "there've been reported sightings of the dragon."
"I wouldn't doubt it," Pelmen grunted, and Erri jerked around to stare at him. "I've seen it too."
"Then it's true?" Erri gasped. Their ears had grown accus-tomed to the backdrop of the rain's din and
filtered it out. Enclosed within a dry box in the midst of a torrent, they forgot their surroundings
completely to concentrate on the exchange of information.
"It is, and it isn't. It's true that the dragon has appeared again. But though it wears the form of the dead
serpent, it's not the same beast." "Another twi-beast?"
"No. There was only one Vicia-Heinox and we must beg the Power to keep it so. There is a clever
imitation, however. The monster is being impersonated by an immensely powerful wizard." "Flayh?"
Pelmen nodded. "The man has stumbled upon an incredible book of spells. It's given him a control over
the powers un-matched by any present-day powershaper." "Not even by yourself?"
"Perhaps not even by all the best of us combined." Erri's bushy eyebrows laced themselves together over
the bridge of his hooked nose. "Then you mean he's somehow changed his altershape to the image of the
dragon?"
"No." Pelmen smiled at that notion. "A powershaper can't change his altershape any more than you
could change the color of your eyes. Flayh is still the sharp-fanged dog. He's just learned to imitate the
appearance of the dragon." "That distinction is lost on me."
"You could disguise yourself if you so wished and could possibly maintain that fiction for some time. But
you couldn't change your essential character. No shaper chooses his alter-shape. It manifests itself in a
moment of magical passion and
reflects the shaper's personality, for good or ill. Flayh is neither as stupid as Vicia-Heinox was, norI
hope!as dominatingly powerful."
Erri unconsciously scratched under his chin, mulling over Pelmen's words. "Do you think Flayh might
have anything to do with these dog packs that keep harassing our borders?"
Pelmen grunted. "Those aren't dogs," he muttered.
"They certainly bite like dogs!"
"Have they attacked you?"
"No, but I've seen several torn habits and a mauled hand and arm!"
"They're not dogs. They're powers who have used Flayh to cloak them in flesh."
"Demons, then?"
"So some would call them." Pelmen nodded solemnly. "How many attacks?"
"Too many to number. And all on bluefaithers. I had as-sumed that the packs were trained by these new
Dragonfaithers to go after anyone in a sky blue garment."
"I fear the dogs and the Dragonfaith are connected. Flayh is clever enough to realize that the best means
of threatening Lamath is to make use of its own superstition. His imitation of Vicia-Heinox has renewed
serpent worship. These dog at-tacks on skyfaithers seem to be aimed at convincing Lamathians it's
foolish to trust anything but the dragon." Pelmen shook his head. "Flayh's not changed. His purpose is still
to control the three lands. It's just that this time he has the power to accomplish it."
"No!" Erri snapped, stamping his foot. "By faith we shall resist him!"
"Indeed we will," Pelmen agreed. "And we'll make use of some other tools as well."
Erri looked at him sharply. "What tools?"
"We're not helpless."
"Certainly not," the small prophet grunted. "We have the Power. You're not thinking of using some other
means, are you? More magic, perhaps?"
"Well of course I"
"Don't," Erri ordered. "It would cost you your life."
Pelmen peered at him. "You know that?"
"I do," the prophet answered with a curt nod. "Now then,
if we know these things are relatedthe dragon's reappear-ance, the strange desert dogs, possibly
Serphimera's disap-pearance"
"There's no proof of that," Pelmen quickly interrupted. "Serphimera often disappears on business of her
own." "And it almost always has been related to the dragon." "But she's changed her views! We've talked
about this at length!"
"The nation of Lamath had changed its view!" Erri argued. "Or so I had thought. Now it appears I was
wrong. Perhaps I wanted too much to believe so?" he asked shrewdly, gazing at Pelmen evenly to force
home his point. The powershaper turned his head away, refusing to take it. Erri sighed. "We'll leave that.
I was going to ask if you think all this is related to my other problem." "Which is?"
"The Lamathian royal family. The old king is dead. His heir has decided he wants more power."
"I thought the son was a recluse like his father." "He is. But he's apparently an ambitious recluse."
"Armies forming?"
"Not yet, I think. Just insistent letters from the vizier ex-plaining the young man's views. You think
Flayh's behind that as well?"
"He wouldn't discourage it. But ambition is usually bom inside a man, not outside. Is the son capable of
ruling?"
"I've never seen the boy. 1 don't know if he's capable of anything. I do know his advisors are urging him
to embrace the Dragonfaith. So it appears the problems are all of one piece and are all related to this
sorcerer in Ngandib-Mar."
Pelmen nodded. The implications made him weary. "What do you plan?"
"Plan? Why, the same plan I've held to since you thrust this task upon me. The lies must be exposed, the
truths ex-plained, and the battle won in the hearts of men." "More missionaries?" "More
missionariessent to the heart of the Mar."
The heart of the Mar was the city of Ngandib. It stood in the geographical center of the country and,
from its com-manding height, dominated the surrounding highlands. It sat
on a lofty plateau that was often ringed with clouds, so at times the High City seemed to float above the
earth, a heavenly city detached from earthly cares.
That illusion passed swiftly for any visitor unfortunate enough to labor from the valley floor to the top of
the Down Road. At one time Ngandib's streets had been tidy and well cobbled. Now they were more
mud than cobblestone, and garbage often obscured the roadway entirely. Its people had once been the
proudest of a proud race. Now they hung their heads and kept mostly to themselves, for the city was
owned by brigands, one of whom had inexplicably been made the head of the city's defense force. Soon
others joined him to celebrate his good fortuneand to steal for themselves what fortunes they could.
Men who had once been hunted as outlaws by the Shurls of the North and South Firs now swaggered
arrogantly about, picking fights with the locals and invariably winning. As many as eight or nine bodies a
morning were ritually cast off the northern face of the plateau into the Burial Valley.
The problem daily grew worse, yet the king did nothing to stop the carnage nor to punish these
loathsome intruders. The people of the city were hardly surprised. They knew their king well. Pahd mod
Pahd-el spent most of every day in bed, resting up in preparation for a good night's sleep. "When Pahd
wakes" had become a euphemism for the end of time. Privately, many citizens worried that King Pahd no
longer had the power to do anything and that he'd fallen prey completely to the evil ma-nipulations of the
mysterious Flayh. They said nothing about it, however. Those foolish enough to criticize Flayh publicly
had all disappeared, and there were reports of horrible screams from the vicinity of the High Fortress.
The High Fortress of Ngandib dominated the city as the city dominated the Mar. Built upon a towering
spur of granite that rose many hundreds of feet above the plateau, it was obviously impregnable. There
was no such citadel anywhere else in the world. It had never been stormed. in. war. In fact, no one had
ever been fool enough to try.
The Mans who dwelt in the city had always been conscious of the castle's lofty mystery. Since Flayh had
come, however, men swore that the fortress had assumed a distinctly malevolent personality. It was as if
the castle lived and regarded mankind with a permanent snarl of contempt. Those who had once re-
laxed in the safety of the great tower's shadow now sought dwellings toward the plateau's edge. They
preferred the pre-cipitous drop-off to the feeling of living constantly under the gaze of a brooding, evil
presence. Some had even tried to leave the High Plateau to seek a new life in the Mar proper, but they
had been arrested at the top of the Down Road and marched back through the city to the fortress. None
of them had been seen since.
Despite the ominous cutoff of downward traffic, men con-tinued to make the harrowing climb up the
steep road from the valley. Most of these were themselves cutthroats, coming to join their fellows.
Among them was a small, feisty outlaw named Tibb. He carried with him a small bundle of personal
possessions, a much-used sword, and a concealed dagger. Tibb had not come seeking fortune,
fellowship, or a merry time at the expense of the townfolk of Ngandib. Tibb had come for revenge.
When he reached the top of the Down Road, he was chal-lenged by a cluster of ugly thugs. "Stand,
rascal, and give us your name!"
"Tibb, varlet. And yours?" Tibb snarled.
"You call me varlet?"
"I do, indeed, and will again!"
"Perhaps you'd like to tumble off this cliff?" the cutthroat threatened.
"Perhaps you'd like your guts tickled by my blade?" Tibb spat back, his hand on the hilt of his battered
sword.
This exchange of unpleasantries set the rest of the small cadre to cackling, and now one advised his
belligerent friend, "Hold, Naph. I think he believes himself one of us!"
Naph sneered. "Is that true, squirrel?"
"It's true enough," Tibb acknowledged modestly.
"Then why don't I know you?"
"I don't know." Tibb shrugged. "Because you're as blind as a cavern slug?"
Someone caught Naph's fist and shoved the angry man away while another outlaw squared around to
face Tibb. "Here, then. If you be one of us, tell me where you've fought?"
Tibb's eyes gleamed. Wickedness? Savagery? The other brigand couldn't tell as Tibb grunted, "I
wrestled in the darkness beneath the Imperial House."
There were several grunts in response and a low whistle. "And escaped?" someone asked stupidly. "I'm
here, aren't I?"
Naph, cooler now, shook off the arm that held him and came back to stare at Tibb's face. "Could be,"
he muttered. "One way to check," somebody said. "Yes." Naph nodded. "Let's go talk to the chief." So
Tibb was escorted down the main street of Ngandib-Mar by a quartet of murderous blackguards. If he
drew any pitying glances from the city's cowed inhabitants, he didn't notice. He strode along casually, at
home with this roguish company. He felt no fear, nor any need for concern. He'd told no lie. He had
fought in the treacherous battle beneath the royal castle of Chaomonous. And though he couldn't be
certain, he felt he knew who this chief scalawag would prove to be. He hoped he was right.
One could only enter the High Fortress from within. In the wall of rock a cavern had been cut, which
served as the royal stables as well as the entryway into the castle. There was a wooden staircase that
could be raised or lowered from the landing many feet above, but at the moment it was up. The only
access was by way of a rope ladder, lowered through the gaping hole in the stable ceiling. Naph gestured
roughly toward it, and Tibb quickly scaled it and climbed onto the landing.
He was greeted there by a stern-faced slaver he vaguely recognized. Naph and another joined Tibb and
explained their business, and the slaver nodded curtly toward the top of another ladder some distance
away. Then he went on about his work, making no secret of his belief that this was a waste of time and
that Naph was a fool. Tibb strolled to the mouth of the new pit and started to descend.
He knew from the latrine stench that assaulted his nostrils that this was the dungeon. Then he heard a
scream, the first of many he expected to hear today. It didn't slow him. Tibb was at home with such. The
place was dark as pitch. He knew he'd reached the floor when his foot slid in the slime. He backed away
from the ladder quickly to avoid the downward plunge of Naph, who seemed disappointed he'd missed
the chance to mash Tibb's fingers. "This way," Naph grunted, and they fol-lowed the sound of the
shrieks.
They turned a corner. A candle burned in a small alcove
on the wall. Chained below it was the twisted figure of what had once been a man. Tibb saw only the
back of the poor creature's tormentor, but that was enough. Given his prefer-ence, he would rather not
look the man in the face.
He had no choice. As Naph cleared his throat, Admon Faye turned to look at them. Even in the
half-light, that horrid visage made Tibb's stomach chum. Nevertheless, he forced himself to smile. Admon
Faye smiled back, and the cruelty and cunning Tibb saw there caused him a new struggle with his
intestines. Naph cleared his throat again. Obviously he had trouble facing the master himself.
"Thisahfellow says you'll know him," Naph managed finally to mumble.
"I know you?" Admon Faye asked. His voice was open and friendly, as if they stood together in a
sun-drenched city square instead of a fetid, black dungeon.
"I fought with you beneath the castle in Chaomonous," Tibb said, struggling to keep every trace of
bitterness out of the statement.
"Ah, yes." Admon Faye nodded, looking down. "It went poorly for us, didn't it?"
"Quite poorly." Tibb still wasn't sure he'd been remem-bered.
"Where's your friend?" Now Tibb was sure. "Dead."
"Ah," Admon Faye said. "Pity." He even made it sound as if he meant it. "So," he went on brightly,
"you've come to join us!"
"Everyone else is here."
"Seems that way, surely." Admon Faye chuckled. "But there's room for all. Our mysterious employer
who lives up-stairs has proved generous to us who've joined his service. I welcome you!" The hideous
slaver grinned and offered Tibb the implement he'd been holding. Tibb saw now that it was a metal rod.
Its tip still glowed. "Go ahead." Admon Faye nod-ded, gesturing to the gasping figure stretched upon the
rock shelf.
Tibb realized that this was the real test. He passed it easily. The wizened body scarred with burns made
no difference to him. His purpose had been to rejoin the band of Admon Faye and to take his revenge. If
this was necessary, so be it. He plunged the hot poker down.
And the High Fortress of Ngandib, which was indeed both alive and malevolent, listened to the screams
and cackled with sadistic glee.
The crisp wind cut through Dorlyth's tunic, chilling his upper arms. It ruffled his wiry, golden gray hair.
He paid no heed to this breeze, nor to its promise of frost. He divided his attention between the small
army that drilled in the glade below him and the blue of the Mari sky.
The glade of mod Carl was seventy miles west of Dorlyth's castle, well within the westernmost spur of
the Great South Fir. It was a convenient place of meeting, on the border between the Downlands and the
Furrowmar, but easily accessible to the men of the Westmouth region as well. He'd used it as a staging
ground before, during previous wars of confederation. It had served especially well this time, since
Dorlyth's major allies were from the furrows, Ngandib-Mar's highland farms. He'd had no trouble
assembling this forcethey'd been called to arms in midsummer, after the rows had already been
planted. But harvest time had come and he was starting to lose them. It wasn't so much that they wished
to be in the fields working Mari men preferred fighting to fanning, and they knew their women could
get in the crop as well as they could, if not better. The problem was that they'd been together almost two
months and were yet to fight a battle.
"He's not coming!" Belra spat, a phrase he'd repeated twenty times a day for the past two weeks. Belra
sported a red han-dlebar mustache under his bulbous nose and had enormous green eyes that sparkled
when he laughed and flashed when he grew angry. They were flashing now.
"He'll come," Dorlyth repeated absently, and Belra launched into yet another bad-tempered tirade.
Dorlyth didn't bother to reply. He left that for his cousin.
"It's hard on my warriors too, mod Belra," Ferlyth said quietly. "A problem that worsens each day. But
I'm with Dor-lyth. I'll not take us out unprotected."
"But we don't even know where he is!" Belra pleaded, waving his huge hands for emphasis.
Dorlyth shrugged. "I never know where he is, but he always comes when I need him. And we most
definitely need Pelmen before we take the field in this war."
"I'm not suggesting that we go into battle without some powershaper, but we all know that Joooms is
available"
"Mercenary sorcerers never give you their best," Ferlyth interrupted in the rich, clipped tones of an
aristocrat.
"Besides," Dorlyth added, "with all due respect to the lizard, Joooms is no match for the Autumn Lady
when she's angry. At her best, she can rout even Pelmen."
"You needn't remind me," Belra grumbled. "I fought at Mar-Yilot's side in the last conflict. The woman is
awesome."
"And yet it seems even Mar-Yilot is checked by the power of this new Flayh," Ferlyth mused. "While
we've lingered in this glade, we've missed very little action. The armies of those two have only
skirmished."
"We'll not have the warriors even for skirmishing if we pause much longer!" Belra argued. "Naturally I'd
prefer Pel-men Dragonsbane behind us. Who wouldn't? But he's not
here!"
A rider clothed in the blue and white diagonals of Belra's house rode fiercely through the drilling
company and up the grassy rise. "A warrior, Lord Belra!"
"Whose?" Belra barked.
"My lord, he's not of the Mar! He wears the gilded mail of the Golden Throng of Chaomonousand he
rides from the
southeast!"
Belra snorted. "So you think that means he's come through
the Fir?"
"Well, it seems so, my lord"
"And that's just what our enemies would have us to believe! Ridiculous. None but thieves can pass
through that tangle of weeds and brambles. This is a spy, sent behind us. Take him!"
Ferlyth glanced over at Dorlyth, surprised that the aging warrior hadn't intervened. "No protest?" he
asked as the rider galloped back toward the forest.
"Why should 1 protest?" Dorlyth's lazy reply did not match the eager excitement in his old eyes.
"It's no secret, mod Karis, that your own Rosha has married the Golden Land's young queen. Could this
be a messenger come from him?"
"No," Dorlyth grunted. "No messenger. He uses only blue flyers to contact me. And Belra's right. None
but thieves can penetrate the Great Fir. Thievesor heroes."
Ferlyth raised his eyebrows knowingly. "Perhaps."
"We should know in a moment," Dorlyth muttered, and all three lords watched the wall of giant trees on
the far side of the clearing. Suddenly three riders broke from the thicket in rapid succession, each
throwing anxious looks behind them. Then a powerful charger leaped a bush and raced to the center of
the clearing. Astride its back sat a powerfully built man arrayed in the glistening gold armor of
Chaomonous. Above his helmet he whirled a great sword almost four feet long. Dorlyth grinned proudly
at the sight of that blade. It had once been his own.
"Whyit's your son!" Belra blurted in surprise.
"As I said," Dorlyth chuckled, "only thieves or heroes." He spurred his charger forward and raced down
to meet Rosha mod Dorlyth.
Rosha jerked off his helmet and slung it from his saddle horn as his father reined in beside him. His black
curls shone with sweat, and rivulets coursed down his handsome cheeks. "Hot in there," he muttered.
Dorlyth sat back in his saddle and beamed. He said nothing for a moment, just looking his son up and
down. Then he growled "Hail, mod Dorlyth, of Chaomonous king!" He laughed as the blood rushed to
his son's face.
"I'm no king," Rosha snarled, but a pleased grin found its way to his lips anyway.
"Apparently not," Dorlyth muttered, "or you wouldn't be traipsing around alone in the wilderness of a
neighboring land. What are you doing here?" he demanded sternly.
"You know why I'm here," Rosha grunted, unconsciously imitating his father's gruff manner. No longer
did the stutter of his youth plague him. He had the relaxed confidence of a natural victor.
"How did you guess the place?"
"I didn't guess Since I was a boy, I've heard you bid good-bye to your warriors with 'See you next
week at the glade of mod Carl.' You think I didn't learn anything in your keep?"
"I thought at least I taught you better treatment of women," Dorlyth snorted, and Rosha looked away in
embarrassment. "Did you tell Bronwynn you were coming?"
Rosha scowled at his father. "Did you ever ask my mother's permission to ride to war?"
Now Dorlyth looked away. "Maybe once or twice."
Rosha was surprised. "Really? What'd she say?"
"She said 'no.'"
"What did you do?" Rosha frowned.
"I went anyway." Dorlyth shrugged, and Rosha laughed aloud. "But I didn't enjoy it!" Dorlyth added
seriously, cutting short his son's mirth.
"Why, I didn't come for enjoyment," Rosha grumbled.
"Yes, you did. For enjoyment and excitement and to get away from the boredom of the castle. Did she
send anybody after you?"
"I didn't look back."
Dorlyth nodded. "Knowing Bronwynn, she did. But they probably had the wisdom to turn around when
they reached the Fir. Unlike my son," he added with a snort.
"You want me to go back?" Rosha snapped.
"Eventually, yes!" Dorlyth frowned. Then his bearded lips parted in a huge smile. "But not for a while."
He could contain himself no longer and he reached out to grab his son by the shoulders. The small army
had been watching all this quietly; now they cheered. Rosha was well known to all of them, and they
valued the addition of his blade to their cause.
Dorlyth sat back again in his saddle, his eyes a bit moist with pleasure and pride. "We need you, son.
We face a for-midable foe with no assurance of victory, and that famous sword of yours will be
welcome. But not just your sword. Bronwynn is sure to be alarmed by your absence. If there's any way
she can contact Pelmen, she's sure to send him after you. I hope this doesn't offend, but we need him
even more. Let's hope you attract him to us!" Dorlyth pointed across the clearing. "My tent is in the trees
there on the north side. Unless things have changed drastically, you're hungry."
"I sure am!"
"Then let's go eat," Dorlyth muttered and he wheeled his horse around to lead the way. He was proud of
himself. He'd resisted the urge to kiss his boy on the cheek in front of his warriors.
It started as a simple meal. It soon turned into a feast. Dorlyth had not hunted that day and had little to
offer Rosha but a hunk of bread and some cheese. But then the friends began arriving, bringing with them
dressed pheasant, fresh
brook trout, a saddle of aged venison, some snails, eels, and vegetables, as well as flutes and stringed
instruments, jokes and sly winks, and many good wishes for Rosha and his new bride. They fed the fire
until all forty of them could feel it, and laughed and sang until the forest rang with their celebration. When
the northwesterly winds kicked up, stirring the leaves around them, they huddled closer together and
laughed even louder. Every jest, regardless how small, reaped a happy re-ward, and some ancient
grudges were forgottenfor the night, at least. Rosha was compelled to recite the history of his
court-ship; this he did with relish, proudly demonstrating his new-found control over his tongue. He
good-naturedly ignored the constant interruptions, patiently enduring one ribald comment after another as
he told his story. He tailored his telling to suit his audience, and his father fingered his beard and nodded
knowingly. He would get the full story when the revelers slept, and the logs on the fire had turned to
glowing embers. Then he would learn Rosha's true feelings, when honesty could be valued over wit.
The story told, there were more songs and much more merry laughter. The ring of warriors struggled to
hold that spirit of elation as long as possible, but it died as necessarily and nat-urally as the fire. Then the
first man, feeling badly about it, slipped away, freeing others to follow. And at last the two men sat alone,
gazing into the glowing embers, and spoke in voices made rough by the chill and an excess of talk.
"Are you happy?" Dorlyth asked. It wasn't the first time he'd asked the question tonight, but it was the
first time Rosha really answered.
"I suppose so."
Dorlyth grunted. "Then you are. For what you suppose, that's what's so."
"And yet..."
"And yet you're here. So you can't be entirely satisfied."
"I'm satisfied," Rosha protested. "I just came because I was worried about you!"
"Come to protect your infirm old father?" The aged cham-pion grinned, his eyes gleaming.
Rosha chuckled. "Come to protect your backside, anyway. Your reflexes aren't what they used to be!"
"How could you know that?"
Rosha never answered. His mouth sagged open and he stared. Dorlyth proved his reflexes were still
excellent as he whirled around, slipping sword from scabbard in the same fluid motion. Then he stared,
too.
The moon clung to the horizon, peeking down at them through the firs. It was orange, and huge. The
cloudy figure that stood beside the fire pit seemed to glow with that same apricot radiance. She regarded
them passively, almost shyly. But Dorlyth had faced those regal, golden eyes before. They betrayed no
hint of fear. "Mar-Yilot," he whispered, and the wind stirred the fallen leaves and seemed to echo him.
She was not beautiful, nor even pretty in the ways that men normally evaluate women. Her auburn hair
ringed a pale, thin face and hung limply to bony shoulders. She was slender, and her ochre gown draped
upon her like curtains wrapped around a sapling. She still strongly resembled the wan, silent waif she
once had beenvulnerable yet exceedingly wise.
But her carriage demanded respect. She was lordly. And Dorlyth knew her power and trembled before
it.
"Where is he?" she asked at last.
Sparked to action, Rosha grabbed for his sword. "Stay it," Dorlyth muttered. "She's here, but her body's
not. Your blade can't harm her."
Mar-Yilot raised her eyebrows a barely perceptible fraction. "Your son?"
"He's young yet."
"May he live to grow old as you," she said flatly. "Where's Pelmen?"
"Why do you seek him?"
"Don't toy with me, Dorlyth. That angers me. Tell me where he's hiding."
"I don't think he's hiding, really," Dorlyth murmured. "I don't know if he's even in the Mar"
"There's shaping about that bears his stampor if not, at least the mark of his talent. Grave things are
shifting, Dorlyth. Unless he'll talk to me, I mean to make war upon him." She spoke earnestly but
dispassionatelya woman fully in control of herself, actively shaping her own destiny.
"How do you know it's him?"
"Who else could it be?" she snapped.
"This evil Flavh has"
"Flayh!" Mar-Yilot spat in disgust. "Who is this Flayh? A cloth seller! A trader in tools and cooking
pans! When the seven shapers wrestled together and Pelmen battled me toe to toe, where was this
Flayh? In Lamath of the dragon lovers, counting his money! Don't speak nonsense, Dorlyth. Tell me
where Pelmen is and let us reason or make war."
Dorlyth chose his words carefully. "Am I a sorcerer, my Lady? Can I divine your hiding places?"
Her amber eyes gazed at him balefully, a stern mother about to rebuke a lying child. She paused a
moment, then said very deliberately, "The old one is dead in the last conflict, and Terril murdered his
twin. That leaves five. The twin-killer has de-clared for the lazy king, Mast is idle in retirement, Joooms
waits in Gamabel, unemployed. And that leaves Pelmen and myself. Would you have me believe you
uncovered?"
Dorlyth's mouth was very dry. He said nothing.
"Very well." The Autumn Lady nodded. "I know your lair this glade of mod Carl is hardly a secret,
and no one has cloaked you here. When I return, I will see Pelmen. Unless you truly are uncovered, in
which case..." Her voice faded away and she permitted herself the slightest of smiles. "In which case I'm
hardly responsible," she finished. Then she disappeared with a flash of golden brilliance. The moon, too,
had disap-peared below the trees.
Dorlyth and Rosha stood in the darkness, stunned. Then the old warrior grunted. "I hope he decides to
come find us. Oth-erwise, the next time she comes hunting him, she'll kill us all. She won't be trying to.
She just will."
CHAPTER THREE
The Dogs and the Dragon
Pelmen couldn't sleep. Throughout the night he agonized over the same question that had plagued him for
weeks: Where was Serphimera? At the first sign of dawn, he bounded from his bed and took to the
streets of Lamath. He didn't expect to find her, but he needed to be doing something.
He left his blue gown in the room Erri had provided. He wanted to be able to move freely and talk to
anyone. He went from the beautiful heart of the city quickly, intending to make a long sweep through the
shanty townships that had mush-roomed on its edge.
Barely a year before, a huge crowd had gathered in the city square to watch him being pulled apart by a
pair of tugoliths. A few days later he had been publicly hailed as the Prophet of Lamath. Despite that,
nobody recognized him now. Clothed in the simple garments of a Lamathian peasant, he walked briskly
through crowded, dirty alleyways, visiting spots Serphimera had been known to frequent.
No one had seen the raven-haired priestess. Or if they had, they wouldn't admit it. Several volunteered
that they had seen the dragon, however, and that thought chilled his heart. Signs of the resurgence of the
Dragonfaith were everywhere. By midmoming he'd passed a score of newly painted shrines, each bearing
the two-headed icon above its open doors. Like a dead fire catching new life from a tiny ember, the
Dragonfaith had returned. With his imitation dragon wings, Flayh was fanning the growing flame. Pelmen
sank into a meditative despair.
Had Serphimera been duped anew? Had Flayh contrived to use her somehow in his scheme to
reenslave Lamath? Although Pelmen could prove no connection between Flayh and Serphi-
mera's disappearance, the thought kept recurring, and he'd been unable to stifle it. His bitterness grew.
"Man?" someone called. Pelmen broke out of his deep rev-erie and looked around. Had this been
addressed to him? "Man?" the voice called again, and Pelmen walked toward a tall, iron-spiked fence
that lined one side of this broad avenue. He re-alized now where he was and whoor whatwas
speaking. He gazed down into the tugolith pit.
"Yes?" he replied to the gigantic animal that had summoned him.
"Dolna is gone and Thuganlitha is being mean." The beast reported this dutifully, assuming that Pelmen
would understand simply because he was human. Tugoliths tended to appear simpleminded. They were,
in fact, the brightest of beasts, for they alone had mastered human language. But people who talked with
them frequently forgot that, since the huge creatures used their limited vocabulary mostly to bicker
childishly with one another.
"1 am not!" Thuganlitha snarled. It was evident that he was lying. Not only did his guilty tone of voice
give him away, but Pelmen could see that he had another tugolith wedged against a wall and was pricking
the screaming animal's hind-quarters with his horn.
"Stop that!" Pelmen ordered.
Thuganlitha left off the pricking and looked up at Pelmen suddenly. "I'm not doing anything." He
scowled.
"Oh yes, you are," chided Chimolitha, the tugolith who had called for Pelmen's intervention.
"Oh no, I'm not!"
"Oh yes, you are!"
"You told," Thuganlitha snorted, yielding the point but rais-ing a new issue.
"You shouldn't do that," Chimolitha explained.
"Why not?"
"Because it makes Dolna angry."
"I don't care," Thuganlitha sneered. Apparently he didn't, for he went back to horning his unfortunate
victim.
"1 said stop!" Pelmen shouted, throwing up his hand. He did it out of reflex, responding to the injured
tugolith's screams. Otherwise he would not have revealed his abilities in such a public place. The act left a
number of tugoliths extremely
confused. Thuganlitha ended up sprawled upon his back in a far corner of the pit, a perplexed
expression on his enormous features.
Chimolitha, however, took this all in stride. Such acts of justice were only to be expected from their
human masters. "Thank you," she said courteously.
Pelmen, a bit embarrassed by his incautious display, started slinking away toward the city square.
Suddenly the scaly mon-ster's expression changed. Pelmen had at last been recognized. "Man?" the
tugolith called. "Aren't you that Pelmen person?"
"Ah, yes," Pelmen replied quietly as he hurried on down the street and beyond the end of the pit.
"I like you!" he heard the tugolith call as he rounded the corner. He raced along, not daring to look
behind for fear he might find an admiring tugolith in pursuit. The beasts could easily push their way out of
their enclosure if they chose to. Pelmen hoped no one would ever be fool enough to give them the idea.
He found it ironic that only a beast had recognized him today, but that was easily explained. On that
morning when he'd nearly been executed, no one had gotten a closer look at him than had Chimolitha. He
was greatly relieved when he arrived back at the refectory of the skyfaither brotherhood.
On the site where once stood the old Temple of the Dragon, Erri had erected a huge, square meeting
hall. It was sparsely furnished and utilitarian, suiting the personality of its builder. It was here that Erri held
court and where he also fed as many of the city's beggars as could crowd inside, nor was it simple fare
he placed before them. Although he ate nothing but a coarse bread pudding himself, Erri provided his
guests with the best food Lamath had to offer. This practice had stirred great debate among the brothers.
Some criticized the extrav-agance. Others heatedly argued that this would make the city's poor too
dependent upon the faith. Erri squirmed a bit in dis-comfort as he listened to the arguments, for they all
bore the seeds of truth. But he didn't change his policy. He continued feeding the masses, paying for it out
of the riches that had accumulated over the centuries in the coffers of the Dragon-faith. The wealth was
there. Why not use it to meet the needs of the hungry? And who could distinguish by sight who was
deserving and who was not? There were certainly some profes-sional beggars who availed themselves of
a free meal each day.
There were others who had grown overdependent. But Erri could point to a growing number who had
come originally to gorge themselves on hams and spice cakes, but who'd stayed to don blue garments.
No one was compelled to do anything. Erri had resisted urgings to sermonize before serving the meal.
Brothers and guests alike could eat their fill of whatever they liked. But Erri's unassuming example
continued to have its impact on some. Many now took only bread pudding.
Pelmen was jostled and shoved at the doorway, but the crush of the crowd at last pushed him inside.
Erri spotted him im-mediately and hailed him over to sit down. The saintly prophet lowered his voicean
unnecessary precaution amid the scrap-ing of spoons and the rumble of conversationand asked, "Any
news of her?"
"None." Pelmen took a large roll and a slice of roast. As-ceticism was fine for others. He'd never
pretended to adopt it
himself.
Erri nodded. "1 didn't expect you to learn much. What will
you do now?"
"You mentioned a monastery reopening in the Lakelands district. Perhaps I'll go search there"
A commotion at the doorway caused him to break off, and both he and Erri stood up to see who had
caused it. The man who stepped into the great hall contrasted sharply with the ragged beggars and the
brothers in blue. He was heavily ar-mored in plates of burnished bronze, trimmed with gold. His helmet
was adorned with delicate arabesques of that costly metal, and plumed with golden feathers. A fish-satin
robe of the same dazzling color draped from his shoulders to brush the flagstone floor. But if his costume
seemed out of his place, the man's stern visage fitted with the rough faces around him. It was a soldier's
face, sallow and harsh, lined by years of command. This was General Joss, until recently the Lord of
Security for the land of Chaomonous and now Bronwynn's ambassador to Lamath. Erri waved him over.
The general smiled sardonically and picked his way through the chomping host. "Lord Ambassador,
welcome. I never expected you
here"
"Nor did I," Joss said quickly. He stepped over the bench to seat himself between two of the brothers.
"I didn't learn until this morning of the arrival of your elusive guest." The
general's hard eyes locked with Pelmen's. "I came to greet him in the name of my queen."
Pelmen nodded. "Hello, General. I've never seen you look-ing so splendid."
Joss glanced down at his fancy trappings. "I personally find this outfit repugnant. However, it goes along
with the office. I'm willing to make the sacrifice for Chaomonous." The general studied Pelmen's peasant
garb and said, "I see you've kept your same tailor." Pelmen laughed at that, and the general permitted
himself a brief smile. These two men had long been adversaries. Joss was working hard to establish
cordial rela-tions.
"1 wonder, Lord Ambassador, how you learned that I was here?"
"He has his sources," Erri said as he took another spoonful of pudding.
"I find it expedient to keep informed. Pelmen, I have an urgent message for you from our queen." "What
is it?"
"You want me to tell you here?" "Is it a state secret?"
Joss blinked. "Perhaps, perhaps not. I'm just unaccustomed to revealing private messages in a public
place." "This is where you found me. What is it?" Joss frowned. Then he lowered his voice and spoke.
"Young Rosha has left Chaomonous. The queen requests that you seek him out and return him to the
court."
Pelmen raised his eyebrows. Rosha's action didn't surprise him, but Bronwynn's response to it did.
"Return him? Didn't he tell her where he was going?" "He left without a word." "Sounds like his father."
"Do you know where he is?"
"Not exactly, but I can guess. He's gone to find Dorlyth. Surely Bronwynn knows that."
"The queen is concerned for his safety," the general said.
"Shall I inform her that he is all right?" He smiled humorlessly.
"You know that I can't say that. Rosha's gone to war."
Joss leaned across the rough table and spoke with a quiet
intensity. "Then I urge you to seek him out. The queen is
distraught without him and naturally assumes the worst. If he's
not located soon, she'll disregard all our advice and organize an army to go after him. I think you realize
that Chaomonous can ill afford another war at this time." The general sat back then, his face assuming
that expression of stony resolve used by leaders challenging their troops. "Consider this an act in defense
of your country."
Erri smiled, though he didn't intend to. "You speak as if
Pclmen is a Chaon."
"Isn't he?"
"I think we of Lamath might justifiably lay claim to him as well. Then again, so could the Maris, and if he
goes to Ngandib-Mar, I'm sure they will. Pelmen? What will you do?"
Pelmen pondered this question, reviewing his options. He realized he didn't have that many. Serphimera
wasn't here and evidently hadn't been here, so his search was at a standstill. Flayh's influence surrounded
him. He could wait here and battle the sorcerer with Erri, or he could go to the Mar in search of Rosha
and be sucked into the battle there. Somehow it made more sense to engage Flayh in the sinister shaper's
own region. Who could know? Perhaps Serphimera was locked in Flayh's dungeon. His lady had a
penchant for walking into trouble. Pelmen's eyes flicked up to meet the general's gaze. "I'll go
find him."
Erri sighed. "And probably find a battle as well."
"I will if he's joined his father. Wars follow Dorlyth like clawsps chase sugar."
"More magic!" Em grunted with disfavor.
"I know you don't approve."
"There's much more to it than my disapproval"
Joss interrupted them. "Then I may relay the word that your search has begun?"
Pelmen nodded. "You may. I'll not have time to inform her myself. But you'd better tell her to be patient.
If he's gone to fight a war, he's not likely to leave until it's over."
"If she knows you are with him, perhaps she'll feel com-forted," Joss said as he stood to leave. Then he
bowed slightly. "For the sake of both my queen and my country. I thank you." He bowed to Erri. "Good
day. Prophet." Then he stepped over the bench again and left quickly.
"Is it necessary that you go?" Erri asked quietly. "Can't
"Against any other warrior, yes. Against the powershapers of Ngandib-Mar, he hasn't a chance. Nor
does Dorlyth. I've been delaying the inevitable, Erri. I've got to face Flayh."
"You'll be killed."
"That's always a possibility"
"You've heard my warning," Erri said sternly. "Rather than rushing off to shape these other powers, I
wish you'd wait here until the Power shapes you!"
"Perhaps the Power is shaping me, my friend," Pelmen said
quietly.
Erri's eyes narrowed in surprise, then he looked away, studying the far wall of the room in puzzlement.
Finally he shrugged, and nodded. "I'd offer you a horse, but I know you'd rather fly."
"I'd rather ride." Pelmen grinned. "It's getting on toward winter! It gets cold enough up on those wind
currents to freeze your tail feathers!"
"I wouldn't know about that, never having had any tail
feathers."
"But thank you for reminding me. I'll drop by the stables and greet my old friend Minaliss before I go."
"Your horse!" Erri said, his eyes widening in remembrance, then turning sad. "I neglected to tell you. He
broke out of his stall about two weeks ago. I'm sorry, Pelmen. I sent a group of riders to retrieve the
horse, but they simply couldn't catch him."
Pelmen's eyes dropped to the tabletop. "Well. I'm sorry too." He smiled wistfully. "Seems like all my
friends are leav-ing me."
The prophet looked up sharply and frowned. "Oh, no. It's you who are leaving me."
"Yes. But I leave you in good hands," Pelmen said as he stood to go. Erri caught him by the sleeve and
pulled him down to whisper:
"What about this pyramid our friend brought us?" Pelmen frowned. "Hide it. Guard it carefully. If the
Power chose to send it, it must have some importance."
Erri nodded, then said, "Do me a favor. Don't change into a bird until you're out of the city square. I
spend enough of my time explaining you as it is."
Pelmen laughed. "It's a promise!" Then he stepped over the
bench and pushed through the crowd, leaving Erri to mutter
about there never being enough time to get everything said.
Pelmen took no notice of the fat little man sitting by himself at the table nearest the door. Nor did the
disguised merchant see him. In the presence of free food, Pezi heeded no man.
Lord Syth rode hard for the gates of Seriliath, his cape billowing back over the hindquarters of his war
horse. In his train raced a dozen other riders, all cloaked in capes of the same blue and gray, wearing
expressions identical to that of their master. A frown masked Syth's handsome features, and they all saw
it frequently, for he tossed worried looks behind them with every passing mile. They were not being
chased at least, not that they knew. But all save Syth believed they'd made a terrible mistake in
traveling the roads today. It was common knowledge among them that Mar-Yilot was in the Seriliath
tower, casting spells in search of Pelmen. That meant they weren't being covered.
"Open it!" Syth bellowed as the small troop pounded down a ridge and back up toward the massive
gates. His words could not have been heard over the clatter of steel-shod hooves on the granite highway,
but the huge doors swung inward anyway. Syth did not slacken his pace. He shot through the gap like a
missile from a catapult. He didn't pause to acknowledge the gatekeepers' cheers, nor even seem to hear
them. But cheer they did, as their returned city lord drove his stallion up the steep, narrow street that led
to the palace.
The noise of his arrival alerted the shopkeepers and trades-men. These stood in their doorways and
added their voices. Shutters flew open above them and still others joined in the tumultuous welcome.
Syth mod Syth-el, Lord Seriliath and rightful Jorl of the Isles, had returned at last from his island home.
He'd come to rejoin those rebel chieftains who had chosen him to lead them against the king. The people
of Ser-iliath loved Syth, as their hearty welcome attested. But though they loved her less, they were far
more fascinated by Mar-Yilot, his wife. They all craned their necks, searching for some sign of her.
When she didn't appear, they all assumed that the rumors were truethat the Autumn Lady was already
in the city, and waited with the others in the palace. Naturally, no
one had seen her arrive. She traveled where she willed on
butterfly wings. But it was always a thrill to learn that the auburn-haired shaper was among them again.
As he pounded through the final gate into the palace court-yard, Syth's anxious expression hardened into
a proud, vic-torious smile. Behind his back his retainers exchanged smiles of mutual relief. For the first
time this day, they could all breathe easy once again.
Syth cocked his head to look up at the battlements, but no noble flags fluttered there. He'd expected
none. It wasn't wise to advertise one's location in a time of war. As he walked his horse into the stables,
however, he saw the livery of the two waiting lords hanging from the rafters. His smile grew wider. He
walked briskly through the main door, nodding at fawning servants and snapping off orders. In a half hour
he had bathed and shaved. He was donning a fish-satin dressing gown in preparation for greeting his
guests, when he was himself vis-ited.
"You're here today?" Mar-Yilot asked quietly.
He wheeled around and saw her standing by the drapes. He reached out to touch her, then saw the aura
of orange light surrounding her and stopped himself. "Why don't you come on down?"
"I'm busy."
"Still hunting Pelmen?"
"And not finding him."
"I don't think you're going to," Syth said as he tied the sash around his waist.
"I thought we agreed you would come tomorrow, when I could cover you." Her obvious aggravation
didn't surprise him.
"I didn't agree to anything. It doesn't matter anyway, be-cause I'm here."
"You could have been killed."
"But I wasn't. Which tells me a couple of things..."
"It tells you nothing," she snapped.
"... about the road. First, it's free. I encountered no op-position, either from the king or Dorlyth's band of
peculiar patriots, so"
"Dorlyth and Ferlyth are in the glade of mod Carl."
Syth's eyes widened and he smiled appreciatively. "Good! Then we know we can travel south without
fear of"
"You know nothing!" she repeated, more forcefully this time. "You're guessing, and guessing is for fools!"
Syth deflected her scolding with a confident smile. She'd been chiding him since they were children, and
he was used to it. "It is, at least, an educated guess, reinforced by my personal surveillance of the
Nethermar Road."
"You were lucky."
"Aren't I always?" he asked, grinning at her. She didn't smile.
"As I said, while I did find Dorlyth, I did not locate Pelmen. He could have tracked you here!"
"Possible, but 1 don't think so. I don't think the falcon is anywhere near." He ignored her sigh of
exasperation. "I at-tribute all this manipulation of the powers to Flayh, and not to"
"Why! Why do you keep insisting on that!"
"Because I, my dear, listen to the rumors that are muttered in the alleyways. While you're fluttering
around on your but-terfly wings, I'm dodging the mud holes and talking to people!"
It was an old argument, one they reopened each time they faced a battle and disagreed on how to fight
it. She shook her head. "I won't believe it until I see it."
"That's what I'm afraid of! You'll be so intent on finding Pelmen you won't see the new danger until it's
too late!"
"The real danger is Pelmen," Mar-Yilot said with a deadly drone. "1 nearly conquered him the last time
we battled. This time I'll not fail."
"I don't know what excites you morefighting Pelmen or loving me!" Syth said it half-jokingly.
Mar-Yilot would not dignify the comment with a reply. "Listen," he pleaded, "none of these acts bear
Pelmen's seal. All of you shapers have a certain style, and this talk of red-eyed demons and a resurrected
Vicia-Heinox doesn't sound like Pelmen at all!"
"They sound like an upstart merchant?" she asked flatly.
"They do. Like this merchant. And what I think I learned on the road is significant..."
"What you guessed," the shimmery figure corrected.
"All right, what I guessed. And this is it: I think Flayh didn't attack me because he's as worried about
Pelmen as you are and he's looking elsewhere!"
She refused to be moved by his dramatic pronouncement. "So?"
"So tomorrow I'm leading our army south. I want to do battle with King Pahd before Flayh realizes
Pelmen's not a threatand sends his black dogs after us."
Her golden eyes revealed no anger, no fear, nor in fact any emotion. She regarded him calmly,
inscrutable as a cat. "And what do you expect of me?"
"You could cover us, maybe." He smiled sardonically. "That might be nice." She gazed at him,
unblinking. "Or you could get ready to toss a gale at the foot of the Ngandib Plateau, minor Flayh's terror
spell back at him, or whatever else you choose. You're the shaper. I'll leave that up to you."
"Will you?" she said cuttingly. Then she began to fade away.
"Mar-Yilot, come on down now, will you?"
She stopped her disappearance long enough to answer, "Maybe later.'' Then she was goneor rather,
that projected part of herself had rejoined her body in the tower that soared above.
"Witch," Syth muttered. He said it with deep affection.
The dogs came in after dusk, their long red tongues lolling lazily over glistening fangs. They slunk through
the alleyways of the city of Lamath, moving in slowly like a horrible black mist. Those who chanced to
see them ran shrieking homeward, locking their doors behind them, for these were no ordinary dogs.
Their black coats had no glossy sheen, but rather seemed to suck light in and swallow it. Nor did their
eyes reflect that nearly human sensibility cherished by dog lovers. Instead they glowed with red-orange
evil, as if these canine heads were merely skull masks with eye-slits, revealing fires burning within in the
place of brains. Then the howling began.
If the look of these beast-clad demons was horrid, the empty sound of their baying was even more so.
Lamathians all around the vast perimeter of the city reacted in panic, hiding in base-ments or under beds.
Others left their houses, fleeing the deathly howls and racing away from the circling packs toward the
center of the city. Flayh had made his move.
Pezi had been at the table since midday and had eaten all the way through the afternoon into suppertime.
He had paused to look up only once, when a woman he thought he recognized
had come into the hall and gone to the head table to talk with the little prophet fellow. She was a petite
brunette, and Pezi thought she looked like one of the cute merchant wives from the castle of Uda in
Ngandib-Mar. He'd decided it couldn't be, however. She was wearing one of the light blue robes that
seemed to be the rage in this very religious land. He'd forgotten her completely when they brought out the
evening mutton.
He was working on a steaming slab of it when the panic began. At first there was only an annoying
baying and some distant screams. These puzzled him, but he didn't become alarmed until he heard the
clatter of hoofbeats outside the meet-ing hall's doors. Suddenly the room filled with initiates from every
sector of the city, all waving their arms and shouting wildly as they raced to Erri's table. Pezi watched as
Erri calmed them and appointed one to tell the story. "Dogs!" the man shouted. "The city is ringed by
slavering dogs with huge teeth and fires for eyes! Great mobs are pouring into the city square outside!
Listen, Prophet!" The messenger hushed, and the hor-rified screams from outside were clearly audible
throughout the room.
"It's Flayh, obviously," Erri said. "He and the royal family have chosen to make this the night. And if
Pelmen had only..." The prophet trailed off.
Pezi wrinkled his nose in concern. Any mention of Pelmen
made him feel very uncomfortable.
Erri was shouting. "Don't just stand there!" he said to his initiates. "Start bothering the Power with
petitions!"
Eating interested Pezi. Praying didn't. And since he knew these dogs were indeed from Flayh, and that
they were surely heading for this very hall, he did the only sensible thinghe kicked over his bench and
dashed for the double doors.
The streets were filled with screaming people, and Pezi soon joined them, also screaming at the top of
his lungs. A pack of the black hounds rounded the comer a hundred yards away, and he bolted for
safety.
He ran shrieking down an alleyway, certain a dog would leap from every darkened corner to tear out his
throat. None did. In fact, for all their howling, Pezi had yet to see one of the beasts actually spring at
anyone. But he reasoned that if he were a hungry dog, he'd pick somebody fat and slow to pounce
on. Since he fitted that description so perfectly, Pezi could not allow himself to rest. He waddled
breathlessly onward.
Despite his panic, there was a pattern to his flight. He picked his alleys well, seeking those that would
lead him closer to the prize that had lured him to Lamath in the first place. He made his way to the
tugolith pits. He was planning to kidnap some monsters.
It was, on the face of it, a ludicrous idea. But given Pezi's present circumstances and the childlike nature
of the beasts he planned to steal, it all made perverse sense. Pezi was out of favor with his uncle
Flayha dangerous state to remain in for very long. He needed to pull off some coup to restore himself
to Flayh's good graces, and the gift of a herd of gigantic beasties seemed to be just the thing.
The trouble was, Pezi knew nothing of his uncle's plans. He'd expected some activity in Lamath, but
nothing in this scale! Flayh was going all out to topple the prophet, evidently planning to replace him with
that dolt of a princeling from the royal family. The dogs were to panic the populacea very effective
ruse, Pezi noted with a shiver. He noticed fires had been startedby the royalist supporters, no doubt.
But how was all of this to turn the tide against the prophet?
He happened to glance up in time to see his answer flash by overhead. He grunted involuntarily and
froze against the wall. The shadow quickly passed, and he shuddered. He shook his head and chuckled
in terrified amazement. Now he under-stood. A howl only thirty yards behind him made him jump, and
sped him quickly on his way. In moments he reached the tugolith pit.
The giant beasts were restless. The chaotic night had af-fected them, too. Even monsters could get
frightened, espe-cially when they knew enough to recognize fear in people, but not enough to realize why
the people were afraid. Thuganlitha was taking his anxiety out on an unfortunate peer when the fat little
form above him caught his enormous eye.
"You here again?" he snarled. This was actually a major mental feat for Thug. He'd made the connection
between this round little man and the one who'd been watching them for days.
Pezi summoned his courage. This particular tugolith could be nasty, and Pezi didn't relish the thought of
traveling with
him. But it was time to seize the beast by the hornmeta-phorically, of courseand set his plan into
action. With luck, Flayh's nighttime attack could provide just the cover needed to sneak a pack of six-ton
beasts out of the city. Besides, Pezi doubted any dog could get at him if he rode astride one of
Thuganlitha's more accommodating comrades. Pezi cleared his throat. "Indeed, I am here again,
Thuganlitha. I'm pleased that you remember me."
"I remember something else," Thug rumbled menacingly. "Oh?" Pezi chuckled nervously. "What's that?"
He was afraid he knew.
"I said I would horn you."
Pezi remembered. "Ah, yes. Well, perhaps we can delay that until Dolna's instructions have been
followed."
"Dolna?" a sleepy voice right below him asked. "Where's
Dolna?"
Pezi was relieved to see the peaceable Chimolitha joining the conversation. This tugolith had sense.
"Dolna's been delayedby the fires, you know. But he's sent me to gather you beasties together and
lead you out" "He called me a beastie!" Thuganlitha trumpeted, enraged. He suddenly began making
every effort to get out of the pit and at Pezi. Sudden terror gave the fat merchant's skin the color and
texture of a toadstool.
"Man? You shouldn't call us that," Chimolitha complained. "II'mprofoundly sorry! I apologize! I
really do! Sin-cerely!"
"He apologizes, Thuganlitha," Chimolitha drawled. "... called me a beastie, called me a beastie..."
"Thuganlitha!" Chimolitha trumpeted into Thug's ear. "He
apologized."
Thuganlitha stopped horning up the dirt and looked back at Chimolitha balefully. "Why do they always
apologize?" he
mourned.
Chim shrugged. "Because you scare them." "Why can't they wait until after I've horned them?" "Because
they'd be dead!" Chimolitha sighed, exasperated. "I know." Thuganlitha grinned wickedly and rolled his
huge
eyes back up to fix on Pezi.
"Ahem," the merchant went on, seeking to muddle through.
"The fact remains that Dolna has sent me to lead you out of
the city to safety."
"Dolna?" said Chimolitha. "Where is Dolna?"
Smiling politely, Pezi patiently repeated himself. He figured
he'd be doing a lot of that in the days to come.
Herded by the howling to the vast city square, the mob stood outside Erri's window and clamored for a
miracle. At one point the prophet stepped out and watched as a line of blue-clad initiates struggled to
hold the people back. Suddenly there was a shout, and the sea of faces turned skyward. Knowing what
he would see, Erri turned his own unwilling gaze above, as someone shouted, "The dragon! Lord Dragon
is upon us!"
Gliding across the city's center flew Vicia-Heinox, scaly wings flung wide and both throats screaming.
Apparition or not, the dragon certainly looked real, its scales casting back a polished copper reflection of
the thousand blazes that flamed throughout the city.
"Lord Dragon has reclaimed us!" someone in the crowd screeched. In moments it became a chant.
"All right," Erri said to himself and to the Power; he turned on his heel and went inside. Moments later
when his grim-faced initiates burst into his cell to spirit him away, they found him already packed. The
book was tucked under one arm; over the other shoulder he'd slung an ancient seabag, containing among
other things the precious pyramid. He smiled sadly. "Shall we go?"
"Where, Prophet?" someone pleaded anxiously.
"Why, where else?" the old sailor barked. "To a ship, man! To a ship!"
CHAPTER FOUR
The Dread
Pelmen felt the net the moment he crossed the last line of pines and soared out over Ngandib-Mar.
There was that odd, prickly feeling he'd experienced so many times before, like cold fingers rubbing the
down of his underbelly the wrong way, or spiderwebs breaking around his beak. Alert to the danger, he
plummeted a thousand feet toward the grass of the parks and burrowed there among the bushes like a
quail. The sen-sation passed. He'd escaped a magical net and he trembled with relief. Nevertheless, the
shaper who had cast it was now warned. It would be woven again in moments, and Pelmen slapped the
brush with his widespread wings and skimmed the grass tops in an evasive loop to the southeast.
He didn't think. He simply flew. After an hour of weaving through the crystal-berry bushes, he changed
direction again and shot once more into the heavens. He was gambling that he had eluded the net and for
the moment, at least, he was right.
He still had a long way to go across a large chunk of Ngandib-Mar. He had no doubt that Dorlyth had
rallied his supporters in the glade of mod Carl. But where were they now? If they were coveredand
surely they must bethey could be anywhere in the Mar and yet remain completely hidden. He might
have flown over them already, or even among them, blinded by the covering spell into seeing men as
crystal-berry shrubs. But he reasoned that the glade was a convenient location to wait until battle started,
and it was obvious that the Mar was not yet fully mobilized. Dorlyth picked his battlefields care-fully.
Pelmen hoped his warrior friend had lingered.
Naturally, the covering shaper would have hidden the glade.
Although he'd been there many times and had often cloaked it himself, Pelmen knew he would have to
study the surrounding forest carefully or he'd miss it. If he couldn't find it from the air, he'd be forced to
take to the ground and his human form and waste time and energy in the magical activity termed
"pierc-ing the cloak." That would be dangerous as well as time-consuming, if this rival shaper was still
trying to net him. Expecting the search to be arduous, he paused for a moment atop the Rock of Tombs
and rested.
The Rock of Tombs was nearly cylindrical, looking from the distance bke a blanched, broken bone
pointing jagged splin-ters at the sky. It towered over a gentle wood that formed the deceptively innocent
northern edge of the Great South Fir. The spire's sheer faces were scored with vertical crevices; at the
bottom of nearly every crack was jammed the coffin of an ancient Man great. As a tower of tombs it was
oldolder by far than the dragon. In those distant days, wedge-shaped sar-cophagi of white marble had
been hoisted to the heights. When all the words were spoken and the last song sung, each wedge had
been loosed above a fissure. It had fallen, then, like a snowy-white axe head, to lodge thunderously in the
mountain's cleftand in the people's history. Pelmen had visited the place frequently, for there were
powers on this Rock, and sometimes they'd proved helpful. Their presence here formed a kind of fog of
force, and he hoped to hide himself within it. He needed some respite from the threat of that net.
Who had cast it? That was a senseless question and Pelmen knew it. Speculation was a waste of time,
for he knew of several who could weave such, and there was always the possibility of a new shaper
appearing on the sceneas Flayh had done. He disregarded the thought, turning all his attention to the
important task at hand. It would take his total concentration to fly safely to the glade while so exposed.
Once there, he could reassume his human shape and either cloak himself or come under the coverage of
whatever shaper Dorlyth should have hired. But he couldn't fly and cloak both. Even a wizard of
unlimited power couldn't do more than one thing at a time. At least, Pelmen hoped not. He surely
couldn't.
The wind stirred his feathers. Pelmen rocked uneasily from one taloned foot to the other, then scratched
his way higher onto the pinnacle of the Rock of Tombs. For all the protection it offered, there was danger
here, too.
It wasn't ghosts he feared. Had that been so, this was a frightful place indeed, for if ghosts there were,
the most pow-erful in the Mar surely prowled these desolate crevices. Ngandib-Mar had long been a
magic land, and among its greats had been many shapers. Wedged into a crack somewhere below him
was the body of Nobalog, the wizard who had given life to a castle. There, too, were some who'd helped
in the making of the dragon. A wedge had also been cut and dropped in the memory of the shaper
named Sheth, although that sorcerer's remains were not within it. Vicia-Heinox had consumed him. Still, if
his spirit lived on, would it not be here as likely as in any other place? Here the mighty clustered together
in sleep.
But Pelmen didn't fear dead sorcerers; he feared living ones. The powers upon this spire of stone could
be used against him as easily as he could use them to his advantage. That was why he recoiled in shock
as a pastel glow appeared on a crag above him and shaped itself into a female form.
It could only be Mar-Yilot. Pelmen changed shapes and turned to face her. Then he gasped in surprise.
The woman blinked her eyes and struggled to focus them on him. "Pelmen?" she mumbled.
"Bronwynn!" he replied. "What are you doing here?"
"I... I guess... looking for you?" Her eyes sagged shut again and she reeled. He jumped up the rock and
reached out to steady her. His hand passed through her arm. Then he under-stood.
"Bronwynn," he said quietly but with grave authority, "you must listen to me."
"I'm listening," she replied, a bit petulantly, like a pouting child.
"You must open your eyes."
She obeyed him, then seemed to catch interest and to waken. "Where am I?" she asked quickly.
"At home in your bed, I wager. You tell me, Lady Bron-wynn."
"I... I'm sleeping. Aren't I? And all of this is a dream" Suddenly she looked down and caught her
breath at the sight of the forest so far below them.
"Don't be frightened, Bronwynn, and don't fall!" Pelmen snapped.
"What would happen if I did?" she asked anxiously.
"You'd wake up in the Imperial House of Chaomonous, and we'd have lost this opportunity. Look into
my eyes!" Bron-wynn obeyed. "Now tell me why you're here."
His eyes held hers, and she relaxed into them, forgetting the fearsome height completely. "1 was longing
to see you, to hear news of my Rosha. I stood on the rooftop, gazing north-ward for a sign. At last I saw
on the horizon a tiny speck of blueI was sure the flyer brought word from you, and I raced to Maliff 's
side to grab the message from his hand. It was from Lamath, true, but not from you. Nor did it bear any
news I wished to hear. Ambassador Joss was reporting that the royal family had again seized control of
Lamath and that the dragon was once more in the sky. I think I cried myself to sleep. I wish that were the
dream instead of this!"
"What of Erri?" Pelmen asked stonily.
"Disappeared, and the core of his followers with him."
"And Joss?"
"He's still in Lamath, awaiting my instructions. I don't know what to do. I'd rather march to
Ngandib-Mar!"
"No!" Pelmen commanded. He quickly added, "My dear Queen, I urge you not to. There's no need for
you there, not as yet. And if Erri is fleeing, he may need your home as a haven."
"Why should that prevent me from marching?" Bronwynn snapped.
"Recall for a moment what happened the last time Chao-monous warred upon the Mar?"
"The Golden Throng was destroyed and the Dorlyth killed my father. But I'm not my father, and I"
"Then don't be the fool he was! You've missed my point, Bronwynn. When he left for Dragonsgate, your
father left his crown behind as well. Ligne usurped his throne before he was a day's march up the road."
"Ligne's dead"
"You think there aren't scores of others like her? Many witnessed her rise to power and would like to
model their own success after hers. You haven't held the crown even as long as she did! Be wise, Queen
Bronwynn. Be wise and stay home."
"I want to see Rosha!" Bronwynn frowned.
"I'll find him for you, my Lady, and send you word as soon as I do."
"Can't I come with you?" she pleaded.
"You're not really here," Pelmen explained. He passed his hand through her head to demonstrate. "You
see?"
"And yet I am\ This isn't just a dreamis it? I don't understand."
"I told you long ago, my Lady, that you had the potential within you to shape. You're experiencing
dream-search, a low-level cousin of a spell someMar-Yilot, for exampleare very practiced at
controlling. The difficulty will be in believing it really happened when you wake. But this is shaping,
Bron-wynn. The powers are unleashed. They're abroad now in every land, and dormant shapers will
soon be waking to force those powers to their bidding. You're a budding wizard, Bronwynn. You must
be careful, for there may be others in Chaomonous who are already blossoming. That's why you need to
remain at home, if for no other reason that you know"
"What?" Bronwynn interrupted, snapping her head to one side as if answering someone's call. In that
instant she dis-appeared.
Mar-Yilot stood at her tower window and snarled in dismay. "Lost you!" she wailed. "Lost you again!"
A wind swirled around the spire in response, the backwash of an enormous projection of her power.
"In my net," she murmured. "You were in my net and I could have reeled you here like a fishlike a fish,
Pelmen! Oh, I'll have you yet. Where are you now? Hiding? Show yourself, Dragonsbane," she sneered,
"or do you fear this frail girl who taunts you!"
No one stood in the tower beside her, nor were there any mirrors to reflect her image back at her. But in
that moment Mar-Yilot looked anything but frail. The backwash wind whirled into the window, streaming
her autumn hair back over her shoulders. Her eyebrows knitted above her grain-colored eyes as she
peered defiantly into the distancethe far distance. She saw neither the walls of Seriliath nor the fields
beyond them, but rather other fields and forests a hundred miles distant. She sought vainly to think like a
falcon, diligently searching through
the bushes and trees where Pelmen had first brushed her net. She cursed herself for not being ready for
him. Her attention had wavered for just a moment and she'd lost him. It would not waver again!
In her fury, Syth was forgotten.
The army of the north galloped down the cobbled streets of Seriliath, and the townsfolk responded with
delirious pride. As the gray and blue standard of Sythia Isle snapped fiercely above their heads, the
citylord's followers shouted themselves hoarse.
That was for show. Once out of sight of the fortified walls, Syth slowed his riders to a sensible, cautious
trot. "We need to move slowly so Mar-Yilot can track us," Bainer explained unnecessarily to Tuckad
mod Pak. Bainer always talked when he was nervous and today he was frightened out of his wits. It
promised, therefore, to be a tedious journey for his com-panions.
As usual, Tuckad ignored Bainer. "Why doesn't she ride with us?" he growled at Syth, who studied the
road ahead calmly. Tuckad mod Pak was the Lord of Drabeld, the other major fortified city of the north.
A quick-thinking man with a mercurial smile and the shoulders and strength of a woodsman, he was
Syth's foremost ally in this conflict. He was tenacious and wouldn't be put off.
Syth didn't even try. "Frankly, she chose not to."
"Can't you control your woman?" Tuckad demanded, and Bainer gritted his teeth at the sudden hostility.
Syth diffused it with a low chuckle. "I can hardly control myself," he muttered and he winked at his
comrades. Bainer cackled in relief. Tuckad smiled at the mane of his horse and waited for Syth to be
serious. "She's Mar-Yilot," Syth said soberly. "She does as she chooses. And I... well, I do too." Syth
shrugged and gazed down the road.
"And has she chosen to cloak us?" Tuckad asked, his eyes grim.
"Why, of course she has!" Bainer grunted. "You think Syth would lead us out if she hadn't?"
"Has she, Syth?" Tuckad continued.
"She's covering us," their leader told them confidently, and Tuckad sat back in his saddle, satisfied.
Syth's eyes returned to the road, their studied calm hiding the uncertainty that still
seethed inside him. He'd made a statement of faith, not of fact. He had no skill at shaping, to perceive
whether that glowing aura of protection arched over them as he hoped. His faith was not groundless,
however. Of one thing he could be forever certain: Mar-Yilot loved him. As long as he was with this
army, so in spirit was she. She would never willingly expose him to any danger. But shapers were so
easily distracted....
He had tuned out Bainer's meaningless chatter. When Tuckad spoke again, he paid attention. "Where do
the Hannis join us
Gamabel Bridge?"
Syth nodded. "Just north of the High Plateau. Kam joins
us there too."
"Kam is a very small fish. I'm far more concerned about our merchant alliesand a bit distrustful as
well. Merchants don't usually fight anybody but other merchants. What quarrel does the House of Hann
have with our lazy King Pahd?"
"No quarrel with the king. Plenty with Flayh, however. For all the fact that this Flayh now shapes,
remember, he was once the prince of the merchant house of Ognadzu. It's a recent grudge, 1 gather, but
fiercely held. Hann is the second trading house in the Mar these days. With Flayh always at the king's
ear, how can they hope for any better? As always, it's merchant versus merchant over markets."
"If that's the case, why haven't the other traders joined us? Blezwe pass through their lands this
morningand Uda, Wina and the others? They've not declared for any side that
I've heard."
"Nor will they, until the first battle's won by someone. Then they'll make the most profitable commitment.
They're traders,
remember?"
Tuckad nodded. "Well. Cerdeb meets us at the bridge as
well?"
"No, Cerdeb has circled south of the High City, not north. We'll meet him at Kam's castle. And much as
you might think Kam an insignificant friend, you can't deny he's well located."
"Very well indeed!" Bainer cackled, finding a spot where he could break back into the conversation. "He
sits on the very doorstep of Ngandib!" He proclaimed this as if it were a price-less pearl of new
information, instead of a basic factor in all of their calculations. Bainer was a bore. He could fight,
how-ever, and that was why, despite being boring, he was a baron.
He wielded a wicked mace. Besides, on the battlefield, Bainer rarely said a word, and that was when his
friends liked him most. For the moment they tolerated him, thinking their private thoughts as he rambled
on.
They met no one. That was curious, for it was the harvest season, and they'd expected to encounter an
occasional hay-wagon, at least. As the autumn sun passed its peak and started its descent, Tuckad
voiced his reservations. "Something's wrong. There's no traffic."
"It's wartime, Tuckad. The peasants are keeping their heads
down."
"No peasant I know cares a fig about war if his crop is in the field rotting. No. It's too unusual.
Someone's stopping traffic up ahead of us. They're waiting to ambush us in the ravines." There was no
alarm in the Lord of Drabeld's voice, but he did say it with conviction. "How do you know?" Syth asked.
"I can smell it," Tuckad grunted. "And I smell the screaming pig behind it."
Tuckad's words drew unexpected laughter from the other two men. He'd once again revealed his
obsession. "We're far from the lands of Chanos," Bainer scoffed.
"Not far enough for me," Tuckad snapped. "We can never be far enough for me."
"Bainer's right," Syth said. "The lands of the roaring boar are miles from the River Road. You've battled
Chanos so long his stench is always in your nostrils."
This was true. Tuckad's lands abutted those of Chanos, and they had fought about that border since the
day they met as boys. They'd warred over everything else as well, most es-pecially family problems. The
two clans were linked by a half dozen marital bonds, each relationship as stormy as the next. In times of
peace, they hated one another cordially, trading insults across the banquet tables and storing up bile for
the next conflict. When at last the standards were raised again, all the Mar could be certain that the green
bow of Tuckad and Chanos's roaring boar's head would be on opposite sides of the field.
Tuckad was adamant. "You mock my intelligence, son of Syth. Would the city of Drabeld elect a fool? I
smell the pig because he's there, because he's always there, wherever I am. I claim no shaper powers,
nor does he, yet we can track one
another as unerringly as any wizard. Mark me well. You say your lady's cloaking us, and I believe you
or I'd not be here. But if for some reason she's notif she's busy at her spell-book or battling some
shaper elsewherethey'll take us in the
ravines."
"I hope they do await us in the ravines. I've told the Hannis if we don't meet them at the bridge to turn
north and follow the road. We'll trap them between us in the very gorge they seek to use against us." Syth
said this coolly, not daring to look at Tuckad. He feared his keen companion might penetrate
his bravado.
"Nonetheless, may I suggest we send out a dozen riders to
watch our eastern flank?"
"Always a good idea, my friend. Will you see to it?" Tuckad and Syth exchanged a quick glance,
Tuckad smiling appreciatively at this opportunity for a respite from Bainer's' incessant prattle. Moments
later, when they reached the be-ginning of the lengthy gorge called the ravines, a small troop of riders
pounded up the gentle slope to their left. The main column kept to the road, which followed the riverline.
In an-other hour, the slope had become a sheer cliff. With this wall to one side and the swift-moving river
to the other, the small army was obviously vulnerable to attack. The ravines were famous for
ambushesalthough usually the attackers were slavers, descending on unsuspecting caravans carrying
goods to the north or gemstones southward. Rarely had major battles been fought here. Man chieftains
preferred honorable combat in open spaces. Even so, no Man lord would dare to travel the riverline
without coverage. The danger was obvious, but no enemy could attack what couldn't be seen.
Syth was drowsing in his saddle when Bainer suddenly interrupted himself. "What's that?" Syth's eyes
fluttered open. "What?" "There!" Bainer pointed. They spurred their mounts forward to examine the
object that had just come bouncing off the cliff when another fell, striking the ground near enough to them
to be instantly recognizable. It was a severed head.
"Whose" Syth gasped, horrified, but words failed him. He knew the face. It belonged to one of
Tuckad's foremost supporters. His head reeled. This was no Man practice. "Look," Tuckad grunted and
he pointed.
Syth pulled his gaze from the grotesque vision and looked beyond it. Blocking the road were three
armor-clad warriors, backed by a horde of grinning retainers. Three standards flut-tered on the breeze,
and Syth read their symbols at a glance. On one were the diagonal blue stripes of Belra, Citylord of
Garnabel. The second flag held the spreading oak of Ferlyth mod Kerlyth, Lord Carlog and Jorl of the
vast Furrowmar. And on the golden background of the third was the green cross of Dorlyth mod Karis,
hero of Westmouth.
Syth's mouth gaped wide in shock. "Dorlyth? Here? How did he come to be here?"
"He's an enemy, isn't he?" Tuckad rasped, his face con-torted with rage. "He's got a shaper to protect
him, doesn't he?" The warrior glared at Syth; then his scream exploded and he gouged his mount's flanks
with his spurs. As his greatsword flashed into view, a hail of arrows began dropping from the rocks
above. The army of the north surged forward to follow Tuckad.
As warriors poured around him Syth shook his head, stunned by what had happened. "Then Pelmen has
penetrated my lady's veil," he gasped, the sound of his words disappearing in the swelling thunder of
roared war cries. "But why against us? Why not against the dog! And this," he added, pointing at the
grisly object at his horse's feet. "When did Dorlyth stoop to severing heads?"
For the first time today, Bainer wasn't talking. He'd re-moved his right gauntlet and was meticulously
untying the thong that bound his mace to his saddle horn.
The battle was going poorly, but it could not have gone otherwise. Their flanking scouts had been
beheaded, so there was no horn of warning. Their magic cloak had been pene-trated, and there was no
shaper there to shield them. The enemy was above them, ahead of them, and behind them, and the river
waited silently to their right, ready to swallow quietly any who fled its way. Tuckad had been right.
They'd been am-bushed in the ravines. There was no hope.
Still, the army of the north fought valiantly. Syth and Bainer joined the fray together, hard on the heels of
their maddened comrade. Tuckad was driving wildly for the standard-bearers and cut one down before
the ambushers closed around him. He was shrieking, "Show me the pig!" over and over, and Syth
broke off and sought to fight through the crowd to succor him.
Bainer stayed behind, wordlessly hammering helmets.
A swordstroke knocked the Lord of Drabeld from his mount just as Syth slashed down the last man
between them. Syth engaged the attacker and beat him off, then wheeled his war horse and grabbed
Tuckad's forearm. "Come up!" he shouted. The wounded warrior clenched Syth's wrist and swung up
onto Syth's charger. Syth had spotted a peasant's hovel leaning, against the base of the cliff and now he
rode for it, trying to hold Tuckad on behind him with one hand as he guidexMiis horse and parried
swordstrokes with the other. At last they broke free of the melee and thundered toward the lean-to. Syth
dropped from the saddle in time to catch his moaning friend as he fell and half-dragged, half-carried
Tuckad into the dim interior. He noticed five pairs of eyes gazing at him from a comer of the room where
the peasant and his family cowered in terror. He ignored them, ripping away Tuckad's armor and trying
to stanch the flow of blood with his hand. The only light was that from the small doorway. Suddenly the
room was filled with shadow, and Syth glanced up to see who blocked the door. "I wanted to show
him," the figure grunted, jerking off his brightly painted cuirass. "I wear Belra's armor by my king's
command, but tell that snivelling cur it was the roaring boar
who slew him!"
The bright sun behind Chanos's head kept Syth from making out the man's features, but Syth knew the
voice well enough. He looked back at his dying friend, then sighed with grief. Tuckad was already dead.
"He was right," Syth growled at the warrior who gloated over them. "You really are a screaming Pig"
"And a fool," someone beyond the doorway snarled, and
Syth heard a thud. Chanos grunted, and his head snapped back into the light so that Syth could see his
grimace. Then Chanos tumbled forward, falling across the body of his boyhood foe.
Syth craned his neck to see through the doorway and im-mediately wished he hadn't. What he saw
made him sick. The armor was Dorlyth's but the face came straight from his night-mares. He'd never met
the man, but he recognized him in-stantlyby reputation. "Admon Faye?"
The slaver nodded curtly. "And you're Syth mod Syth-el, Lord of Seriliath."
"Why do you wear Dorlyth's armor?" Syth asked flatly. "Isn't it obvious?" the hideous slaver replied.
Syth nodded solemnly. Then he glanced down at the dagger hilt protruding from the back of the slain
Chanos. "I thought you were the king's man. Wasn't this pig the king's, too?"
"I'm Flayh's man, not Pahd's. If you want the truth, I'm no man's but my own. I just know how to
cooperate. This fool apparently did not. I told him he must stifle his grudge and remain disguised for ihe
sake of the grand design. He didn't. Now he's dead."
"Did you really think you had tricked us?" Syth asked bit-terly. "Dorlyth doesn't sever heads! But that's
only one of the many acts you're famous for!"
The slaver shrugged and smiled sarcastically. "Of course, we couldn't hope to deceive such a clever man
as yourself, mod Syth-e!," he goaded. "But then, you'll not be able to reveal us. As for this dead fool,
we'll drag his body off and dump it in the river. Your hot-tempered lady will be left to figure it out by
herself. I wonder, will she take the time to reason through the ruse?"
Syth watched Admon Faye's eyes. "She might," he said quietly, but Admon Faye knew he was lying and
chuckled softly. Syth knew his woman well. Of course she would believe Pelmen and Dorlyth had done
this. She wanted to believe such. He had to survive to get the truth back to Mar-Yilot! He was still on his
knees and his sword was behind him, but it would be difficult for Admon Faye to get through that small
door and to him before he could get the dagger, out of Chanos's back. He waited for the slaver to
charge.
Admon Faye chuckled again. "Planning your escape? Sorry, Syth. You must realize I can't allow that."
He pulled the shield off his shoulder and tossed it through the doorway. Syth dodged it, then looked back
at the slaver in surprise. "Dorlyth's, you know. We want to be sure your lady knows who's responsible.
As for you, I didn't come to kill you. Lord Flayh just wanted me to deliver this." Admon Faye suddenly
tossed the contents of a small bag into the hovel and wheeled outward to hide his eyes.
At the flash of green light, Syth screamed. Then he toppled onto his back, his body as rigid as that of a
statue. His eyes,
wide and staring, no longer saw this world. He wasn't dead,
but he beheld the sights of hell all the same.
The family of peasants, already terrified, found their terror multiplied a thousandfold. Witnesses, too, of
the green flash, they visited hell beside him. This was a common tool of the magic wars, generally termed
"the dread." As far as anyone knew, the spell was irrevocable.
Cold blue moonlight reflected off Syth's armor as the col-umn hurried northward through the night.
Bainer rode beside the wagon that bore Syth's body, unaware that it bore another passenger as well; a
butterfly rode astride the stricken man's helmet. Mar-Yilot had joined the retreat.
Too late! She'd seen the trick too late. Pelmen had toyed with her while Dorlyth sprang his trap, and
now her lover was lost! Guilt feasted on her feelings, gorged itself upon her. She was only dimly aware
when the column took the last fork for
Seriliath.
The walls of the city looked silvery cold, like cliffs of ice standing silently against the stars. The pace
picked up. Soon the lead riders were exchanging muted conversation with the gatekeepers, and the
portals swung open to admit the weary warriors. As they climbed the winding cobblestones to the castle
there were no cheers. The city slept on. It was four in the morning, and the turning wheels that bore their
lord and his mourning lady made as little impression on the sleepers as the milk wagon. As dawn broke
and the city came awake, the word would spread, and with disbelieving tears the people would fill the
streets to mourn the fallen. For now they slept on, and Mar-Yilot envied their rest. She wondered if she
would
ever sleep again.
As the wagon reached the palace, the butterfly left, soaring up through an open window high in the tower
above. There Mar-Yilot took her human form and stepped to a mirror to check her appearance. She
looked horrible. Her hair was in disarray and her cheeks were so pale they looked bleached. At least her
face wasn't tear-streaked. One advantage of her al-tershape was that a butterfly couldn't weep. She
pushed her hair into some semblance of order, then steeled herself to de-scend the stairs. This was for
Bainer's sake. Bainer would need to see her strength.
The armor-clad body had been laid on a bier in the lord's chamber. Neither torches nor candles burned
here, but the room was lined on both sides by tall windows, and Mar-Yilot had ordered that these be
opened despite the cold. Moonlight fell across the body. The loyal Bainer crouched over it.
"Is he dead?" she asked tonelessly.
Bainer didn't seem startled. "Would that he were."
"Why!" Mar-Yilot snarled, her anger flaring.
"Because he lives, my Lady, only to gaze on hell! Look at him!" Bainer reached forward to raise Syth's
visor, but Mar-Yilot stepped forward and caught his hand.
"No," she whispered. Her eyes forced him back away from the body. Then she turned away, and sighed
deeply. "You saw his face yourself?"
"I closed his helmet."
"And you're familiar with the dread?"
"I'm no novice in magical wars. I've seen it before."
Her golden eyes flicked back to lock onto his. "Who's responsible?" she grunted.
"It was Dorlyth mod Karis. By my mace, I swear it. And Ferlyth and Belra with him."
Mar-Yilot trembled with rage. "And Pelmen?" she asked.
"I saw no shaper on the field today," Bainer said boldly. "Who it was is for you to say. I know only what
I saw in Syth's eyes, and that's far more of magic than I ever cared to learn in a lifetime."
"I had him in my net!" Mar-Yilot wailed, and the tears welled up inside her.
Bainer stumbled backward, mumbling, "Should I go, my Lady?"
She fought the sorrow down, controlling it once more. Then she sought out his eyes in the dark. "You
must do one more thing, Bainer, before 1 release you from this ill-favored alliance. Carry him home to
Sythia Isle. Go now, before the light of day brings the mourners out to clog the streets. I'll cover your
every step and cover the barge as well until you beach upon the island. Do that for Syth, Bainer, and for
me. Then you're free to seek your best interests elsewhere."
"Free?" Bainer snorted. "For what? To join the king? To link myself with the traitor Dorlyth? Or would
you have me blend back into the landscape like these other barons who are
so afraid of losing they choose not to choose 'til the battle's lost? I'll bear Syth to the islands, my Lady,
and return home. There I'll wait."
"For what?" Mar-Yilot asked bitterly. "For your command. You'll think of something." Mar-Yilot took a
deep breath and gazed at this loyal friend. "Indeed, Bainer, perhaps I have done so already. Send the
servants in to fetch him, and prepare to carry him home."
Bainer nodded and left. As he closed the door, the sorceress collapsed across her lover's body. She
permitted herself very few tears, however. By the time the servants arrived, she was already back up in
her tower. From that lofty perch she cloaked the last, long leg of Bainer's weary march, giving her full
attention to getting her loved one home. Once the barge had beached on Sythia Isle she departed,
unwilling to waste even a single moment. She threw herself over the balustrade and fluttered off toward
the southa very angry, very dangerous butterfly.
CHAPTER FIVE
Wings of Fire
Pelmen saw the glade clearly from the sky. Obviously Dorlyth was no longer there, or it would have
been cloaked. He was about to veer northeast to fly to Dorlyth Castle when he decided to check the
glade anyway. Perhaps his friend had left him a message. He was shocked to drop through the trees and
find a small army assembled on the grass.
"Pelmen!" Rosha shouted.
"He's come indeed!" Ferlyth added as Pelmen struck the ground as a falcon and immediately took his
human form. Dorlyth said nothing, but stood struggling to stifle a self-satisfied smile. He wondered to
himself how Pelmen always
managed to time his entrances so precisely and put it down to the actor's instinct.
Pelmen had arrived at a critical moment. Dorlyth and Ferlyth faced a mutinous, foul-spirited band of
men. Nor did Pelmen's abrupt appearance automatically end the confrontation. "What's happening?" he
asked.
"It's a bit of a rebellion," Ferlyth answered.
Dorlyth shrugged. "Some of our warriors are angry with me. Probably with reason."
"Where's your coverage?" Pelmen frowned, and Dorlyth raised his bushy eyebrows.
"That's the reason."
"No one's cloaking you?" Pelmen gasped, astonished. "How long has this been going on?"
"Long enough for us all to have been fried by a fire circle, if any shaper had thought us worth the trouble.
Fortunately, we've managed to wait here rather quietly without offending anyone."
"No one knows you're here?"
"Now I didn't say that." Those eyebrows, grayer now than Pelmen remembered, underscored Dorlyth's
frown. "The Au-tumn Lady knows our whereabouts, and probably Flayh does too. I must say I've never
longed to see anyone so much as I've wished that you would appear."
"Is this all of you?" Pelmen asked, turning to the band of fighters.
"Not all," a brave man finally answered, not troubling to hide the bitterness he felt. "We were never
many, but we were enough. But Lord Belra's broken with these two lords and gone to Garnabel to hire
Joooms."
Pelmen raised an eyebrow and looked back at Dorlyth. "Belra, Lord Gamabel? An ally?"
"Well he was..." Dorlyth sighed.
"I've always respected him as an enemy. He'd certainly make a worthy friend."
"Perhaps we can win him back, now that you're here."
Pelmen gazed at his old friend. "I really didn't come to fight," he said honestly.
"You never do." Dorlyth shrugged. "Yet you somehow manage to become involved. I know, I know.
No promises. But while we stand here talking about it, would you mind
putting a cloak up over us? We've been naked so long I've
started to feel the chill."
Pelmen smiled. "It's been in place ever since I entered the clearing. I care about my security, unlike some
foolhardy
friends!"
Dorlyth nodded sardonically and turned to face his surly army. "There now," he said, gesturing. "Pelmen
Dragonsbane. I said he would come and he's here. Would any man deny that we're now the best
protected force in the land?" No one replied. They all knew Pelmen's reputation. "And with that
protection, we now have some chance against these demons in dogflesh. Sharpen your swords. Now
we're prepared to fight!" Dorlyth turned his back and started walking away, effectively dismiss-ing the
mutinous company. The warriors began slipping away to their own tents as Pelmen, Rosha, and Ferlyth
fell in behind
the striding leader.
Once inside the fish-satin tent. Dorlyth breathed a sigh of relief. "Dramatic timing, my friend, but you
could have saved some wear and tear on my old heart by appearing sooner."
"I didn't even know I was coming! I got a message from Bronwynn requesting that I find her vanished
husband, so nat-urally I expected to find him here. I had no idea you were so
vulnerable!"
"Why don't you check on us from time to time?" Dorlyth
scolded. "Mar-Yilot does."
"Has she been here?" Pelmen asked with alarm.
"Once," Rosha grunted.
"Which is often enough," Dorlyth added. "By that, I mean her form was herelike a wraith."
"There are several things that Mar-Yilot does that I can't.
That's one of them."
"Not true," Dorlyth muttered. "I've seen you. Trouble is, you don't practice. If you would, maybe we
could stay in closer
touch with you."
"In any case, I'm here now. And since, as you say, I always get involved, regardless of how I might try
to avoid it, you can be sure that I'll do what I can to aid you."
"Good. Rosha, send a flyer to Gamabel. Inform the im-patient Belra that he can leave Joooms in peace
and spare himself some treasure. And tell him to get his red mustache back down herewe need to
plan."
Rosha nodded and started through the tent flap. "And while you're at it," Pelmen added, "why not send
your wife word of where you are."
Dorlyth turned to frown at his son. "Haven't you done that yet? I thought you loved that girl!"
"I do," Rosha snapped. "It's just that, if I tell her where I am, she's apt to send an army to protect me!
How would you like an army chasing you around?"
"Right now I wouldn't turn it down," Dorlyth joked, wink-ing at Pelmen.
The wizard didn't smile. "The trouble is, she may send it anyway."
Dorlyth quickly grew serious. "That wouldn't do at all. We've enough factions within this nation. We
certainly don't need our wealthy southern neighbor sticking her big nose in where it isn't needed. You
realize that's just a figure of speech, son, not a comment on your lady's facial features."
"Do send the flyers," Pelmen urged, "but be careful how you word your message to her. What am I
saying! She's your wife. You know how best to deal with her." Rosha nodded a bit doubtfully, Pelmen
thoughtand left the tent.
Dorlyth stroked his beard reflectively. "She's thinking of invading?"
"I've done my best to dissuade her. Perhaps she'll listen."
"I hope for her sake she does. Ferlyth, tell him what you know."
Lord Ferlyth turned his icy blue gaze on Pelmen. "Terril the twin-killer has entered the service of Lord
Flayhwhether willingly or unwillingly is not known. It is known that Flayh has sent him southto the
extreme south, across Arl Lake and the westernmost spur of the Great South Fir. His orders are to
create havoc in that region."
"Which is southern Chaomonous."
"Exactly. It is also known that Terril has been promised the whole of Chaomonous as a fiefdom if he can
succeed in taking it. I assume he'll use every resource at his disposal. You would know more about that
than I. As you recall, Terril's altershape is a"
"Yes," Pelmen said thoughtfully. "Terril the twin-killer is a sugar-clawsp."
"Of course, Terril's not much of a warrior," Dorlyth put
in, "But he certainly can cause problems if he's highly moti-vated."
"And nothing moves Terril like greed," Pelmen murmured. He was deep in thought, remembering the
days long ago when he'd battled the clawsp and the other shapers to a standstill.
"I hate to interrupt your meditations," Dorlyth drawled, "but since you're here, there's another friend you
might want to visit."
Pelmen glanced up, his brow wrinkling with curiosity and hope. "What friend?" he asked eagerly.
Dorlyth laughed. "You say that as if you're surprised you have any friends!"
"It's just that the ones I do have keep disappearing! What friend?"
Now Dorlyth frowned. "I'm sorry. I fear now my news will only disappoint you."
"Why? Who is it?" Pelmen demanded.
"It's just a horse"
"A horse? Minaliss?" Pelmen grinned.
"If that's what you call that big roan stallion you stole from the merchant Pezi"
"Where is he?" Pelmen whooped with delight, and he dashed out the tent flap without waiting for an
answer.
Dorlyth turned to Ferlyth and slipped his tongue into his cheek. "It's so reassuring, isn't it, to have a
shaper who always maintains his composure?"
Shivering at the cold, Pelmen walked the perimeter of the camp, checking the efficacy of his spell.
Cloaking was a simple task once a shaper disciplined his mind to it. Pelmen could keep this magical
baffle in place even in his sleepprovided his sleep was not disturbed by that other, far more potent
Power. He remembered when he had lain down with confidence, cer-tain no force on earth could
penetrate his carefully woven barrier. He smiled ruefully at such memories now. He was no longer his
own. The Power had placed a stamp upon him, and part of that mark was a humility born of uncertainty.
He could never be sure, now, when he might be summoned. Often, in responding to that call, he'd
witnessed his own careful plans evaporate in the shift of circumstance. Yet he wasn't unhappy in this.
There burned within him a sense of personal purpose
that had always been lacking when he'd called himself his own. And the world, with its entangling webs
of sorcery and deceit, seemed to him an altogether less frightful place, for he knew that righting it did not
depend on him alone. He took comfort in thatthe uncertain comfort of faith.
"Pelmen!" Dorlyth barked from his tent. "Come in out of that wind, fool! You'll freeze your rump and
won't be able to ride!"
Pelmen realized that his fingers and toes were indeed numb, and he headed toward the shelter. "I should
think a numb bottom might be an advantage," he jested.
"If you want to experiment, you can stand here in the tent flap and stick it out, but I prefer your hands
and eyes and brain to go unfrozen, since that's what's protecting us. There," he said, pointing across the
tent with one hand as he closed the flap behind Pelmen with the other.
Pelmen's eyes widened and he smiled. "Bless you," he murmured. "But how did you manage"
"I had to bring Minaliss in any case, didn't I? Might as well bring my bathtub along on his back."
"How did you get it on his back?" Pelmen exclaimed.
Dorlyth rolled his eyes. "It wasn't easy, I'll grant you. I had to lie." He leaned forward. "I told him it was
for you."
"Why did you have to bring him in any case? How did you come to find him?"
"He found me, I didn't find him. As to whyI figured you'd come wheeling in here on the wing, instead
of mounted like any sensible warrior on a war horse."
"But then what about your bathtub?" Pelmen asked, raising a mocking eyebrow, "won't you have to
leave it behind when we ride?"
Dorlyth frowned. "I've been studying that. You wouldn't mind riding on top of it, would you?"
Pelmen laughed and stepped out of his sandals as he walked across the fish-satin floor. "When is this
ride taking place? And where are we going?"
"Bathe first," Dorlyth said, pulling the curtain between him-self and his guest. "We can discuss more
minor matters later Ferlyth? Rosha? I'm for a game of Drax; what of you?"
The others responded from the far side of the tent as Pelmen peeled off his garments and stepped into
the steaming water
At first, his toes protested the sharp contrast between this and the cold outside, but they quickly grew
accustomed to it. Soon he was soaking in water up to his chin, letting the warmth soothe muscles weary
beyond expression. He relaxed. His mind more weary even than his muscles, floated with the bobbing of
his hair in the water. Ears immersed, he heard only enough of the raucous game being played beyond the
curtain to be soothed by it. He was among friendspowerful friends, who could be trusted to bear their
share of responsibilities in the coming conflict. Those reassuring voices, distorted by the water, lulled him.
For the first time in what seemed like years, he rested.
The game ended with Ferlyth the victor, which wasn't un-usual. Dorlyth was a wily soldier and an artful
strategist, but for some reason was an awful Drax player. As Pelmen stepped from the bath, Dorlyth was
heaping verbal abuse on his laughing son for not helping him win. Pelmen chuckled to himself, and
Dorlyth shouted, "There's warm skins there," and went back to his recriminations.
Pelmen dried off, wrapped himself in the skins, and stepped out to join his companions. "Feel better?"
Dorlyth asked.
"Much. I feel like I'm home. Why don't I spend more time here?"
"You never answer me when I ask you that," Dorlyth grum-bled, "so why should I answer you? Sit
down."
Pelmen sat on a mat and leaned back against a saddle. "When do you plan to ride?"
"Not before Belra returns, and that will take a couple of days. And not then without some purpose.
We've been rather safe here, but we've also been blind. Unless Lord Garnabel brings some news with
him, or you know something, I've no idea what our best move might be."
"What do you want to achieve?" Pelmen asked soberly.
"The overthrow of the present Pahd and the demise of this new shaper who controls him."
"You blame Pahd for this war?"
"I blame Pahd for not stopping it! Yes, I blame Pahd. Force of habit, I supposethere's been a Pahd at
the root of every war I've fought in."
"Except the war with Chaomonous. I was the cause of that, remember?" Pelmen leaned back against his
saddle and laced
his fingers behind his head. "And Pahd helped you end that one."
"You're defending the sloth?" Dorlyth asked sharply.
"Perhaps. But not his slothfulness. Pahd's been a poor king, but then he never should have been king.
You should have." Ferlyth, who had been listening carefully to Pelmen, nodded in agreement.
"Let's not cover that ground again," Dorlyth grunted.
"Very well. I'm saying only that Pahd has always been weak and we've all known it. But that war with
Chaomonous was precipitated by more than just my confusing of the dragon. It had been carefully
plotted by the merchant council, led by the very man who now controls poor Pahd."
"Flayh," Dorlyth murmured, nodding. "Rosha's told me a bit about this new shaper. I remember well how
he and Tohn mod Neelis took council together against me through their crystal pyramids. Rosha tells me
one of those talking devices is now in Bronwynn's hands."
"It is, though I keep advising her to lock it away forever. Flayh attacked me magically through the
pyramids. Except for good fortuneor some powerful interventionI'd bear scars of that battle on my
face."
"They say Flayh does," Rosha broke in excitedly. "They say his face and bald pate are a pale blue, but
for a pair of pink handprints over his eyes!"
"Who says that?" Pelmen asked.
Dorlyth shrugged. "There were certain members of the court who occasionally passed along information
to us. One hap-pened to glimpse the shaper's face. I'm told he usually remains hidden."
"The same spy told you?"
Dorlyth shook his head. "Those who once helped us have now disappeared. Flayh is more secretive
than Pahd. And he's hired a deadly enforcer to keep his secrets safe."
"Who's that?" Pelmen said flatly, certain that he already knew.
"Admon Faye," Rosha said under his breath.
Pelmen nodded. "That's bitter news, but I'm not surprised. The two men have worked together before.
Indeed, they seem to fit one another. Especially now, since you tell me the face of one is as marred as
that of the other." Pelmen subsided, absorbed in his own thoughts. They were bleak and heavy with
despair, for he well knew that Admon Faye was first and fore-most a slaver, and that his familiar haunts
were in the Great South Fir. Often in these weeks since Serphimera's disap-pearance he'd imagined her
kidnapped by the killer. This was the worst thought imaginable, more terrible than the possibility of her
death. Admon Faye was a cruel manPelmen had experienced that cruelty firsthandand Flayh was
doubly so. While Pelmen's relationship with Serphimera had never been made public, it was surely no
secret to those who made secrets their business. Pelmen had given both men plenty of cause to hate him.
What might these two do to her, in order to get at him?
"Pelmen!" Dorlyth growled, and the shaper came to himself.
"Yes?"
"1 thought you were about to disappear!"
Pelmen grunted. "Just thinking of Admon Faye."
"I try to do that as little as possible myself. Ruins the digestion."
"Rosha," Pelmen asked sharply, "have you heard any word about Serphimera?"
Rosha had been lost in thoughts of his own, revolving around those precious pyramids. Now he
frowned. "1 thought she was with you!"
"She was. She disappeared at the southern edge of the Great South Fir."
"You think the slaver's got her?" Rosha asked anxiously.
"I don't know. I don't know what to think."
"Who's Serphimera?" Dorlyth frowned.
"A woman," Pelmen said. "A priestess."
"A priestess!" Dorlyth snorted. "Of Lamath, then? I warned you to stay away from those Lamathian
women! All they think about is religion!"
Pelmen nodded sadly. "That's certainly Serphimera. And that's another of my fears. Flayh has managed
somehow to create an illusion of the dragon and has resuscitated the dead Dragonfaith."
Rosha gazed at him, dumbfounded. "The dragon flies again?"
"So your own lady tells me, as well as witnesses in Lamath. In fact, I've chanced to have conversation
with the ghostly
beast myself. I worry that perhaps Serphimera has reverted back to her old faith..."
"I don't follow any of this," Dorlyth grunted impatiently. "The dragon's alive again? And your woman is
its priestess?"
"Let's just say that Flayh is far more powerful than I realized when I battled him through the crystals.
And that power appears to be growing."
"So. He's a shaper, you're a shaper. Pahd's a swordsman, I'm a swordsman. Admon Faye's evil is well
known to all of us, and so is his skill with weapons, but my son here bested him in a face-to-face
struggle. Let's fight them."
"I wish it was all so simple, Dorlyth." Pelmen sighed.
"You mean it's not? Why not? What's different between this and any other war of confederation?"
"The level of powers in use. Flayh is more than just another shaper. He has powers beyond any I've
seen, beyond any I knew existed! He controls King Pahd, and thereby this nation. He controls a vision of
the dragon, and thus he enslaves La-math. You tell me he controls Terril as well, who potentially could
demoralize Chaomonous. He's brought the High Fortress to menacing, hostile life and a horde of
scoundrels led by the prince of thieves! I can't best him aloneI doubt the Autumn Lady and I together
could, despite the fact that she's at the height of her power during this season. Anda fact not to be
forgottenshe opposes and threatens us. Your armyour armyis mutinous. Your allies, apart from
Ferlyth, have de-parted. We're small in numbers, if not in courage. My friend it's not so simple. Not
simple at all."
Dorlyth snorted.
"You don't believe me?"
"You don't believe you. You've summed up the odds in such a way that anyone but a fool would
surrender immediately. But I know you, Pelmen, and that's exactly what you area fool. A believing
fool. Otherwise why would you be here? You know me, too, and I'm just as big a fool as you! We've a
battle ahead, and by all reckoning we'll lose it. But we'll not quit it, will we?" Dorlyth paused, frowning
with great ferocity. "Well, will we?"
Pelmen gazed at him. Then a smile spread across the wiz-ard's face. "Dorlyth, for all your frequent
protests, I sometimes think you have greater faith than I."
Dorlyth snorted again.
"No," Pelmen went on. "We'll not quit. But we'll not be fools either."
"As if we'could help it," his grizzled companion muttered sourly.
"What?
"Never mind. Let's plan how and where to hit them. What about assassination?"
"We'd be assassinating ourselves to attempt it. His castle's alive, I told you."
"Makes no sense," Dorlyth muttered, but he was a Mari, and Maris did not question magic. "What about
some kind of alliance?"
"That's more practical. We have friends in Lamath"
"I'm not talking about your silly little priests in their flapping robes! I'm talking about warriors! Other
shapers! Mar-Yilot for example. We've done nothing to herperhaps she'll join us."
"Convincing her may prove difficult." Pelmen smiled, re-membering frequent encounters with the thin,
waif-faced witch. "Don't disregard the bluefaithers. Your son was once one of them."
"Yes, but he carried a sword under his robe, too! Didn't you?" Dorlyth demanded of his son. "Well,
didn't you?" he repeated.
Rosha hadn't been listening. "What? Oh, yes." He frowned and looked at Pelmen. "If we could only
communicate quickly with the others! I wonder about those other pyramids. Flayh has onewhere's the
other?"
"Safely hidden away by Erri, I hope."
"By Erri!" Rosha shouted.
"That's right. It was entrusted to Erri by that unfortunate merchant who witnessed my battle with Flayh. I
gave Erri the same advice I gave your wife: To hide it away from Flayh's grasping hands and to forget it. I
suggest you do the same. Those shards of crystal were never intended as devices for communication.
There is another possibility for contact, how-ever. Bronwynn appears to be developing shaper powers.
She sought me, today, in her dreams, and found me on the Rock of Tombs."
"Really?" Dorlyth asked enthusiastically. He pressed Pel-
men for details. He saw every advantage to having a shaper in the family. But his son paid no attention.
Although the news concerned his wife, Rosha never heard it. Despite Pelmen's injunction, he could not
forget those crystalline objects that held such power. Bronwynn had one; now Erri had another. Rosha
knew, now, why he'd come home.
"Not that way!" Pezi squealed, but he was too late. Rigan-litha, a particularly clumsy tugolith, had
walked through yet another fanner's garden wall.
Pezi urged Chimolitha to carry him up to the puzzled Ri-ganlitha's side, then politely asked to be allowed
down. He was standing between the two giant beasts with the rest of the herd clustered behind them
when the irate farmer came boiling around the corner of his house. The man stopped short when he
actually saw his uninvited guests. Riganlitha had a sheepish look of embarrassment on his huge face; but
to the startled Lamathian, it looked like a monstrous snarl.
"We're sorry," Chimolitha announced solemnly, and the fanner's jaw dropped open.
"It...it talks..." he whispered to his wife, who stood behind him, prudently using his body as a shield.
"I can talk, too!" Thuganlitha said belligerently from the back of the herd, and the fanner and wife beat a
hasty retreat into their cottage. The remainder of the conversation took place through the garden window.
"What are those things?" the wife called to Pezi.
"I'm not a thing!" Thuganlitha snorted before Pezi could reply. His bellicosity couldn't be mistaken. The
wife disap-peared from the window and was seen no more.
"These, ah, these are tugoliths," Pezi explained. He said it in a loud whisper, as if all of this were some
grand secret.
'Tugoliths? Really?" the farmer said, his interest perking up. "I've heard of them all my life but I never
thought I'd actually see one!"
"There are more of us than that," Chimolitha corrected.
"Than what?"
"Than one."
"Oh."
"Sorry about your wall," Pezi explained hastily, pulling his purse from his pocket as he walked toward
the window. "We
are, ah, trying to be inconspicuous, you see, so we're, ah, keeping to the back roads"
"Where are you taking them?" the farmer asked suspi-ciously.
"Taking? Them? Oh, I'm not taking them anywhere. No, no. No, we're just out for a casual stroll"
"Are they yours?"
"Well, actually"
"We're Dolna's," Chimolitha said flatly.
Riganlitha asked, "Where is Dolna?"
Thuganlitha had shouldered up next to a part of the wall that was still standing and now asked Riganlitha,
"Was it fun?"
"Was what fun?"
"To break the wall."
"I think we'd better run along now." Pezi smiled fearfully, and he counted gold coins into his hand.
"Would three suffice?"
The farmer was no longer looking at him. He was watching with horror as Thuganlitha gleefully
demolished that section of wall that had survived Riganlitha's clumsiness.
Pezi winced at the crash behind him, but he held his false smile in place as he said, "Perhaps six?"
A tool shed crumbled next. Rakes and pruning hooks flew into all corners of the garden.
"Why not twelve?" Pezi suggested.
"Can't you stop the thing?" the farmer croaked.
"Care to suggest how?" Pezi asked.
"Why not hit it?"
Thuganlitha stopped chortling and frowned.
"I think he heard you," Pezi said sorrowfully, just moments before the rampaging animal took off the end
of the house. Pezi heard some terrified screams but he didn't wait to inves-tigate them. He waddled
quickly back to the relative safety of Chimolitha's side.
Ten minutes later, as Thuganlitha bragged to the others of the herd about how easily it all had fallen, Pezi
stood in the rubble of the crumbled cottage counting gold coins into the hand of the dazed farmer:"...
fifty-six, fifty-seven, fifty-eight. There now. That ought to be sufficient."
"My house..." the man murmured.
"Maybe you'd been thinking of remodeling it anyway?"
"My garden..."
"By the way, let's just keep this our little secret, shall we? My animals and Iwe'd prefer not to be
noticed." With that, Pezi climbed up behind Chimolitha's horn once again and told her to proceed. Soon
the last pair of gigantic hindquarters had disappeared into the woods toward the south, but they could be
heard for a half hour thereafteruprooting every tree in their path.
Rosha guided his horse through the mists, moving cautiously but still maintaining a quick, steady pace.
He was certain his father had discovered his absence by now, and just as certain that Dorlyth would
follow him. Doubtless Pelmen would come as well; thus there was a good chance they would catch him.
But he'd gambled that Dorlyth would think first of his respon-sibility to his other warriors and that that
would delay them. That's what made his father a good leaderand kept him from being a hero.
Not that he hadn't been a hero in days gone by. Dorlyth's exploits had given content to more ballads
than Rosha could count. His father dismissed them all as the imaginations of ignorant songsters, but
Rosha had heard enough different ver-sions of the old stories to piece together the actual events. By any
analysis, they were impressive. Rosha idolized his father and had consciously modeled his life after
Dorlyth's. He firmly believed that individual acts of courage could change the course of history, and he
longed to find that crisis where he could play the pivotal role. He'd lost his chance to slay the dragon to
the stumbling of his tongue. When Bronwynn had needed his strong arms to help her regain her throne,
they'd been bound behind his backdue to his own dullness. Now he sensed a new opportunity, a
chance to demonstrate his courage and his cunning once and for all to his father, his brideand to
him-self. He would steal the third pyramid from Flayh's own tower.
He hadn't moved into this blindly. He had a plan for getting into the castle, a clever plan that had flashed
upon him in a moment of insight and fanned a flame of excitement within him that he'd been hard pressed
to conceal from the others. He'd studied it carefully, turning it over in his mind as he'd hunted, probing its
weaknesses, contemplating its results. It would take skill and daring to carry it out, not to mention great
stamina, courage, and some measure of simple luck. In short, it demanded a hero. That was exactly how
Rosha saw himself.
He knew Dorlytn would view the attempt as foolhardy, and Pelmen would, as well. But they were
leaders, both of them, with nothing to prove, plenty to lose, and countless people depending on them. No
one depended on him, Rosha thought sullenly. Certainly not his tart-tongued, confident little queen. How
could the ruler of the largest, most powerful empire among the three lands be dependent in any way upon
him? What had she seen in him originally, if not his raw, unrealized potential to become a force among
men? He was a hero. He could be nothing other. And he thought it fortunate that, for the moment at least,
the ties that bound him could not overrule his sense of adventure, nor divert him from accepting this
challenge. The evil Flayh possessed a magical artifact of immense power and antiquity, and Rosha would
steal it or die. It was that simple.
His horse stepped into a clearing and he noticed suddenly that the fog had fled. A few yards away an
elderly woman stooped to tie up a bundle of firewood. He would have ignored her, but suddenly she
glanced up at him, and her eyes held his in their grip. They were a deep gold in color and unusually
commanding, and he felt compelled to address her. "I'm going to the High City," he announced.
She looked at him, startled, he thought, then her eyes nar-rowed, as if to pierce him through.
"I'm Rosha mod Dorlyth," Rosha told her. He didn't know why he felt so talkative.
She raised her eyebrows as if she thought him strange, and he had to confess to himself that he did
indeed feel strange. He said so aloud. "I feel a bit awkward, talking to you like this." He smiled.
The peasant woman curtsied and gave him a thin, knowing smile. "I'm certain you do, my Lord," she
rasped.
"It's just that... I feel... my father and Pelmen are behind me. I must be going!" he finished with a shout,
aware of how senseless and unnecessary that last statement had been, and totally confused as to why
he'd said it. He drove his heels into the flanks of his horse and the animal bounded across the clearing and
into the heavy brush on the far side.
Alone now, and pleased with the information she had gar-nered, Mar-Yilot untied the scarf that had
disguised her and
shook her auburn tresses free. Then, with a self-satisfied chuckle, she set about the business of starting
her fire.
A touch on his shoulder and Pelmen was awake. His eyes blinked open and he peered up into Dorlyth's
troubled face. "Rosha's gone," Dorlyth said, his normally rough voice made raspier by the morning cold.
Pelmen frowned, and made the sacrifice of rising from his warm bed onto his elbow. "Gone?"
Dorlyth gestured to an empty corner of the tent. "You see."
Pelmen swung his legs out of the warm furs and got to his feet, keeping the rugs wrapped around his
shoulders. His toes curled at the cold of the tents floor. "He'd make a skillful thief if he could creep out of
here past both of us."
Dorlyth grunted in agreement and gazed impatiently at the floor as Pelmen wound strips of woolen cloth
around his legs. Then he flipped the tent flap aside and stepped into the cold morning air. Pelmen
followed him out.
"Perhaps he's hunting."
"He hunted yesterday," Dorlyth replied.
"Unsuccessfully"
"Or so he said."
"You disbelieve your son?" Pelmen asked Dorlyth's back.
The warrior shrugged. "My son is an excellent hunter and these woods are full of game. He was quiet
yesterday. Too quiet. You didn't notice?"
"I attributed it to poor shooting."
Dorlyth looked out toward the north, but there were no directions this morning. A thick mist clung to the
bushes and huddled around the trunks of the trees. The air was damp, and the dead leaves on the forest
floor clung quietly to their heels. "I can't remember the last time Rosha shot poorly." He swung his head
around to gaze sadly at his companion. "It wouldn't surprise me if he spent yesterday bagging and
cleaning his provisions in order to travel today. I taught him to do that." There was a trace of pride mixed
into Dorlyth's anxious tone. "The question iswhere? Back to his wife?"
"That might be the best thing he could do," Pelmen com-forted, but he didn't believe for a moment that
Rosha had returned to Bronwynn, and he knew Dorlyth didn't, either.
"Perhaps, but that's not where he went. Where, then? It had something to do with our conversation of
the night before last"
"How do you know?" Pelmen frowned.
"He got very quiet after thatevasivesmiling too broadly and all that. What was it? Bronwynn's
appearance on the Rock of Tombs?"
"I doubt it. That tale barely held his attention," Pelmen said thoughtfully.
"The dragon then? Has he gone off to"
"The pyramids," Pelmen interrupted. "That's it. He was concerned to find a way we could communicate
quickly with Erri and his wife."
"But you told him plainly that wasn't what they were for!"
"I'm afraid he'd already made up his mind."
Dorlyth studied the wet ground. "And where is this third pyramid again?" He knew the answer. He was
just double-checking facts.
"With Flayh."
Dorlyth raised his head to meet Pelmen's eyes, and said "You don't think he's fool enough to try to
penetrate the High Fortress alone, do you?"
"He's your son," Pelmen said pointedly.
Dorlyth shook his head, then leaned back to gaze at the branches interlaced above them. "That's not
very reassuring, you know."
"Shall we start tracking him?"
Dorlyth nodded curtly as Pelmen turned away. "Before you go sprouting wings on me, listen. Can you
hunt from the sky and maintain the coverage of this glade?"
"You know I can't."
"Well, I didn't think you could, but you can never know anything about a shaper's powers that is certain.
Suppose we search on horseback, like normal people? You can continue to cover the glade then?"
"If I work at it."
"Then let's go."
"Into the fog," Pelmen said glumly.
"As long as it's not so thick I can't see the ground, we'll do all right. Trust me, Pelmen," Dorlyth added
with a trace of his old grin. "I'm a fair tracker myself, even if I can't fly."
Dorlyth woke Ferlyth and quickly explained the situation. "Do you need me to go with you?" his cousin
asked.
"No, no. Just do your best to keep this crew together. Ac-tually, I think you have the tougher job!"
Dorlyth winked at Ferlyth, then beckoned to Pelmen. Moments later they were mounted and on the trail.
The two men shivered as they tracked. The mist crowded around them, robbing them of any sense of
progress. Rosha's trail climbed out of the glade to the northeast, up a mild but steady slope. It was
difficult to follow, but not impossible. It had been Dorlyth, after all, who had taught him how to hide his
tracks, and no war horse could move through a freshly laid carpet of fallen leaves without disturbing it
somewhat. Rosha was skillful, however, and both men were challenged. Dorlyth might even have
enjoyed the morning had he been less con-cerned for his impulsive son's safety.
They talked a little at first. Dorlyth questioned Pelmen fur-ther about the nature of the pyramids, and the
shaper related all he knew. Then Dorlyth asked about Rosha's chances of actually getting inside the High
Fortress without being detected. Pelmen's answer dispelled any hopes.
"The castle's alive," he muttered. "Alive and malevolent."
"Then there's no way the boy could succeed?"
"None."
"Not even if the Power intended him to?" Dorlyth argued, raising a shaggy eyebrow.
Pelmen glanced over at him. "Perhaps there is a way, if that be the case." He looked askance at his
friend, and asked, "You believe that's a possibility?"
Dorlyth snorted in response and urged his horse to move faster.
"I could fly," Pelmen suggested, but Dorlyth again refused the offer. Pelmen's cloak continued to cover
the glade.
Neither man spoke for over an hour. Each was absorbed in private conversations with himself. This
pursuit reminded Pel-men of his unsuccessful search for Serphimera. Despite his effort to blank them out,
the anxieties flooded his consciousness again. All he could think about were his lady's beautiful em-erald
eyes.
Dorlyth thought only of his son. He imagined himself in Rosha's place, hungry for adventure, yet pursued
by friends
intent on preventing him. What would he do? Twice they lost the trail completely, only to pick it up again
through Dorlyth's imaginative identification. "He's just like me, you know. I taught him all he knows."
Abruptly the trail grew clearerentirely too clear, in Dor-lyth's thinking. He looked across at Pelmen in
dismay.
"He's decided he's lost us and picked up speed," the shaper suggested.
"It doesn't take that much longer to hide your tracks. And you can't make any speed through woods this
dense anyway. It doesn't make sense."
"He's young. He's in a hurry. Come on." They spurred their mounts forward and raced along the clearly
discernible trail, churning up an orange spume of leaf fragments behind them. The tiny pair of auburn and
gold wings of a nearby butterfly went unnoticed in that splash of autumn color.
They broke from the woods together with a crash of brush. Pelmen screamed, "Stop!" and yanked back
on his reins, but Dorlyth had seen it himself and already was reining in his mount. Piles of leaves skidded
them forward, but both horses managed to stop just short of tumbling off the edge of the cliff.
They gazed over a precipice into a chasm two hundred feet deep. Across the yawning fissure they faced
another cliff; on top of it, the forest continued on. "How could he jump that?" Dorlyth exclaimed.
"He didn't," Pelmen spat before his friend had finished. "We've been duped!" They wheeled their horses
in alarm and would have plunged back into the forest. Instead they both gasped at the wall of fire that
blocked their retreat. Violent spires of flame soared fifty feet into the air, stretching high above the bare
upper branches of the oaks and walnuts.
"Mar-Yilot!" Pelmen barked. It was clearly the Autumn Lady's style.
"It took her a towering rage to build this blaze!" Dorlyth shouted, his face gone white with shock.
"She's an illusion mistress! Remember her ploy in the Downland's skirmish and ride!" They'd faced
Mar-Yilot's fire ring together before and found that only part of the flames had been real. Finding the
illusory blazes had taken skill and some risky gambles, but they'd succeeded in breaking out and leading
their army to safety. Although he could smell smoke, Pelmen
hadn't yet felt the heat. Perhaps this fire was all illusory, and the smoky scent a trick as well. Dorlyth had
been right; Mar-Yilot couldn't generate a fire this big without feeling genuine wrath, and they had done
nothing at all to harm her.
They angled for the outer edge of the flames, hoping to skirt them to freedom. But the fire sprinted
before them, and now the fumacelike heat hit Pelmen in the face. They turned their mounts before it,
racing the conflagration to the cliff. It beat them easily, and they turned their backs to it and rode wildly
along the precipice, hoping to skirt the blaze at its other end. They failed. The arc closed, trapping them.
Dorlyth reined in, then leaned down to whisper soothingly to his terrified animal. Pelmen bolted on,
unwilling to accept any fire as real until it scorched his face. Blistered, with Min-aliss protesting
vigorously, he turned away, and rode back to face his companion of so many victories.
Dorlyth's color had returnedor perhaps he'd just roasted his cheeks. He wore an enigmatic smile that
Pelmen didn't like at all. The wizard refused to acknowledge it. "We've got to jump," Pelmen snapped,
jerking his thumb toward the chasm.
"Not a chance. Our horses are weary from the morning's ride, and they're terrified. With reason," he
added, glancing up at the roaring, red-orange wall.
"We've got to try! It's our only chance!"
"My only chance." Dorlyth smiled serenely. "You'll fly out."
"No!" Pelmen shouted. "We'll both go out on horseback! They can make it. I'll show you!" Pelmen
hurriedly wrenched Minaliss around to face the fire, rode as close as the blaze would allow, then wheeled
back toward the precipice and gal-loped for it. The horse responded eagerly, desperately fleeing the fire,
but the brittle leaves provided little footing, and the animal jumped too soon. Pelmen left its back on the
wing. Without the extra weight, Minaliss was able to get his forelegs onto the turf of that far cliff.
Momentum carried the horse up onto the shelf, and it turned with a snort to look back across the chasm.
Pelmen had swooped down to stand beside Dorlyth, a man once again. He struggled to look hopeful.
"You see? You can make it!"
Dorlyth looked at the ground. "That Minaliss is a marvelous horse. Yet even without your weight, he
barely made it. Mine
never wouldespecially with me aboard its back. Although it may have to jump eventually. As I might."
The old warrior eyed the edge.
"Don't talk like that! We'll get you out!"
"You'll keep trying as long as I let you," Dorlyth murmured. "But I won't let you try much longer. For me,
the day is lost. It had to come. Inevitably it had to, though I'd never imagined this..."
"Stop it!" Pelmen said frantically. His face wore the panic of a healer who finds himself helpless.
"And don't feel guilty!" Dorlyth snarled. "My day would have come much sooner but for you! My only
question is, why this? What's made the woman so angry?"
"You know, Dorlyth mod Karis," a soft yet savage woman's voice spat out. Dorlyth had his sword out,
slicing toward the source of it, before she finished her sentence. The blade whis-tled through Mar-Yilot's
wispy body, touching nothing but air.
"She's miles away," Pelmen muttered.
"One can always hope," Dorlyth answered.
"No. One cannot always hope, Dorlyth mod Karis. You cannot, any longer."
"Why him?" Pelmen raged. "Why not strike at me directly!"
"I'll get you eventually, Dragonsbane." She used his title mockingly. "You've robbed my Syth of hope."
"What?"
"But first I take your friend, for it was he who sprang the trap!"
"I don't know what you're talking about!" Pelmen roared.
"My lover stares at hell and you claim no knowledge?" Mar-Yilot screamed.
"None!"
"You lie! It was you who locked him in a spell of dread!"
"I've never laid a spell of dread!" Pelmen shouted.
"Pelmen, fly on," Dorlyth muttered earnestly.
"I'll not leave you! And I'll not let this witch go until"
But Mar-Yilot was already gone. And the flames kept ad-vancing, raising the temperature on the ledge
to an intolerable level. "Fly on," Dorlyth urged. "Go now. Don't fret about why. I'm sure you'll unravel it
eventually, and it's meaningless to me anymore. Forget the coverage of the gladeit's already broken,
and that may be where she actually is at the moment.
Go find Rosha. Protect him, or help him, or whatever. Use your judgment. Don't stay and watch me
die."
Pelmen fought to control both his rage at the woman and his terrible grief. "No!" he shouted. "I'm taking
my altershape! Grab my legs!"
"A falcon can't lift a man," Dorlyth protested, but already the bird fluttered above him. He grabbed the
yellow legs in resignation and waited as the falcon beat the air furiously. It was no good.
Pelmen stood beside him again, eyes wet. Dorlyth embraced him, pounded him on the back, and said,
"Thanks for all the joys, old friend!" Then he hugged Pelmen again, fiercely, and growled in his ear, "Care
for my boy." He released the wizard. "Now. Go on."
Pelmen's human eyes regarded Dorlyth quietly, still dis-believing that this could be happening, but forcing
himself to face the truth of it. Then they were falcon eyes, wild and cold, and they were gone on a
whisper of wind.
Dorlyth sighed and glanced around. He gazed challengingly at the advancing blaze, squared around to
face it, and grasped his great sword firmly in both hands. "Come on then," he whispered.
The fire advanced toward him, blistering his face. He held a hand out before him, guarding his eyes as he
peered through the flames. The ground beyond them was black and smoking, but was already free of
fire. If he could only get through this blazing wall
But it was no use. To run through it was suicideand a painful suicide at that. Better to go over the
edge. Abruptly it occurred to him that there was a chance... He rushed to the edge and peered over it.
The face of the cliff was as sheer as glassor so it appeared at first glance. But Dorlyth was desperate
now. The fire was already roasting his back, and he reasoned that the slightest handhold was preferable
to burning or falling. Three feet below the lip of the edge he spied a small crevice. Enough to wedge his
dagger into? Once in, would it hold his weight? He spent little time analyzing. He dropped to his knees,
fetched out his dagger, and lay along the edge, reaching as far down as he could in hopes of planting the
knife point. He nearly fell in the process, but managed to wedge it in. Would it hold him?
He heard an equine scream behind him as his horse, on fire now, plunged wildly over the cliff. There was
no more time. He clung to the hilt of his dagger with one hand and lowered himself over the ledge with
the other. Then he released the edge completely and clung with both hands to his dagger, bracing his feet
and knees against the cliff as best he could.
Fire swept the cliff above him. He closed his eyes against it and bowed his head. His knuckles were
scorched. His muscles knotted. It took forever for the leaves along the cliff to burn.
But at last the crackling above him stopped. Dorlyth tilted his head back to scan the edge and saw
blackened weeds and curling smoke above him. He knew the ground would still be so hot it would burn
his hand, but he could endure no longer. With the last of his strength he hauled himself back up onto the
cliff, and collapsed there, rolling onto his back. Heat rose through his tunic, and he thought that all his
efforts had been wasted. He was still going to die. Then his mind became as black as the scorched earth
that surrounded him.
CHAPTER SIX
Climbing
By early afternoon Rosha had passed the last stand of bare, spindle-branched trees and was onto the
plainlands of the Fur-rowmar. He had stopped looking over his shoulder, but his thoughts were still more
behind him than before. The experi-ence with the peasant woman plagued him. Why had he spoken so
frankly to her? Why had he spoken at all? He never opened his thoughts to anyone! Even Bronwynn had
to badger him for details about his feelings.
The certainty grew with every passing mile that magic had prompted that exchange, and the realization
filled him with forboding. Of course, he was back in the Mar, and the woman
could have been merely a local witcherwoman. But even that thought chilled him. If a miserable,
hovel-dwelling herb gath-erer could bend his will so effortlessly, what would he face within the fortress of
the master shaper? "When you worry about the future," he quoted Dorlyth to himself, "you're pre-pared
for neither it nor the present." He willed his doubts from his mind and concentrated on choosing the best
route across the plain.
He was crossing the edge of his cousin Ferlyth's lands now, but would pass many miles east of his
aristocratic relative's grand castle. Ferlyth's line of the family had been Jorls of the Furrowmar for
centuries. As such, they owned vast holdings in this, the grain-growing heartland of the Mar. They had
proved to be intelligent, benign rulers, and had built great loyalty among the peasants of the region. This
had been a strong factor in keeping the jorldom in the family, for although the six jorldoms were
theoretically hereditary, they were in fact subject largely to the results of war. In the aftermath of
particularly bloody conflicts, vacant jorldoms had been distributed by the elected kings in the same
capricious, politically motivated man-ner that the shurldoms were normally awarded. Dorlyth him-self, for
example, became Jorl of the Westmouth after his crucial victory over the invading Golden Throng. King
Pahd had shown less wisdom in making his southern-dwelling cousin Janos the Jorl of the Nethermar
region. The natural choice would have been the citylord of either of the two walled towns of the north.
His flagrant nepotism had united those cities against him, and was one cause of this current conflict.
Janos had not helped the situation. He was an arrogant, free-spending Furrowman, who disdained
everything about the low-landers of the northeverything, that is, save their great wealth. His agents
made sure he got the jorl's share out of every dia-mond mine in the region. Although he'd been only a lad
when Janos was an aggressive teen, Rosha had known the Jorl of the Nethermar from childhood, and
he'd learned early that Janos could not be trusted. The present king was older than his cousin, but even
so, he'd allowed Janos to manipulate him. Rosha reflected that that wasn't a great surprise. Pahd had
made a career of being manipulated by others.
"But by no one so much as by Flayh," Rosha muttered to himself, riding down a furrow between lines of
dead stalks.
The corn had already been harvested. The brittle, yellow stalks leaned away from the westerly winds,
waiting for either the sickle or the first snow to put them out of their misery. The chill in the air suggested
it would probably be the snow.
Rosha felt no ill-will toward Pahd himself. In fact he rather liked the lazy, laughing king. But it was Pahd's
laziness that had permitted Flayh to absorb so much political power. That, combined with Flayh's vile
ambition and magical ability, made the powershaping merchant an awesome antagonist. Pahd had clearly
failed his subjects. "Once Flayh has been defeated," Rosha muttered, "Pahd must be replaced."
But by whom? That was a matter Rosha had often consid-ered. He would have scoffed at the
suggestion if made by another, but in his secret fantasies it ever seemed the crown came finally to his own
head. Were Rosha to be honest with himself, this whole adventure had been bom out of those fond
fantasies. They had begun to gnaw upon his mind as he sat in bored silence through interminable sessions
in his wife's court. If he were but king of the Mar! There would be a match for his lovely little queen!
Whenever he caught himself in this line of thought he had to laugh at his own foolishness. True, he was a
jorl's son, as well as a bear's-bane and an acknowledged hero. But he was hardly kingly material.
Besides, there was still Flayh to contend withand Pahd and Lord Janos, whose lands he would soon
be entering. If he didn't start concentrating on the present instead of plotting his triumphant rise to the
throne, he might never live to see the following dawn!
The lands of Janos bordered the family estates of the Pahd mod Pahd-el. Together they ringed the
southern rim of the High Plateau of Ngandib. They were divided by the river, which ran past the western
edge of the plateau on its way northward to the coast. Most visitors northbound for the High City would
take the road around to the eastern face of the plateau and up the Down Road which climbed the sheer
cliffs there. Rosha intended to cross the river at the Carlog Bridge, but then to leave the road and follow
the riverline northward to the pla-teau's backside. He hoped his daring approach would serve him well.
Surely the absentee Jorl of the Nethermar would not expect a solitary enemy to come riding through his
property.
Besides, it would be nightfall before Rosha reached the bridge. The darkness would cover him.
He reached the bridge a few minutes after dusk. There was no traffic, but he waited until the sun was
wholly gone, just in case. Then he rode quickly across it. Without hesitation, he turned his horse off the
road and started up the Riverline. No one stopped him. He saw no villages, nor even a single dwelling
standing alone. By midnight, he'd reached his destination. There he dismounted and bade good night to
his weary horse. He ate a good meal, then wrapped himself in a layer of furs and lay down. Despite the
long day's ride, it was difficult to sleep. Lying on his back, he gazed upward along the route he planned to
take in the morning. Sleep took him at last, and he dreamed.
When he was seven, Rosha had been brought to a feast at what was now Janos Castle. The fortress
backed up against the base of the High Plateau less than a mile from this spot. There was a vast green
field before the castle's gates, a lovely place for the children to romp and play. Rosha remembered
throwing himself down its gentle slopes, laughing gleefully as he rolled. At the end of one of his rolls, as
he'd giggled in the grass, waiting for the dizziness to pass, he'd suddenly spied a huge snake climbing up
the cliff face toward the plateau. Startled, he'd raced to find Dorlyth and reported it. It took a moment for
Dorlyth to identify the object his son described, but he did at last and he named it. Rosha remembered
grimly how the other warriors at that rough oaken table had laughed at him. But Dorlyth hadn't. Instead,
he'd looked his young son in the eye and told him a tale of the ancients. Once, long before the huge
reservoir was carved into the plateau above, the people living upon the high plain had been surrounded
by enemies. They had at last run out of watera desperate circumstance, and all the more frustrating
because they could watch the mighty river flowing by the plateau's western base on its way to the
Nethermar and the North Coast. They would have surrendered then, but for the urging of a local
powershaper, who had en-listed the aid of every potter in Ngandib.
Rosha could still recall his father's words of long ago: 'To-gether they made a tube of clay, full
seven-hundred feet in length, and baked it in the burning summer sun. Then, by magic, that great pipe
rose, then descended over the plateau's western edge, down, down, until its bottom touched the river
and went into it. Then, as you sometimes suck fruit punch through a piece of straw, the shaper sucked up
the water until it flowed into buckets on the top of the cliff, and the land and people were saved! That
great, baked-clay strawthat is what you see climbing the cliff face. Of course, a later shaper carved the
reservoir, and the springtime rains have long since come and filled it up so it's never wholly dry. Still, one
can never tell, and so the clay pipe remains. When you're a warrior, son, remember. To kill a man you
cut the jugularto kill a castle, cut its water."
Rosha had left the table that day oblivious to the conde-scending smiles of the other adults and had
returned to stand in the midst of the field. He no longer ran and rolledinstead he'd stood silently,
regarding that distant pipeline with awe.
Morning came, and Rosha woke to survey the task before him. No direct sunlight reached this place,
nor would any until the noontime sun peaked over the cliff high overhead. He was glad of that. By the
time the sunlight bathed him, he hoped to be well on his way to his goal. It was a frosty morning, and the
shadows made it colder. Nevertheless, he peeled off layers of clothing. His bare arms and shoulders
quickly grew goose-flesh, and his teeth chattered together, but he ignored his dis-comfort. A hundred
feet up, when he'd worked up a sweat, this chill would seem a pleasant memory.
He sorted out those things he needed to take from those he could leave behind. The necessities he
settled upon were his great sword, tied into its scabbard and slung over his back, a flask of water, his
lunch, a dagger, a few gold coins tied in a pouch and hung from his belt, his trousers, rolled and tied at
the knee, and his mail shirt-a gift from his father when he'd first ridden off to war. The rest of his
possessions he wrapped in a bundle and stuffed behind the bottommost joint of the pipe. He stripped his
horse and set it free. There was good grazing round about and water nearby, so the beast would be
cared for if he didn't return. Indeed, Rosha did not expect to be re-turningnot this way, at least. He
wondered, sighting up the tube, if he really could make it to the top. He doubted he could come back
down. But then, how would he get down? He shoved the thought out of his mind. One step at a time! He
consumed a quick but heavy breakfast, and turned to his task.
It was clear now that Dorlyth's story had been embellished
by time. Rosha had been to the technologically advanced cities of Chaomonous and Lamath. He'd seen
a pump before, though he really didn't know how one worked. There had obviously been a pump here
once, although it was gone now. Rosha was a bit disappointed. The sucking ability of the ancient
power-shaper had made a much more romantic story. He was also puzzled, and a little of his awe
returned when he realized he'd never before heard of a pump that could raise water such an enormous
height. But there was no more time for thinking. It was time to climb. The tube had been made of ceramic
cylinders each two feet long, jointed with seals of baked clay. It looked as if it would be easy to climb the
joints, and he wondered why no one had tried it before. He took a last glance around him, wrapped his
arms around the pipe, and started shinnying up.
There was an island in the Border Straits that had long served as a haven for pirates. The pirates were
gone nowperhaps because they'd followed the rest of the world's brigands to join Admon Faye in the
High Fortress. For whatever reason, the island and its primitive dwellings were abandonedor had
been, until Erri arrived.
There was much confusion the first few days, as Erri's initiates struggled to accommodate themselves to
their new environment. Few of those who'd followed him had ever de-veloped survival skills. Fewer still
knew anything about the sea. Yet events had cast them adrift upon an uncertain future, and they had to
learn to fend for themselves. Many of them suffered severe depression. Just days before, they'd been the
lords of Lamath. Some began to whisper that they wished they'd stayed behind. It was inevitable that the
whisperings would turn into mutterings, then to open declarations of dissatisfac-tion. Those closest to Erri
worried and wrung their hands. Yet the prophet himself didn't seem disturbed at all, not did he voice any
personal bitterness at his abrupt fall from power. In fact, he appeared to be smiling more than usual. It
was hard to gauge his mood. He said little to anyone besides the Power.
He spent his days standing upon a huge boulder that towered over the seething sea. Sometimes he
looked down, watching the waves hit the rocks with a rhythmical roar. But most of the time he studied
the southern horizon. At last he saw the
sail he'd been expecting and, while it was still a half hour distant, he began to summon the brothers to
gather.
When the new ship anchored in the small cove beside the two vessels that had brought the rest of them
to this island, there was already a large crowd waiting on the beach. Erri stood barefooted in the surf,
watching as the rowboats ploughed the waves toward him. He waded out to meet the first one and
helped guide it up onto the sand. Several of its occupants leaped out to help him. The man in the bow did
not. Instead he clutched the side of the boat with one hand and his stomach with the other. His gown was
the sky blue color of that of all initiates, but his face was a sickly green. He rolled his eyes to gaze up into
Erri's and murmured, "Prophet. This wasn't how I'd planned to greet you."
Erri laid a hand on the man's shoulder. "Come on, Naquin, stand up. You don't have any disease that
can't be cured by solid ground."
The former High Priest of the Unified Dragonfaith stepped out of the boat with Erri's assistance and
almost collapsed into the foam. The prophet caught him and led him up onto the dry sand. There he
helped Naquin sit and sat beside him.
Naquin looked around unsteadily, then felt the land on either side of him and asked with pale, trembling
lips, "Are we still moving?"
"Just relax a moment." Erri smiled. "You'll soon feel better."
"Nothing in the Temple of the Dragon ever prepared me for that" Naquin sighed.
"I daresay you've experienced quite a lot in the last few months that your father and his advisors never
prepared you for."
"Oh, yes." Naquin nodded. Erri could tell the man was feeling better already by the hint of animation in
his voice. "Quite a lot. On the other hand, I found politics in Queen Bronwynn's court not much different
from those in Lamath."
"How was Bronwynn when you left her?" Erri asked with intense concern.
"Distracted," Naquin sighed. "Terribly distracted over Rosha's absence. And distracted, too, over some
strange new experiences..."
"What kind of experiences?"
"Magical, I'm afraid." Naquin sniffed, evidencing his dis-approval. Erri nodded knowingly. He seemed
unsurprised. "Well, doesn't that bother you?" Naquin asked.
"Should it?"
"Well, I hardly believe the Power would use powershaping to accomplish Its purpose, do you?" Naquin
had once been the premier priest of the Dragonfaith, despite being a nonbeliever. Erri had given him a
faith to believe in and a responsibility for sharing it. As sometimes happened with new believers, the pupil
was more dogmatic than his teacher.
"I don't know," Erri said flatly.
"You don't know!" Naquin was shocked.
That didn't appear to bother the Prophet. Not much did, these days. "No. I thought I knew, until very
recently. But these past few days I've had the luxury of time for thinking and I've been using it. And I
wonder. Just how much do I really know about this Power? It seems that every time I'm certain I know
something, the ground shifts under my feet, and I discover something new that just raises more
questions." Erri grinned brightly at his frowning follower. "Who knows what the Power might use to
accomplish Its purposes? Or whom?"
Naquin didn't return the smile. He'd been in Chaomonous and on his ownfor some months, acting
as the spiritual leader to those initiates Erri had sent with him. He'd buried a few of those charges,
committing them into the Power's keeping. He'd led a number of Chaons to don the sky blue cassock,
and some of those had accompanied him here. Naquin had a stake in this new belief men termed the
skyfaith, and it made him uncom-fortable to hear his leader talking this wayespecially in front of the
newer initiates. "If that were true," he asked quietly, "how could we be certain that the Power can be
depended upon?"
"Oh, I never have any question about the Power's hold on me, or about the task I've been assigned.
That much is clear and remains so. I'm just never certain who else is on the same side. But that doesn't
matter, anyway. It doesn't keep me from doing what I must. I see your work goes well." Erri beamed at
the new arrivals on the beach. The rowboats had already dropped off thirty and were headed back to the
ship for more.
Naquin accepted this praise with a tight-lipped smile and a slight nod. Then his frown returned. "But
what about Lamath?" he asked gravely. "Is all hope lost?"
"Lost?" Erri exclaimed. "Oh my, no. If anything, it's been found again."
"Then steps are being taken toward your resumption of governmental control?"
"No, no. At/least I hope not. I've not taken any. No, nothing kills faith so effectively as making it part of
politics. You ought to know that yourself, with your past experience."
"Well, I"
"Governing Lamath distracted me from my real assignment. Personally, I wouldn't mind the royal family
maintaining their dynasty for another hundred years, but for the fact that they've endorsed this renewed
Dragonfaith business. And that wouldn't bother me so much if they were honest. But it's not a faith at all.
It's politics and power. And it's all being done at the direction of this man Flayh. I may not always know
who works beside me, or how the Power moves, but I do know this man Flayh is against all that we've
tried to accomplish."
"Because he's a powershaper," Naquin snarled.
"No. Because he wants to be all-powerful."
Naquin nodded. "Then perhaps we should return to Chao-monous and join ourselves to the queen's
army."
Erri looked away. He slid his hands backward through the sand and leaned back to gaze at the cloudy
sky. He seemed to weigh his words carefully before he spoke. "I think not."
"But if this Flayh is our enemy"
"He's the Power's enemy."
"Then we must work to defeat him!"
"By performing our appointed tasks." Erri looked back at Naquin, his face solemn. "Do you expect to
destroy Flayh and his thugs and his dogs with an army of Chaons? The thugs, maybe. But not the shaper.
And even if successful, how would the Golden Throng knit the three lands back together into one? By
force of arms? No. Perhaps Bronwynn's army will be part of the Power's total plan. I don't know. I do
know that if Bronwynn departs Chaomonous prematurely, she'll leave a vulnerable kingdom behind her.
These magical powers she's experiencing are not without purpose. When you get back to Chaomonous,
you must urge her to wait."
"Then we're going back?" Naquin frowned. "I had thought..."
"We would advance on Lamath like conquering heroes?"
Erri smiled. Then he stood up and turned to face the large gathering of blue-robed believers. Many
conversations died as all eyes turned to look at him. He waited for the last of the rowboats to beach, then
he began:
"Brothers. We've gathered here just to be together briefly and to talk and encourage one another, to
draw strength from each other. Soon we'll go back to our appointed tasks. It won't be easy for any of us.
But it will be good.
"Lamath is no longer under our rule. Now we can go out freely and mingle with the people, as we should
have been doing all along. We're few, but we're enough. We've all been together in the capital. It's time
we divided and went our own ways, to find those who need what we offer.
"Naquin, lead your people back to Chaomonous. But don't stay in the city. The queen doesn't need your
guidance; she has her own. The people of Chaomonous are educated skeptics, but it's an age of
uncertainty. Naquin, your strength is an unshakable certainty in your faith. That's a security the Chaons
need.
"Then there's Ngandib-Mar. Tahli-Damen?" Erri called, and the blind man, trembling, stood up. "Turn
around, my friend." The former merchant obeyed, and many of those seated on the beach behind him
gasped at the sight of those empty, pale blue eyes. "This man lost his sight to powershaping. But he says
he sees life more clearly now than he ever did before. He'll return to the land of magic, to the realm of this
evil Flayh himself. Who will be his eyes? Who will walk beside him?" Erri paused then, searching the
crowd. He saw a hand slip furtively into the air and smiled knowingly. "Good. That's settled then. As for
the rest of us, it's time we returned to Lamath. Not as a group, however. Rather, we go in teams of two
or three. Someone will need to go with me"
"I'll go!" said an enthusiastic young man in the front of the crowd, bounding to his feet.
Erri's forehead wrinkled slightly. "Strahn? You want to travel with me?"
"I do indeed, sir." Strahn nodded, blushing now at his own forwardness.
"You think you can handle it?" Erri asked, and the young man nodded energetically. The real question,
the prophet thought to himself, was whether he could handle traveling with Strahn.
He smiled warmly, however, and announced, "Very well then. Strahn it will be. As for the rest of you,
find partners. Get well acquainted. Tomorrow morning we'll all be on our way." He was finished. He
waved his hand in a gesture of dismissal.
'Tomorrow?" Naquin said a bit peevishly. "Some of us just got here!"
Erri smiled at the man and reached out to pat his shoulder apologetically. "I know. I wish there was
more time. But there's not. You've got to get back to warn Bronwynn. Don't expect her to listen to you,"
Erri added, grinning brightly. "Bronwynn doesn't listen to (anybody much. But you just be faithful to your
task, and encourage her to pay heed to the problems in her own land before trying to solve problems
elsewhere. The Power will use you."
Naquin looked mournfully out at his ship, anchored in the tiny harbor. "1 don't relish getting back on that
thing again."
"By all means, sleep on dry land tonight," Erri urged. "You look weak. Have you eaten lately?"
"Oh, I've eaten all right." Naquin nodded, rolling his eyes.
Erri understood. "Strahn?" he called.
"Right here, sir!" Strahn barked, causing the prophet to jump. Erri hadn't realized the young initiate was
hovering right behind him.
"Ah, take Naquin and find him some food, then get him a good place to rest for the night."
"Yes, sir. Anything else?" Strahn was a handsome boy with very bright, even teeth. These gleamed as he
beamed his smile at Erri, causing the prophet to sigh.
"Not at the moment," he mumbled, and Strahn marched Naquin off toward the makeshift kitchen.
Now Erri was able to turn to Tahli-Damen, who stood sev-eral feet away, waiting uncertainly. Ten feet
beyond him stood the young merchant woman who had arrived in Lamath the night the dogs came in. Erri
beckoned her over and asked, "Does he know you're here?"
Wayleeth shook her head.
"Do I know who's here?" Tahli-Damen asked suspiciously. He didn't look happy at all.
"I requested a volunteer to travel with you, Tahli-Damen. This is that volunteer." Erri looked at the
woman. "Speak to him."
Wayleeth cleared her throat. "Hello."
"Wayleeth!" Tahli-Damen exploded, and several nearby conversations stopped as bluefaithers turned to
watch. "Way-leeth, did you follow me here?"
"If she did," Erri interjected, "it's because the Power prompted her to come."
"No, it isn't!" Tahli-Damen roared. "It's because she feels sorry for me! She's afraid I'll get hurt! She
can't let me out of her sight!"
"All of which seem good qualifications for the woman to serve as your eyes."
"She can't be my partner!" Tahli-Damen thundered. "She's my wife!"
"And just what do you think a wife is to be!" Erri thundered back. Then he glanced around at all the
staring eyes and waved them away. Bluefaithers all around made a great show of re-turning to their
conversations. "Now listen to me, Tahli-Damen. I've talked with Wayleeth myself at length. She is as
committed to this task as you are. Will you deny her the op-portunity to perform it simply because the
two of you happen to be married?" The prophet glanced at the sky, then back at Tahli-Damen's scowling
face. "It's dusk. The two of you need to talk. Go find a quiet spot and do that. The ship leaves for
Lamath tomorrow morning, and Strahn and myself will walk with you to Dragonsgate. Go now."
Tahli-Damen waited until Wayleeth took his arm and led him away. Then Erri tilted his head back and
spoke to the darkening sky: "Exactly what, in my twenty some years of life at sea, qualified me to be a
marriage counselor?" Then he shook his head and walked away, muttering under his breath "Strahn..."
His arms no longer ached. They tingled now, as if asleep. Yet that was no relief, for along with the
dulling of the pain came a heaviness that he was certain could not have been worse had boulders been
manacled to his wrists. His mail shirt had become a portable oven as sweat coursed down his chest and
back, drenching his belt. His feet, too, seemed weighted with lead. There were times when he could do
nothing but cling to the topless pipeline and gasp for breath.
His emotional state ranged from elation to despairsometimes swinging from one extreme to the other
in a moment. Occasionally, as he looked downward to find footing on a ceramic joint, he would catch a
glimpse of the land below. He no longer regarded it as just 'the ground.' He had climbed high enough to
stretch the horizon out for miles. Sometimes he rejoiced because this was his land; he loved it and gloried
in looking down on it from on high. Moments later he might look down in terror, certain he couldn't make
it to the top, but just as certain that to try to climb down would prove suicidal. Those were the times
when he gripped the round pipe and hugged it close, laying his cheek against its cool surface and fighting
the childish urge to weep. He longed for the ordeal to be resolved some way, any way. His climb was
one of those feats some-times undertaken as a means to an end which come to demand such effort that
the original purpose is eclipsed. After the second hour, Rosha thought little of Flayh anymore, of how he
could enter the High Fortress, or of the pyramid he intended to steal. He thought instead of his life and
wondered if this day would be his last. He thought, too, of his wife and sorrowed for her, imagining her
mourning when she heard of his death. He thought of Pelmen and muttered a fervent prayer to the
Power. He made his appeal in the form of a contractif the Power would get him safely off this endless
water pipe, he would once again don the sky blue robe and become a true initiate. He thought of a host
of other things he'd not considered in years. That led him to reflect on things he'd always intended to do.
He thought a lot about thinking itself. He wished he could block out all his thoughts and concentrate
solely on climbing. But each time he tried, he became so aware of the heaviness in his arms and legs and
the knotted muscles in the back of his neck that he welcomed back the distraction of his memories. And
still the pipe went up.
There were several blessed interruptions. These helped him solve the riddle of how this ancient pipe had
once lifted the water so high. There was not one pump, but several, and several pumping stations. These
were located in small caverns chiseled out of the cliff face. The water was relayed upward from one
cavern to the nextor had been. The pumps were decayed beyond all usefulness, and the small pools
within the caverns were brackish. How long had it been since the water flowed through this system?
Centuries, by the look of things. Did anyone alive even know these pumps existed? His father surely
didn't. But they were here, and he was grateful. Each time he reached a cavern, he crawled inside its
mouth and sat, dangling his legs over the edge, gazing out to the distant west while he rested his shoulders
and arms.
How far up had he climbed? He wondered as he crawled into yet another pumping cavern. How much
further to go? Surely it couldn't be much. But he'd thought that while sitting in the mouth of the last
cavern, which seemed now to be miles below. It was midafternoon, and he longed for sleep, but this
cave, like the rest, was full of water. There was no place to stretch out. He dared not nap on this narrow
ledge. If he dropped off to sleep here, he could very well slip to his death. Yet even as he reminded
himself of the danger, he was starting to doze. He woke with a jerk and immediately forced himself back
out of the cavern and onto the pipe. He tried looking up to see the top, but the sun was now above him,
and he couldn't stand the glare. "Doesn't matter anyway," he grunted. All that mat-tered was for him to
keep on climbing until there was no more pipe to climb.
Suddenly that happened. But he felt no elation. Despair came instead. For he looked into yet another
cavernlarger than the others, much largeryet still a water-filled cavern. And the pipeline had ended.
He craned his head, shielding his eyes against the sun with one hand as he gripped the pipe with the
other. He couldn't be sure; it appeared that the top of the cliff was only another fifteen feet above his
head. But he couldn't get to it!
He crawled into the mouth of this last cavern. Once again he sat dangling his feet, but this time he faced
the water. What was he going to do? He tilted his head back and studied the cliff face above him once
again. It was smooth. There wasn't a handhold in sight, even if he could have gotten up to it. He held off
the panic as long as he could, but it finally broke through and he had to grip the ledge with both hands to
keep from tumbling backward in shock. He was trapped!
The sun touched the western horizon before Rosha finally stopped despairing and started thinking. Once
he did, it didn't take him long to reason out a solution to his dilemma.
There was no relay pump in this cavern. More important, there was no sign that there ever had been.
That was curious.
Why would it have been removed? Why would another pump be needed this close to the top of the
plateau? Another thing, the water here was relatively clear, not brackish like that in the dark pools he'd
passed on his way up. Rainwater? Perhaps, but the overhang/was too severe to allow any but the most
slanting rains to penetrate the cavern. Besides, rain came mostly from the sea of the east, not from the
west. It wasn't rain-waterat least not rain that had blown into the cavern. He was convinced, finally,
that this pool was connected underwater to the main reservoir. He didn't need to climb any higher. He
needed to swim down and under the wall instead.
Or so he hoped. It seemed logical enough. Certainly it was worth a try. But what would he find under
this chilly water? A connecting tunnel too narrow for a man to pass through? Or perhaps an ancient grill
put in place to prevent anyone from doing just what he was attempting? Rosha shrugged. He'd done far
too much thinking for one day. Better just try it.
First he ate the rest of his food. He knew it wasn't wise to swim right after eating, but he was famished.
He chewed well, concentrating on clearing his mind, then scooped up a handful of water to wash down
his meal. Next he made a quick check to insure that everything he'd brought with him was securely tied to
him. He took a deep breath and dove in.
He didn't fight his way down. He didn't need tohis mail shirt and heavy sword carried him toward the
bottom. He kept his eyes open, struggling to see through the ink. He wished it was noon instead of dusk.
The high sun shining down on the reservoir might have made the tunnel visibleif there was a tunnel. He
had to go by feel.
His feet at last touched rocka gently sloping walland he crouched against that slime-covered granite
and pushed off toward the far side. His lungs began to burn. He swam with heightened urgency. He
couldn't tell how far he'd gone. His chest pleaded for air, and he decided to go up for a breath and try
again later. He didn't make it. His head bumped rock before it broke the surface. He was already in the
channel, and he had no idea how long it was. A frantic desperation surpassing anything he'd felt on his
long climb seized him as he propelled himself forward. He swam in terror, the great sword around his
neck weighing upon him like an anchor, his mail shirt feeling like a full suit of armor. He swam as far as he
could,closing his eyes against the sting in his lungs, fearing every moment that he'd crash against another
wall and be lost. His reserves of strength had been depleted by the long day's climb. He could go no
further. He fought his way up, lashing at the water, angry at it for obstructing him, angry at himself for his
foolishness, angry at death for taking him so casually
Then he was out. His head broke the surface of the reservoir, and he sucked in the twilight sky. His
gasps for air substituted for a victory shout. He had made it to the top! He would not permit the great
distance that still separated him from his goal to intrude into his wheezing of celebration. He was alive,
and for the moment that was all that mattered.
He had to get out of the waterhis shirt would pull him back under if he didn't. He glanced around.
While moments before he had been wishing it was noontime, he was suddenly glad it was dusk. There
were sentries positioned around the lake. At least, he thought they were sentriesobviously, they
weren't taking their responsibilities seriously. Evidently they were set not to guard the lake but the
plateau, for no head was turned toward the water. All eyes were fixed either on the purple sunset or on
the faces of their lovers. Since there seemed little chance of invasion up the sheer walls of the cliff, sentry
duty around the rim provided a wonderful opportunity for in-timate trysts.
Rosha made his way toward the nearest shore, carefully keeping his head down. Soon his feet touched
the bottom, and he rested for a moment, neck-deep in the water. He wondered why these guards had
been posted at allto watch the skies for flying powershapers? It didn't matter. What was important
was for him to reach the fortress that loomed over the lake at least a mile away. It wouldn't do for him to
clamber up out of the water behind some passionate couple. Rosha decided to make his way to the rear
of the High Fortress through the water. He started walking.
The High Fortress was impregnable. He knew that. Every lad in the Mar knew that before the age of
ten. Then again, every Mari boy also knew that there was no way onto the High Plateau save by the
Down Road. Rosha had proved today that that was a myth. Could the castle's invincibility be a myth as
well? The fortress stood atop a rock ridge that jutted six hundred feet above the level of the lake. From
this angle, he thought he could make out ledges and projections that made scaling it a possibility. Perhaps
he could climb to the top of the ridge, then scale the back wall. Obviously the guards did not fear an
approach from the lake. Could it be that the rear of the castle was as poorly guarded? He calculated the
possibilities as he slogged the last hundred feet. The closer he got, the more possible the task appeared.
It was night when he reached the rock wall. He was weary beyond all belief. But he couldn't rest here.
He had to climb at least part of the way. He started up. Thirty feet above the level of the lake he found a
crevice in the granite and beamed with excitement. It looked big enoughhe shoved himself into it, and
found to his great relief that it was large enough to hold him securely. In moments he was lost in delightful
sleep, safe from prying eyes.
But it wasn't eyes that had been watching him, ever since his head broke the surface of the reservoir.
The living fortress had noted his appearance, and had been reporting his progress to its master ever
since.
He is sleeping in a crevice at the base of this fortress, it told the powershaper.
Flayh chuckled and said, "Don't disturb him. I'm certain he needs his rest."
CHAPTER SEVEN
Silent Entry
A change had come. Pelmen slipped through the nearly de-serted streets of Ngandib and considered it.
He had, at long last, wholly committed himself to the battle. Not that he'd shirked his responsibilities
beforehe had just been bound by his friendships to limited courses of action. But one by one, his
friends had been separated from him. Serphimera was missing; Rosha was missing; Erri was in hiding;
Bronwynn was under pressure from a rival sorcerer well out of his reach; and Dorlyth was lost to him
forever. These things had created in Pelmen both a terrible loneliness and an exhil-arating fury.
Pelmen did not anger easily; he was far too powerful to permit himself that luxury. But when his wrath
was finally kindled, a new aspect of Pelmen's personality emerged. It was so fearsome even to himself
that he'd spent a lifetime try.ng to bury it. When his rage came, it was not with heat and passionand
their consequent foolishness. Rather it was cold, critically calculatingcunning. Now Pelmen was
enraged. And in Flayh he had finally found a foe who demanded he unleash his every resource.
How to get at the man! He gazed up at the bleak towers of the fortress, his eyes blazing. He glanced
around at what had been a cheerful, bustling city and silently railed at Flayh for what he'd done to its
people. That shaper's mean spirit dom-inated these Man's as totally as his frowning fortress dominated
their plateau, and Pelmen was struck once again by how quickly people yielded control of their lives. His
deepening bitterness reflected itself in his hard expression. Was the High Fortress watching him? He
wasn't close enough yet to hear its conver-sation.
Was Rosha inside? Pelmen scolded himself for wasting a day searching the roads by air. If he'd gotten to
the top of the Down Road in time he could have stopped the young warrior on his way up! When he'd
finally had the good sense to fly here to the city, it was evidently too late. He'd watched the same sordid
scene repeated again and again at the top of the road, as Admon Faye's so-called guards had seized and
abused one upward-bound traveler after another. But Rosha had never appeared. Pelmen had been
forced to conclude that Rosha had already been subdued and arrested by the time he'd arrived.
Was he wrong? Had Rosha never intended to penetrate this place and steal the third pyramid? Was he
even now bound for some other place? Chaomonous, perhaps, to aid his bride against the sinister Terril?
Pelmen fervently hoped that might be the case, but it didn't change his resolve. He was going to get inside
this castle and he was going to do it without the aid of magic. He was going in the simplest, the most
inobtrusive way,
the way so many terrified Mari citizens had gone in before him.
He was about to be arrested.
"Look, mates," a voice behind him said, slimy with cruelty and malice. "Someone's paid us a call." Rough
hands seized him under the arms while others smacked the sides of his head, and his legs were booted
out from under him. One thug held him up by grabbing a handful of his hair; as he struggled to regain his
feet, fists pummelled his stomach and groin. Mo-ments later he disappeared into the black maw of the
High Fortress of Ngandib. It all went according to plan.
He'd gambled that Flayh took little interest in the private entertainments of his bodyguards. This policy of
arrest and abuse of local citizens was certainly unrelated to any security need. Pelmen knew the High
Fortress was alive. In the event of attack it would simply notify its master, and Flayh would deal with the
problem magically. Pelmen really didn't know why Flayh kept this garrison of thugs and bullies around
unless it might be that he preferred having such a dangerous collection of men under his thumb rather than
out in the woods, possibly conspiring against him. In any case, no one seemed to notice as the three
cutthroats who had abducted Pelmen dragged him down into a dark corner of the fortress and pre-pared
to beat him.
He used no magic, save that sleight-of-hand variety he'd learned in his years onstage. Powershaping
would attract the attention of the castle, and that was the last thing he wanted. Even so, the three thugs
thought themselves bewitched as this cowering peasant turned suddenly into a savage. Pelmen slipped a
dagger out of one man's belt and back in between two of his ribs. There was a single grunt and gush of
blood, but by the time the other two realized its source, their own throats had been slashed open. Pelmen
left them behind, gasping and wres-tling upon a suddenly sticky floor. Killing did not come easily for him,
but he always did what was demanded. He doubted if the world would miss this trio.
He did not sneak through the hallways. Nothing would have attracted attention to him so quickly.
Instead he shuffled along, looking like a bored slave. No one stopped him. He drew no stares. He didn't
fear being identified by men.
But what about the fortress? Was it watching him? Despite the care he'd taken not to use his power,
could the fortress
somehow sense Pelmen's exceptional abilities? As he moved through the corridors, he turned his ears to
hear the creaks and pops in the masonry and woodwork that formed the words of castle-speech.
Occasionally he lightly touched the walls, check-ing for condensation that might indicate the High
Fortress was engaged in some difficult act of shaping of its own. He strained to smell meaningful scents,
monitored the temperature of the air on his cheeks, pressed all his senses to analyze his sur-roundings
while maintaining an expression of careless incom-petence. Still, the castle said nothing. That greatly
disturbed him. He'd expected to hear a steady stream of invective from the fortress, since any act of
shaping was excruciating to a living castle. He knew that made no difference to Flayh and was certain
that the small sorcerer was up in his tower, just as busy as ever. Why wasn't the castle screaming?
Since he was already in the upper dungeon, he explored it quickly. It was empty. This did not surprise
him, knowing the mentality of slavers. Why keep prisoners? It was too much bother to feed them and
watch over them. It was much simpler either to enslave them or kill them. Of this Pelmen was
cer-tainthe slave pit of this castle would be filled to capacity.
Was that where Rosha was? No. A man like Rosha was far too dangerous to enslave. He would be
killed outright. Pelmen gritted his teeth and pressed on, determined to tour the upper levels.
He found the stairway to the royal tower unguarded. Where were these slavers? He'd expected to
encounter at least a few along the way! Of course, this lapse in security was under-standable in one
sense. Why should anyone want to assassinate a king who already slept like the dead? Pelmen shuffled to
King Pahd's door, listened for a moment, then stepped inside. The room was empty, except for Pahd,
and the king never saw him. As usual Pahd mod Pahd-el was fast asleep.
Sleep was Pahd's great passion. He preferred it to eating, to drinking, or to lovemaking. He could sleep
in any position and through any event. He'd also developed the feigning of sleep into a high art, to
discourage those fools who tried to pry him from his bed. Only one thing had consistently been able to
lure him from the sack, and that was a promise of challenging swordplay. Pelmen wondered if even that
could excite him now. The king slept in self-defense to avoid having to face the
tragedy his laziness had brought upon his nation and his family.
Oh, he would surely blame it on his motherbut it was Pahd's fault.
Pelmen had learned the story from Ferlyth. Pahd's mother, Chogi Ian Pahd-el, had become infatuated
with Flayh and had encouraged her son to invite him into the High Fortress. The lazy king had agreedit
was easier than arguingbut within days, they both had realized their mistake. Flayh had taken the castle
over.
No one had protested this but Sarie, Pahd's wife. Pelmen remembered the woman as a slovenly, giggling
party giver who had encouraged Pahd's laziness primarily just to frustrate tier mother-in-law. It was hard
to imagine her standing up to Flayh, but evidently she had done soand immediately thereafter had
contracted a violent illness. Apparently she'd been sick ever since. Ferlyth had heard it was Flayh's chief
hold over Pahd; despite his laziness and self-indulgence, it was well known that Pahd worshipped his little
wife.
So now he slept, Pelmen thought, to block out her illness and his own guilt. The king stirred, and Pelmen
stepped back to the door. Pahd raised up on one arm, looked blearily at Pelmen and whispered, "Sarie?"
Then the drug of sleep re-claimed him, and he settled back into his pillows, a satisfied smile curling across
his lips.
Pelmen closed the door quietly, speculating sadly on what might have been if Dorlyth had consented to
rule this nation. Now where? he wondered to himself. He sought to stifle it, but it came anywaya
sudden pang of despair. Besides hunting for Rosha, he had entered this castle with the hope that it might
lead him somehow to Serphimera. He was running out of places to look.
The same servants who had denied her entry only days before now welcomed her with smiles.
Serphimera nodded and smiled back, a bit uncertain as to how she was to behave. Resentment, scorn,
abusethese responses she had great ex-perience in handling. Warmth and friendliness were new to her.
It had been an arduous walk from the Great South Fir to this, the northern tip of Ngandib-Mar. It had
taken weeks, for when she'd set out initially she'd had no idea of where she was bound. Harder to bear
than the travel itself had been her guilt at abandoning Pelmen so abruptly. But how could she have done
otherwise? The Power's requirements had been crys-tal clear, yet Pelmen had refused to heed them! She
had been needed here, he had been needed elsewhere, but each time she'd tried to point that out, he'd
rejected her words, protesting that above all else they needed to stay together. She had realized finally
that he would never willingly yield to their separation and she'd departed, knowing only that she must
travel north-ward. Had he searched for her? She'd seen no sign of it. She hoped he had, but realized he
might have decided she was more trouble than she was worth. She couldn't help it. She'd had to come.
Of course, the people of Sythia Isle hadn't understood that when she'd arrived. She'd been stared at,
laughed at, and insulted. She'd had to beg to be allowed to visit their stricken lord, and then was only
permitted to do so under heavy guard. When she'd reached out to touch him, one warrior nearly
be-headed her, but stopped in midstroke when Syth suddenly sat up in bed. It had been no surprise to
Serphimera. That was the reason she'd come.
"Is he awake?" she asked the guard outside Syth's door. "I am!" Lord Syth called from within the room,
and Ser-phimera nodded at the warrior and stepped inside. "You're looking well this morning," she
murmured. "I've never felt better!" Syth responded, and he bounded out of bed to prove it to her. "You
see? No ill-effects! And all because of you!"
"Oh, no," Serphimera demurred, shaking her head. "I really had very little to do with it."
"Yes, yes, I know, it was all the Power, not you. I've heard the speech. But are you going to stand there
and deny that you made any personal sacrifices to get in here to heal me? Please don't, Serphimera. I
don't like to call my friends liars."
Serphimera glanced away in embarrassment and saw motion by the bed. When her eyes widened with
surprise, Syth looked that way too. The filmy image of an auburn-haired woman had suddenly appeared
there and was looking down at his empty pillow with a frown. "Mar-Yilot!" he shouted, and the vapory
form swirled around to face them.
"Syth!" the woman began joyfully. Then she stopped short, her golden eyes fixed on Serphimera.
Syth ran to her, flinging his arms around her shimmery form in an attempted embrace. He grabbed
nothing but air, but he didn't seem to mind. "Mar-Yilot! I'm healed!"
The Autumn Lady looked past him stonily, as if she were the solid one and he but a wispy vapor. Her
eyes didn't leave Serphimera's. "Who are you?" she asked, her voice devoid of all expression.
Serphimera recognized the lookundiluted jealousy. "Are you a shaper?" Mar-Yilot demanded flatly.
"I do not shape the powers," Serphimera answered evenly. "Rather, I am shaped"
"1 can see that already, despite that ugly sack you're wear-ing."
"Mar-Yilot!" Syth scolded.
Serphimera smiled graciously. "You misunderstand." "I understand that you're in my bedroom with my
husband, and that he's no longer under the dread. Am I wrong to assume you had some part in that?"
Mar-Yilot did not mask her hos-tility. Syth looked at Serphimera and rolled his eyes in em-barrassment.
"A part, perhaps, but not the major part. I am but a tool, a conduit of the Power"
"Whose power? I know all the wizards. Are you afraid to name him?"
"I did name him. The Power."
"What are you talking about?" Mar-Yilot frowned, propping translucent hands on equally translucent
hips. "Are you trying to provoke me?" "I am not."
"Then speak sensibly and tell me whom you serve!" Mar-Yilot demanded. "You're robed like a stupid
dragon lover," she added spitefully.
Serphimera smiled again. "That's because I once was a stupid dragon lover. I'm afraid this habit has
becomea habit. I've already told you whom I serve. You may indeed know all the wizards, but it
seems you've not yet met that One who is the source of all the powers."
"You say that as if I'm about to meet him."
"I hope so."
"He's the one who healed my husband?"
"It was the Power, yes."
"Then what exactly are you doing here?" Mar-Yilot spat.
"Mar-Yilot!" Syth barked. The crisp authority in his voice forced the sorceress to turn to him. "Rein in
your temper and sheathe your claws! While it's obvious that this woman is beautiful, she's not attracted to
me nor I to her. She has another. And I" he tempered his shout with tenderness. "I have you."
Mar-Yilot gazed at him guardedly, her amber eyes very sad. "You mean you still want me?" she asked.
"Of course I want you."
"Even though I left you uncovered in the ravines?"
From the look on Syth's face, Serphimera could tell that this memory was painful. But Syth smiled
through his hurt and said, "I'm sure you had a good reason."
"Not good enough," Mar-Yilot murmured, looking away. Then she brightened, and for the first time
Serphimera saw her smile. "But you're healed! Oh, I wish I could touch you!"
"And I you!" Syth grinned, his eyes gleaming in a way that made Serphimera blush. "Where are you?"
"In a bush near the High City."
"Be careful!" Syth frowned in alarm. "I've tasted Flayh's treachery once already! I won't lose you to
him!"
"Flayh's treachery?"
"Of course! It was Flayh who planned that ambush and trapped me into the spell of dread!"
"But I thoughtBainer told me it was Dorlyth!"
"A bogus Dorlyth, yes! Part of a plan to confuse and divide Flayh's opposition. It was Admon Faye in
Dorlyth's armor!"
Mar-Yilot moaned and closed her eyes in dismay.
"What's wrong?" Syth demanded anxiously.
"I've killed the wrong man!"
Syth stared at her. "You've killed Dorlyth? In vengeance for me?"
Mar-Yilot nodded remorsefully. "I ringed him with fire and drove him off a cliff. But that's what Bainer
told me!" she pleaded in self-defense.
Syth looked away, then shook his head and sighed. "Then Flayh's succeeded after all. Through this
lady's help, I'm no longer among the fallen, but his ruse has felled another who was just as much of a
threat."
Serphimera had been seized by grief. While she'd never met Dorlyth, she felt she knew him, for Pelmen
talked of him constantly. Where had Pelmen been during all this?
Mar-Yilot was watching her reactions. "Did you know Dor-lyth mod Karis?" the sorceress asked.
She shook her head. "No. But he was a very dear friend ofa very dear friend."
Recognition swept across Mar-Yilot's face and her eyes
widened in a stare. "You're Pelmen's woman!" she announced.
The words startled Serphimera, and she blushed, but only
for a moment. Then she looked up and met the shaper's gaze.
"Yes," Serphimera said. "Yes, I am."
Mar-Yilot looked at Syth. "I've got to go," she said with a smile and she disappeared.
It took a moment for the two of them to recover. Syth looked at Serphimera and shrugged. "She's like
that," he explained apologetically. "She'll be back."
"I can hardly wait," Serphimera responded, and she per-mitted herself a grin.
When life within the High Fortress grew tedious, Tibb honed his dagger. He didn't speak to anyone. He
just sat in a comer with a whetting stone and ground it against his blade. And he watched. He'd gathered
quite a store of knowledge about the happenings within this keep just from observation. He shared it with
no one. Although he knew many faces, he knew very few names. He made no effort to make friends.
He'd had a friend, once upon a time, and he was loyal. Once he'd kept his vow of vengeance, perhaps he
would make another.
At the moment, he sat at the foot of a rarely used staircase. It was rarely used because only those who
had been summoned by Flayh ever ascended it, and the powershaper himself never came down. Admon
Faye had set him to guard it while he went up to talk to the master. That wasn't necessaryeveryone in
the castle knew the shaper had some mysterious means of guarding himself. But the ugly slaver had
positioned Tibb here just the samerather like a man leaving his dog at the door.
Tibb sneered into the gloom that pervaded this corridor and reviewed his situation. For some reason,
Admon Faye had made him a sidekickliterally so, for when the slaver needed some-one to kick, that
someone was always Tibb. If he needed a shirt to wipe his bloody hands on, that shirt would be Tibb's.
When he needed a butt for his joke, that butt was Tibb. When-ever the slaver's bitterness and bile and
hatred of life welled up inside of him and spilled over in violence, Tibb was con-veniently near. The little
man always protected himself from the blows, but he never lost his temper. He absorbed the vilest curses
without blinking. He never complained. At times, it almost seemed that Admon Faye actually liked him,
for he had protected the little man on occasion from the bullying of other brigands. But Tibb rather
suspected that this was really because the slaver considered him a kind of private stock. Tibb was his
peta miniature terrier whose toughness amused him. No one could abuse Tibb but himself.
Tibb never argued with Admon Faye's commands. He just kept sharpening his dagger, waiting for the
day...
A heavy boot rammed into his backside, lifting him from the bottom stair and landing him on the corridor
floor. He didn't need to look to see who'd done it. To his knowledge, the powershaper didn't go around
kicking people. Admon Faye always did.
"Some guard," the slaver snorted.
Tibb looked up at him blandly and said nothing. He stooped to pick up his dagger and his whetstone.
"Still working on that dagger, I see." Admon Faye chortled. "You're no warrior, little sneak. A warrior
sharpens his great sword. Whose back do you plan to stick that into?"
"Yours," Tibb answered without hesitation.
Admon Faye threw back his head and laughed uproariously. When he finally managed to control himself
he wiped his eyes and chuckled. "I'd thought it was something like that. Ah, little sneak, I am so grateful
you're here. Life in this fortress would be unrelieved boredom without your clowning."
"I'm telling the truth," Tibb intoned.
"I know!" Admon Faye cackled. "That's what makes it such a scream! Vengeance, isn't it? Because
your bungling friend managed to get himself killed in the battle under the Imperial House?"
"You abandoned us"
"Ha!" Admon Faye hooted, genuinely amused. "You make it sound like I was your mother!"
"We thought you were our leader."
"So now you're going to knife me in the back."
"Not now" Tibb responded quietly, setting off another fit of giggles in the hideous slaver.
"Not now? Come now, Tibb! Not ever! I've given you one chance after another just to see if you had
the courage to make such a move! Oh, that dagger's sharp all right, but it stays in your scabbard. And it
will stay in your scabbard, until you've filed it down to a nub! You'll never kill me. Do you want to know
why? Because hating me is all that gives your life mean-ing!" Admon Faye finished with a triumphant grin.
Tibb gazed up at him. "I will kill you. I'm just waiting for the proper time."
"The proper time!" Admon Faye snickered. "And when will that be?"
"When it costs you something important. I want it to really hurt."
Admon Faye's eyes lidded dangerously. "I'll bet you do."
He looked away, as if bored with this threatening banter and
remembering something that needed doing. "Come on. We've
got to collect the rest of the lads and go wait down the hall."
"Wait for what?" Tibb asked.
"It seems Lord Flayh has allowed an intruder to penetrate this castle, and he wants us to get out of the
way so the fellow can go right to his door."
"How does he know?" Tibb frowned. Admon Faye shrugged expansively, then gave Tibb his brightest,
most grotesque smile. "Come on, little sneak," he said, slipping his long arm affectionately around Tibb's
shoul-ders. "Let's go play a game of darts. Maybe you'll get lucky and plant one between my eyes!" He
hustled Tibb down the corridor, laughing all the way.
Tibb said nothing. A few minutes later they were indeed playing a game of darts. But he never did get a
chance to aim one at Admon Faye. Just as he was about to take his turn, they heard a war cry from the
tower above.
CHAPTER EIGHT
Fire Fall
Hundreds of feet above the surface of the lake, Rosha found an open window. He slipped his fingers
carefully over the sill and pulled his head up to peer inside it. He saw no one. He quietly drew himself up
until his upper body was level with the sill, then threw his legs over it and stepped into the castle. His
heart pounded. He expected a troop of warriors to pounce upon him. None did. After resting a few
moments from his long climb up from the crevice, he felt an enormous flood of confidence washing
through him, sending fresh energy to every muscle.
He had done the impossible. For this, his name would be sung in the taverns of the Mar long after his
bones had rotted to dust. But there was a question in his mind. It all seemed too easy. Of course, no one
would be expecting someone to try to enter the castle from the rear, so he did have the element of
surprise. Even so, it seemed that if Flayh was half the shaper he was rumored to be, then penetrating his
fortress would be unthinkable. Rosha wondered if the man had been overrated. True, Pelmen had
spoken of his immense power, but Pelmen always gave his enemies more than their due. And no less a
shaper than the Autumn Lady herself had dismissed Flayh as a money-counting cloth seller. Rosha's
contempt for the man grew.
As he slipped into an empty corridor, he was jabbed again by a splinter of doubt. Was he forgetting
something important? As he'd done several times in the past two days, he performed a mental exercise
that alleviated his stress; he referred the question to the Power and forgot about it. He knew there was
something false in this. After all, he wasn't even sure he believed in the Power. Certainly his father didn't,
and Dorlyth was his model. Nevertheless, he'd heard Pelmen talk of faith and of yielding up one's failings.
Rosha had come to view this Power as a safety netthere to catch you if you fell, but otherwise not
worth worrying about. Religion was the concern of prophets and missionaries. Heroes had to concentrate
on victory. Therefore he would devote his attention to disposing of this substandard power shaper. If he
got into trouble some-how, it was the Power's responsibility to get him out of it.
As he passed near the barracks, he overheard loud, bois-terous laughter. Slavers! Where were the
proud, principled warriors who had once guarded this ancient keep? Gone, Rosha thought, abandoning
the sloth king to join the armies that would overthrow him. Were these belligerent cutthroats the best
Flayh could do for replacements? The man sank even lower in Rosha's estimation.
They weren't even guarding Flayh's own tower! The spiral staircase was open to him! Rosha danced
upward, unseen, unheard, unchallenged. His sword was out, and he was ready. Here was Flayh's door.
He crouched and listened at the key-hole. He heard shuffling footsteps and indistinct mutterings,' and
Rosha's lips curled in a disdainful smile. This was the new terror that had been loosed upon the land? This
mumbling merchant hiding away in a tower like a royal madman? Some powershaper! Rosha thought. He
threw his body toward the door and let out a piercing battle scream.
His shoulder never touched the wood. The door flew open before him, and he landed on the floor with a
clatter. He bounded to his knees and looked up; his stomach plummeted as he suddenly recognized his
own stupidity. Flayh sat quietly facing the door in an ornately carved chair. He was cackling with
satisfaction.
After several tension-packed hours of listening, Pelmen clearly heard the High Fortress speak:
The intruder you permitted to penetrate these walls is now among the towers. He had been waiting for
just such a word. All the same, it came as a shock, and he reeled back against a door jamb. He'd been
discovered! The castle was Finally revealing his presence!
No, the High Fortress went on, obviously answering a question.
Flayh's question, no doubt. Pelmen wished he could hear the powershaper's end of the conversation.
Evidently he still believes his success is due to his own stealth, the High Fortress snorted derisively.
Pelmen huddled against the door, certain that in the next moment either a squad of slavers would burst
down the hallway to arrest him or a stone in the ceiling directly above him would dislodge and drop to
crush him. He prepared to respondbut neither happened. Instead, the castle spoke once more.
He's at the top of your stairs. Now he's at your door. He's drawn his great sword. Why did you not
allow this fortress to dispose of the vermin while he climbed the outer wall?
Before the pops and breezes that formed these phrases faded away, Pelmen was pounding down the
steps of the royal tower en route to the tower of Flayh. The castle hadn't noticed him at all, and the
reason was now apparent. It had been busy tracking Rosha.
Very well, master. Deal with the fool as you choose. He is, after all, your plaything.
Somewhere between the bottom step of the royal staircase and the corridor floor, Pelmen turned into a
bird. He didn't realize he'd changed until he heard the fortress scream.
There's a shaper! Another shaper is within this house! That was all it managed to explain before
breaking off into an agonized grumbling of foundation stones.
Pelmen darted down a hallway and swooped around a cor-ner. He suddenly found himself in a thicket
of pike staves and greatswords. Slavers clogged the corridor, all facing toward Flayh's tower entrance.
He flashed over them. "A falcon!" one of the slavers shouted.
Another voice grunted, "What? Where!"
Pelmen knew the voice well and had long loathed it. He and Admon Faye were lifelong enemies.
"That's no falcon, it's a powershaper! Strike it down!"
Pikes and swords chopped the air, and Pelmen lost a feather or two as he dodged and glided through
this moving thicket of steel. Admon Faye himself stood on the first stair, fanning the air above him with his
blade and shouting curses at his men. Pelmen ducked past the flashing sword, dipping his talons intothe
flesh of the slaver's face in passing. Then he was wheeling up the stairwell toward Flayh's door with
powerful strokes of his wings. He was aware of Admon Faye's scream of pain as well as the sobs of the
castle, but he was intent solely on getting through the door above him before it slammed shut.
"Close that door!" Flayh was shouting at the castle, but so great was its agony that it was a fraction late
in complying. Pelmen shot through it and swooped toward Flayh's face. He threw his talons out before
him and screamed, and Flayh was forced to take his dog-shape in self-defense. Pelmen hit the floor
beside Rosha as a man once again and jerked the bewildered youth to his feet. He stabbed his finger
toward a heavily curtained window and commanded, "Jump through that!" Then he whirled to face Flayh,
his arms up in the stance of a shaper ready for war. The dog metamorphized back into human form and
took the same position.
They had battled each other through,the pyramids, but this was the first time they had met face to face.
Pelmen recoiled from the grotesque sight. Flayh's face had been tattooed a pale powder blue, the same
shade as Tahli-Damen's eyes. In this darkened room that blue tint was more noticeable; like the pyramids
themselves, Flayh's face glowed. His eyes had been protected from the magical blast by the quick
reflexes of his hands, but the marks they had left behind added to the bizarre picture. It was as if two
white starfish clung to Flayh's face, each outlining a beady, red-rimmed eye. Now Pelmen gazed into
those eyes, and what he saw there chilled him further. Flayh looked like a cornered rat, frightened,
insecure, savage. There was none of the quiet confidence and almost sporting rivalry he'd grown
accustomed to seeing in the faces of the Man shapers he had battled. But then, Flayh was not a Mari
magician, bred to enjoy fighting for fighting's sake. He knew none of the unwritten rules of the game. His
eyes tipped his hand; Pelmen knew what spell to expect and anticipated it. "Don't watch!" he shouted at
Rosha. Out of the corner of his eye, he saw the young swordsman bury his head in his hands. As Flayh
threw his spell of dread, Pelmen fashioned a kind of magical mirror to reflect Flayh's terror back. The
spells neutralized one another. The only effect of this enormous out-pouring of shaper power was a
heightened urgency in the cas-tle's shrieks.
For Pelmen, however, this was a shocking setback. He'd outguessed his opponent! By all rights Flayh
should now be helpless, suffering self-inflicted dread! This was yet another testimony to Flayh's enormous
resources. It was as if the hosts of the powers had rallied to Flayh's standard. Pelmen was momentarily
stunned. Fortunately Flayh was too. The thunder of iron-shod feet on the stairway and a heavy pounding
on the door jolted them both back to action.
"The door!" Flayh shouted at the High Fortress. "Open the door!"
Despite its pain, the castle tried to do so.
Rosha came out of hiding and raced over to slam the bolt back in place. Pelmen saw him go and
shouted, "Rosha! Get out!" Then he tossed a fireball at Flayh's head.
Rosha was within three steps of the tower's back window, but he still didn't move toward it. He'd seen
that ancient object that had lured him to the castle sitting on a small table across the circular room. He'd
come this farhe hated to leave with-out it. The slender, gracefully carved pyramid of diamond glowed
with a ghostly blue radiance, calling to him. Despite the flaming missiles that whirled around his head, he
lunged across the room and grabbed it. The table collapsed beneath him, and an explosion above his
head seared his neck.
"Will you get out?" Pelmen bellowed, hurdling Rosha and blocking the next blaze away. This time the
warrior obeyed. Clutching the crystal to his chest he scrambled to the window, then flung the heavy
drapes aside and jumped up onto the sill. There he had to pause. While he could see the blue reservoir
stretching out beneath him, he saw also the outer wall of the castle, which he would have to clear. It was
a very long drop...
Another explosion rocked the room behind him, and he heard the door splinter. He needed no more
convincing. He hugged the precious pyramid and jumped.
Pelmen backed toward the window, deflecting fireballs and trying to think. Even if Rosha survived the
dive, he would need magical assistance to escape the slavers. He had to help. The trouble was, these
fierce exchanges had depleted his ener-gies, while Flayh's power seemed only to grow. He had to get
away.
Admon Faye burst into the room roaring a curse as Pelmen jumped up onto the windowsill. The slaver
launched a sword
at his head and he was forced to dodge it before he could change forms. At the same moment, one of
Flayh's fireballs struck him in the chest, blowing him out the window. He lost consciousness with the
impact, as his robes ignited. He fell backward like a flaming star and was gone.
Flayh gave an exultant shout, and raced to the window to watch Pelmen's fall. The High Fortress,
however, kept up its horrendous howling. "Silence!" Flayh commanded, but the High Fortress wouldn't
be silent. "What's the matter with you!"
Don't you know? the fortress wailed in unspeakable ag-ony. There's still another shaper within these
walls!
Throughout the tugoliths' long trek through the riverlands of Lamath, Pezi had looked behind him more
than he'd looked ahead. It was never a pretty sight. Uprooted trees, demolished hedgerows, trampled
vegetable gardensoh, what a hideous picture that was!and of course, the occasional demolished
farmhouse. Their path resembled the wake of a particularly ' vindictive tornado. And he'd thought he
could sneak these beasts out of the country! Why, even if he could train them to walk on their tiptoes, the
sound of their passing would still wake the dead! The ground shook beneath their feet. His at-tempt to
take the inconspicuous back roads had come to naught all he'd managed to do was to clear a new
southern highway. Surely the authorities would be catching up with them soon. What was the penalty for
tugolith-napping? Considering Thug-anlitha's rampages, could he be charged with contributing to the
delinquency of a minor?
That's how he thought of themas children. Huge, un-disciplined children. He couldn't imagine how he
could have managed this far without the help of Chimolitha. She was the only force that held Thug in
check. Pezi called her a she. He didn't know why, it just seemed natural. He'd never asked the beast's
sex, of course. They were children, after all, and such a topic would be blushingly inappropriate. But she
acted like a girl, somehowhelpful, obedient, and bright.
And Thug acted like a rampaging little boy. Pezi had told
himself that if they could just make it to the Tellera Desert
everything would improve. Thug couldn't destroy anything
there, for there was nothing to destroy. Or so Pezi had figured.
They'd reached the desert that morning. Already Pezi wished
they were back in the comparative safety of the rivers. There was truly nothing in this desertmost
especially, no food. For a man who'd made the kitchens of the world his only temples, that was more
than a little disconcerting. But Pezi could handle his persona] privation. He was far more worried about
the tugs. A hungry tugolith was a grouchy tugolith, and a grouchy rug-olith couldwell, Pezi didn't even
want to think about it.
"I'm so hungry I could eat a human," Thuganlitha said menacingly. It wasn't the first time he'd said that.
He'd said it this morning, and Pezi had been so shocked he'd rolled off Chim's back and bounced onto
the roadway like a rubber ball. Chimolitha had wondered aloud why he'd done that, and it was only then
that Pezi realized Thuganlitha didn't understand what the words meant at all. It was just a saying some
misguided Lamathian had taught him because it sounded cute. "Cute!" Pezi grunted to himself. How could
anything about such a horrendously huge animal be thought cute! "I'm so hungry I could"
"You don't know what that means," Chimolitha interrupted calmly.
"I do so!" Thuganlitha snarled. "What, then?" Chim challenged.
Thuganlitha stamped the ground, leaving a huge pothole, and snorted. "It means I'm hungry!"
"But what's a human?" Chimolitha demanded. "Yeah," Riganlitha chimed in haughtily. "What's a human?"
Thug wheeled with a snort of rage and drove his horn deep into Riganlitha's hindquarters. The wounded
animal shrieked and fled, screaming for mercy. Pezi hardly blinkedthis hap-pened at least a dozen
times a day. As usual, Riganlitha retired to the rear of the cavalcade and found a sympathetic forequarter
to weep on. Another tug licked his pierced hide solicitously. They could all empathize, for all bore similar
scars of Thug's quick temper. All, that is, except Chimolitha. "You don't know," she said passively.
"Well, you don't either!" Thug snarled, dancing beside her in frustration.
"I can ask." She shrugged. Pezi always hated it when she shrugged. It meant he got bounced around
more than usual. "Who?" Thug demanded.
"The man." Chim shrugged again. That began a chorus of interested responses from the tugs that tagged
behind.
"What man?"
"Dolna is our man."
"Is Dolna here?"
"Where's Dolna?" "He's sick." "Dolna, I'm hungry!"
Don't talk!" Thug roared.
"Where's Dolna?"
"Don't talk!" Thug screamed again, and he whirled his massive bulk around to face the others, the tip of
his enormous horn glinting wickedly with Riganlitha's fresh, wet blood. The herd got quiet.
"This man," Chimolitha said, rolling her eyes upward to indicate the rather ample figure she bore on her
back.
"You mean the fat man?" Thug asked.
"Man?" Chimolitha called. "What's a human?"
Pezi faced a dilemma. Chimolitha was simpleminded, but she wasn't stupid. Twice already she'd caught
him trying to mislead her with a lie, and each time she'd rolled those saucer-sized eyes up to look at him
and said, "That isn't nice." He'd suffered the shakes for hours afterward. He didn't want to raise her ire
again, so he couldn't tell her a complete fiction. On the other hand, to tell the truth could be disastrous!
He'd already caught Thug looking at him hungrily and licking his enormous chops.
"That's... a very ... interesting question," Pezi began cau-tiously. He still didn't quite know what to say.
"Humans are aha certain type of person."
"Oh." Chimolitha nodded. Then her face clouded. "What's person?"
"Person? A person? Why, persons are people. You know, like me."
"Oh." Chim nodded. Once again she looked puzzled. "You are a person?"
"Yes," Pezi nodded, plunging unaware into the very danger zone he'd sought to avoid.
"Then you are a human?" Chim asked quietly.
"Yesno! No, ah, no, no. Not me. No. Not at all."
Chimolitha was greatly chagrined. "Then how do I know?"
"Know what?"
"What persons I can eat," she whined. She added apolo-getically, "I'm hungry too."
Sheer terror danced across Pezi's broad features. Pezi wasn't smart. He wasn't even clever. But Pezi
was a survivor, and could be very creative under pressure. He suddenly had an idea, one that pleased
him so much that he giggled aloud. "Their robes," he cackled gleefully. "You can tell by the color of their
robes. They always wear blue!"
They trudged along in silence as Chimolitha gave this some thought. The other tugoliths had all already
turned their small minds to other things. To them, this conversation might have been about higher math.
"Man," said Chim, "what's blue?"
Pezi thought quickly. "The sky. Blue's the color of the sky."
Chimolitha stopped moving, which brought the line behind her to a halt as well. She turned her huge
head backward to look solemnly at the sky. Then she lowered it once more to gaze down at the road.
"I'll remember." She nodded, then she plodded ahead once more.
"I'm still hungry," Thuganlitha groused, and Pezi's anxiety level soared once more. Suddenly he got a
whiff of something that made him rejoicefor more reasons than one.
"Onions!" he shouted. "I'm saved! I mean, ah, we're saved. There's an onion patch nearby. I've just
remembered it. Won-derful. We'll eat onions for lunch!" His excitement was con-tagious, and the
tugoliths in the rear began to crowd up around Chimolitha's flanks. She, however, seemed lost in thought.
"Is something troubling you?" Pezi asked her gently.
Chimolitha nodded. "Man?" she asked. "Are onions a type of persons?"
Pelmen came to his senses in a terrifying position. He was looking straight down a cliff, and someone
was beating on his back.
"Are you all right?" a voice shouted in his ears. Pelmen was seized by the shoulders and jerked upright,
and he yelped with pain, for his skin was blistered and raw.
Then he laughed aloud, and shouted. "Rosha!"
The young man released a long sigh and relaxed. "Good. I was afraid you were dead!"
"Why aren't I? And where are we?" Pelmen added quickly, glancing around at this water-filled cavern.
"We're still on top of the plateau," Rosha answered soberly. "This is a part of the lake connected to the
rest by underwater channels. Flayh and his people don't seem to know it's here."
"How did I get here? The last thing I remember was a fireball that blew me out of the tower."
"You hit the water right after me. The lake doused your flames, and I pulled you through the tunnel into
here."
Pelmen looked Rosha in the eye. "Then we're even," he said solemnly. "1 saved your life, and you saved
mine. We can talk later of the wisdom of this enterprise."
Rosha grunted and smiled sadly. "I'd not have saved yours if your cloaking hadn't been so effective. The
slavers filled the lake with arrows. We'd both have been skewered if you hadn't covered us."
Pelmen's eyebrow drooped in a sharp frown. "I didn't cover us!"
"What? You must have! They sure couldn't see us!"
"But I didn't."
"Are you sure you didn't cast it while you were falling? Just before passing out? I know you can maintain
a cloak in your sleep"
"I tell you I didn't do it!" Pelmen snapped, and Rosha was surprised at his intensity. "But if indeed
someone didand that seems the only explanation for our survivalthen who? And why?"
"I cloaked you, Dragonsbane," said the waif-faced woman who stood suddenly behind them.
"Mar-Yilot," Pelmen whispered as he splashed around to face her. Rosha grabbed for his sword. His
scabbard was empty. It was Pelmen who'd had his robes burned off, but Rosha felt the more naked.
Pelmen paid no heed to his lack of apparel. He faced the woman squarely. "How long have you been
there?"
"I just flew in. That's the advantage of a butterfly-shape. People see you, but don't notice."
"Then you're no longer cloaking the reservoir."
"Should I be?" she asked pointedly. "The two of you are
safe here for the moment. I thought I'd better join you to plan our way down."
"Our way?" Pelmen asked suspiciously.
"Pelmen, dear, you need help. You've been badly blistered and half-drowned. That, on top of a
ferocious shaper battle at very close quarters that I'd wager has rendered you all but powerless for days.
Of course," she added with a sardonic smile, "your friend the Power could possibly make up for the
damage and energy loss. But that really isn't necessary."
"Do you know the Power?" Pelmen asked. He still did not smile.
"Not personally," the Autumn Lady said coldly,"but if he happens along, why don't you introduce us."
"You've not yet answered my foremost question."
"Which was?"
"Why, Mar-Yilot? Why did you save us just now?"
The woman brushed her auburn hair out of her eyes and gazed out the cavern mouth toward the horizon.
The Furrowmar was yellow and brown with dying plants and crumbling leaves. It seemed for just a
moment her golden eyes misted over. Then they cleared. "For the present, let's say I owed it to you.
Both of you. There won't be time for fuller explanations unless we get down off this rock."
Pelmen didn't speak. Rosha didn't either. His eyes were fixed on his mentor, awaiting the powershaper's
next move. After a long pause, Pelmen finally whispered, "Why should we trust you?"
Mar-Yilot, who had been waiting for that, cocked her eye-brow and propped her hands on her slim
hips. "Right. Why should you trust the witch who just saved your hide? What's left of it."
Reminded of his burns, Pelmen turned his head away from her and looked at his scalded shoulder.
"It's rather pink," Mar-Yilot went on. "In fact, all of you I can see is rather pink. And," she added with a
droll smile, "I can see all of you."
"I'll need some clothes," Pelmen mumbled.
"You'd do well to have a good salve on that first. Now to business. How do we get down? I can fly, but
I wouldn't trust your feathers if I were you. And Rosha" Here she looked at the young warrior directly
for the first time, and her mocking tone seemed distinctly softer when she went on. "That is right, isn't it?
Rosha?" He nodded firmly, face grim. "Well. It's a long climb down that pipe. Too long." Her voice was
almost motherly. It made Rosha feel very strange.
"What do you suggest?" Pelmen asked wearily. His body was feeling the shock now. Much as he hated
the arrangement, he knew the woman was right. They would be obliged to depend upon her.
"When I left our friends out there, they were sending swim-mers into the lake. Thanks to that noisy
castle, Flayh knows there was another shaper inside, but he doesn't know who, and he doesn't know for
certain that the lake was cloaked. They're going to hunt for bodies, and they'll find twowhich I've
conveniently placed there already. These slavers!" She sighed. "They don't know each other and they
don't care. They don't even know how many there are of them. It's child's play con-fusing such a
company of fools."
"What they lack in organization they make up for in cruelty. Go on," Pelmen urged, leaning back against
a wall of the cave. He was feeling very dizzy.
"I'll go get some rope, tie it on the rocks above, and drop it down. Then I'll fly back inside. Rosha, you'll
climb up I'll cloak you, of coursethen you'll drop the rope down and I'll tie it around Pelmen, and
you'll haul him out. Drop it down again and pull me up. I'd fly up but I can't take my altershape and keep
the cloaking spell in place. Then we walk around the lake and into the city. That may be tricky. Flayh's
surely not going to leave the perimeter of his fortress unpenetrated, and if he should guess rightly, he
could nullify my spell. Pelmen, husband your strength. As we walk around the lake, add what-ever
coverage you can provide to mine. With luck, he could penetrate mine and catch us. Depleted though
you may be, I'll wager my life he can't penetrate us both."
Pelmen nodded weakly. "A good plan," he murmured.
"We'll go to a friend's house where we'll find some food and a place to rest for the journey."
"Flayh will be searching," Pelmen grunted. "He'll throw a net."
"Once we're inside the house, I'll not shape unless I have to. He may be able to tell when we've slipped
by his castle, but once we're into the city and we stop all shaping, he'll have no way to net us. He'd have
to search every house to find us, and Ngandib is a very big place. Even if he did that, he'd still not find us,
for we can hide as long as he can hunt. When he's grown discouraged and turned his attention elsewhere,
we'll slip away, down the Down Road and north."
"How long will that be? Can you guess?" Rosha asked her.
Mar-Yilot looked at him againjust looked, as if studying his face. Then, with remarkable gentleness,
she answered, "Soon, I think. This Flayh is a powerand from what I've seen today, an awesome one.
But even Flayh can only do one thing at a time." She turned her head away, and added, "I hope."
Rosha had felt much better before that final disclaimer. Mar-Yilot shrugged, and Rosha sighed.
"Don't worry," she soothed, reaching out to pat his curly black hair. "You'll do fine." Once again, Rosha
felt strange.
"Bring the rope" Pelmen gasped, and they both noticed that he was now slumping down toward the
water.
"You're fading," Mar-Yilot said, and she started to alter her shape. Then she took a last look at Pelmen's
body and added, "I'd better bring some salve and a robe as well. Not for your benefit, particularly, but
for mine. Nobody else will see you, but I will, and I have too much respect for you to watch you walk
naked through the streets of the capital." The woman was suddenly a butterfly fluttering out the mouth of
the cavern.
Rosha sloshed to Pelmen and hoisted him back out of the water. He let the powershaper's head slump
against his shoul-der, then reached inside his mail shirt. It was still there, safely hidden awaythe
sharp-edged, glowing pyramid. He had it. It had cost dearly. Not only had he almost lost his own life,
he'd nearly gotten Pelmen killed as well. He had been stupid, and his father would chew both of his ears
off. But he had it. He had it!
"How is he?" Mar-Yilot whispered, and Rosha jumped, startled. He hadn't seen her enter the room.
"Sorry," the sor-ceress said sincerely, kneeling and laying her hand on his arm.
Rosha relaxed, and settled back onto his stool. "I don't know." He shrugged. "I'm no herbalist. But he
did drink the soup. And he doesn't seem to moan as much."
Mar-Yilot nodded and studied Pelmen's face. "The salve helped. And he's getting plenty of sleep. That's
good. He'll need that."
"Is Flayh still searching?"
"Diligently. I've felt the brush of his net at least twice. It's a good thing he didn't start that immediately, or
he might have caught us tiptoeing around the reservoir."
"What about Admon Faye?"
Shh" Mar-Yilot hissed, pointing to Pelmen. The sleeper was stirring. She got to her feet and
beckoned Rosha to follow her out of the bedroom. Once in the hallway, they closed the door, and
Mar-Yilot answered Rosha in her normal voice. "There are groups of slavers on all the main roads,
stopping everyone who passes. It's just for show. Admon Faye knows that, if Flayh can't find us, he
certainly won't, but he's de-monstrating his diligence. Or perhaps he's trying to terrorize those who are
hiding us into revealing our whereabouts."
"Is there any chance of that?" Rosha muttered anxiously, thinking of the old couple who waited uneasily
in the main room of the cottage.
Mar-Yilot smiled, and Rosha shivered at the sight. "Know-ing what you know, would you betray me to
an enemy?" Rosha understood. He shook his head. "Apart from that, these are my friends," she went on.
"And they're certainly no supporters of this treacherous Flayh. They've assured me we can stay here as
long as necessary, but 1 think it's best if we don't linger. Flayh's determined to catch usmore so than 1
expected. The longer we wait, the more time he has to think of ways to entrap us. And who can know
what else is in that marvelous spell-book of his?" She nodded toward Pelmen's door. "Think he can
travel?"
"Now?" Rosha frowned. "The man's been bumed! He's exhausted! In shock! You expect him just to get
out of bed and"
"Yes, she does," Pelmen mumbled weakly as he opened the door behind them.
Rosha jerked around to stare at him, then ordered, "Get back in that bed."
"I'd like to, certainly. I feel as weary as the king himself. But the woman is right. There's no safety for us
here. The question is, where can we be safe?" Pelmen directed this to Mar-Yilot.
"The glade of mod Carl," Rosha said flatly. "We'll rejoin Lord Ferlyth and my father." Rosha missed the
mute exchange between the two powershapers. They'd silently agreed to put explanations off until later.
"I think not," was all Pelmen said. "What do you suggest?" he asked Mar-Yilot.
"Let's try the Down Road now. Kam's lands are at the base of the plateau, and he's an ally of mine. He'll
furnish us with horses, and we can start up the Riverline."
'To Sythia?" Pelmen asked.
"Why not? Flayh knows someone helped you, but I'd wager all the diamonds on the Isle that I'm the last
person he'd ex-pect."
Once again something unspoken passed between the shap-ers, and this time Rosha saw it. He didn't
comprehend, though, and Pelmen's response revealed nothing. "I'm sure you're right. I certainly didn't
expect it. But why Sythia, when that's sure to be another focus of Flayh's attention?"
"To get you some proper healing, primarily," the woman grunted. Then she smiled smugly. "There is a
woman there with healing hands. Perhaps you know of her. Calls herself Serphimera?"
"Serphimera!" Pelmen blurted with renewed vitality. "Ser-phimera's there?"
Mar-Yilot turned to Rosha. "I think he'll be able to make the trip."
Indeed, Pelmen was already limping around the bedroom in his borrowed cloak, muttering, "Shoes,
shoes"
"There's a pair waiting by the door, and a heavy cloak as well. The clouds and the cold tell me snow's
on the way. Let's go"
"But what about Flayh?" Rosha protested. "Won't he be certain to watch the Down Road?"
"He can't watch every place at once." Mar-Yilot shrugged. "Maybe we'll get lucky. And if not, wellI
know a trick or two."
Moments later they'd bid good-bye to the much-relieved couple and pushed out into the cold night.
"Pelmen," Mar-Yilot muttered, "I'll cover us if you can manage a light."
Without another word a small ball of purple flame appeared at eye level four feet before them, and they
started off, their breath steaming in the chill. Rosha and the sorceress flanked Pelmen, propping his arms
over their shoulders as they had done when carrying him around the lake. But he bore most of his weight
on his own feet now. Mar-Yilot had said the one name that bewitched him, and it had summoned hidden
reserves of energy from within him.
Mar-Yilot appeared to be listening for something. Then she smiled encouragingly. "We're in luck. If he's
casting his net, he's looking elsewhere at the moment. Let's hurry." Rosha stalked along briskly, aware of
the cold but more aware of the eerie appearance of this odd threesome. It amazed him to think that
neither they nor Pelmen's ball of flame could be seen, yet in just moments there was new evidence of that
fact. They heard boisterous laughter around a corner as they approached one of Ngandib's larger
cobbled avenues. They slowed their pace and continued walking quietly. A group of slavers had
surrounded a pair of teenaged girls and were har-assing them for being out on the streets at night. The
concealed trio walked slowly past them without drawing a glance. Several guards held torches. In the
light from them, Rosha caught sight of the terrified face of one of the girls. He almost turned back in fury.
Mar-Yilot caught his eye. He saw a fierce rage etched in her face too, but she only mouthed, "Later," and
nodded forward. They left the noise behind them as they turned another corner.
In minutes they'd reached the main thoroughfare of the city, the wide boulevard that ran from the top of
the Down Road to the entrance of the High Fortress. Bonfires lighted up the night at every major
intersection along it, and slavers were in evi-dence everywhere. The trio kept well to one side, hugging
the shop fronts, warily watching the vigilant guards and paying particular attention to the closest
alleyways, in case they needed to flee quickly. No one stopped them. No one seemed to notice them.
But when at last they could make out the entry point onto the Down Road, they all slowed to a halt and
looked at one another in frustration. Twelve slavers stood abreast of the road, shoulder to shoulder,
facing back toward the city, their weapons drawn and gleaming in the torchlight. They all looked
extremely edgy. Mar-Yilot jerked her head toward an alley, and the three ducked into it.
Pelmen leaned back against a wall and closed his eyes. The walk had drained him. Rosha searched
Mar-Yilot's face for some suggestion. He waited for her to speak.
"Obviously, we can't get past them," she whispered fiercely. "They may not be able to see us but they
can feel us. Flayh's positioned them as he has for just that purposeto feel us if we try to slide past." She
fumed for a few moments in silence. Pelmen had let the light fade away, so Rosha could no longer see
her. He could hear her anger, though, in the way she breathed. He waited.
"It could work in our favor," she whispered after a moment. "Rosha, you have your sword?"
Rosha winced. "I lost it. In Flayh's tower."
Mar-Yilot grunted. "You need a sword. Wait here while I borrow one." She started to leave, then
stepped back to whis-per, "Stay in the shadows! While I'm gone you're not being concealed!" Then she
walked quietly away.
Rosha leaned back beside Pelmen and listened to the pound-ing of his own heart. Rarely had he ever felt
so helpless. No longer did he feel the cocky confidence of a young warrior. He felt himself the plaything
of wizards, an errand boy for the truly powerful. He fought to relax, earnestly hoping that no slaver would
choose to wander down this alley.
Something touched his hand and he jerked in shock. For the second time tonight the sorceress
apologized for startling him. Then she shoved a sword hilt into his hand, and his fingers closed on it
gratefully. "Where'd you get it?" he whispered as his other hand felt for the blade.
"From a slaver who doesn't need it any longer," she an-swered. Rosha now felt the slick coating of
wetness on the metal and understood. "Pelmen," Mar-Yilot whispered, "can you go on?"
"Yes," Pelmen muttered, but his voice was heavy with ex-haustion. Rosha waited on Mar-Yilot's
decision.
"We can't turn back now. I didn't hide that slaver's body, and they'll find it soon enough. We go on. The
two of you wait here, ready to move quickly. I'm going to go up the street and cause a distraction.
Maybe we can pull a few of those slavers out of line, but that doesn't matter much, if we can get the rest
of their friends looking in the other direction. When I've drawn a crowd I'll quickly join you here, and
cover us as we dash for that line of slavers. I'll help Pelmen, Rosha. You concentrate on cutting down
those twelve men. They'll not see us coming, and they'll never know what killed them. And Rosha," she
added cannily, "if it somehow doesn't seem sport-ingremember that group of bullies around the two
girls."
Rosha didn't answer. He clenched his jaw and gripped the haft of the great sword with both hands.
"One other thing, Rosha. Make sure you get them all."
He didn't hear her go, so Rosha knew she'd left them in her altershape. At the moment, they were
uncovered again, but he felt much better this time. A weapon made the difference. "Are you sure you can
make it?" he whispered to Pelmen.
"Not sure I can make it, no," Pelmen responded quietly, "but sure that I want to try."
Rosha nodded and took a deep breath. Then they waited. A few moments later they heard a commotion
in the street. They Heard laughter coming from some distance away, then running. Soon the slavers
nearest them became interested, and several abandoned the warmth of their bonfire to run toward the site
of the disturbance. Rosha chanced a peek around the corner. The human barrier still blocked their
escape, but the slavers who had been keeping the line of men company had all disappeared toward the
center of town. "Get ready," Rosha murmured, and Pelmen straightened up and took a deep breath.
Two feet suddenly hit the pavement beside Rosha. "Let's go," Mar-Yilot muttered.
"What did you do down there?"
The woman glared at him. "I stripped," she snapped. "Now move!"
The trio dashed out of the alleyway, all crouching in sub-conscious self-preservation. It was
unnecessary. The slavers who blocked them never looked in their direction, so intently were they peering
up the street. As he approached them, run-ning lightly on his toes, Rosha lifted the sword above his head.
Then he was upon them, like a vengeful, invisible demon. He started at one end of the line and hacked
down two before the others realized they were under attack. He pierced a third through the heart and
wounded a fourth, and by that time there was enough room for Mar-Yilot and Pelmen to hurry past. The
other slavers were shouting in panic, aware that something terrible was taking place but not knowing how
to prevent it. Their swords were out and they were slashing wildly at the air. In the confusion, two more
slavers were killed by their own men. Rosha had circled behind now, and skewered three more slavers
from that direction. Then he stepped back to catch his breath and decide how best to dispatch the last
three. They were cursing one another and the darkness and flailing their swords before them, but they'd
had the good sense to put their backs together.
"Come on!" Mar-Yilot called urgently, and Rosha nodded. Then he noticed that the three of them were
standing very near the precipice. He sheathed his bloody greatsword, ducked under a swiping blade, and
shoved the closest slaver backward. He threw his arms wide, carrying the other two backward with him.
When Rosha stepped forward and shoved again, all three went over the cliff. Their screams faded away
as Rosha raced down to join his friends, and the trio of the warrior, the witch, and the wounded
disappeared down the road into the night.
CHAPTER NINE
Purple Cloud on the Golden Throne
A chill breeze swirled around the battlements of the Imperial House of Chaomonous, tousling
Bronwynn's curls. The young woman shoved her hair back out of her face, adding to its unkempt
appearance. It didn't matter how she looked. She was a queen. She didn't have to impress anyone, and
the only one she wanted to impress apparently didn't care. Bronwynn scowled northward. Her thoughts
vacillated between fantasies of ten-derly embracing Rosha and of roasting him over a fire.
Try as she might she'd been unable to repeat the experience of dream-search. Had it really even
happened that once? She couldn't prove it had, certainly. Nevertheless, in all her life she'd had no dream
so conscious or so real. She was convinced she had actually talked with Pelmen atop the Rock of
Tombs.
If only her fool Prime Minister had let her sleep! Just as she'd been about to ask Pelmen for the key to
repeating the spell, Kherda had wakened her! She'd railed at the man for hours after that. Indeed, she
still hadn't forgiven him, although she knew she should. He'd only been alerting her to a growing national
crisis, related to the activities of sugar-clawsps, of all things. Bronwynn frowned to herself and scratched
her head. "Sometimes this queen business is nothing but a bother," she grumbled aloud.
On the other hand, there were compensations. She glanced down at the vast plain north of the city and
noted with satis-faction the growing number of pavilions that were springing up around its edge. Despite
his misgivings, Kherda had fol-lowed her orders and summoned the Golden Throng. Her army swelled in
size daily. Now if only Joss would hurry and get back to, take charge of it...
Bronwynn stepped down off the wall and strolled across the huge roof of her castle. Her hands clasped
behind her, her head down, she was only vaguely aware that Maliff, her falconer, was diligently exercising
one of his feathered charges. For his part, Maliff was not aware of Bronwynn at all. The actions of his
birds totally absorbed the man's attentions. Peopleeven queenswere merely distractions.
In the midst of the roof there was a cavernous hole where her father's aviary had once stood. A broad
ramp spiraled down its edge toward the palace garden. As Bronwynn set foot on this, she heard
animated voices from below. Kherda was bring-ing a group of some sort up the ramp, obviously in
search of her. She sighed. Too late to turn back. She might as well meet this delegation and get it over
with.
"Your Highness?" someone called up.
Bronwynn recognized the mellow voice immediately and clapped her hands with genuine affection.
"Oerrig?" she called. "Is that you?"
"Your Highness!" the burly actor called again as they came in sight of one another around a turn. "What
a pleasure to see your beautiful face! For a day or two, I worried we might never see it again!"
Bronwynn warmly greeted the others in Gerrig's com-panyDanyilyn, a petite actress with radiant eyes
and a lovely smile, and Yona Parmi, the one man in Chaomonous who knew Pelmen best of all. These
were Pelmen's closest friends in all the Golden Realm, for this was the core of his acting troupe.
Bronwynn made a point of ignoring Prime Minister Kherda as she hooked her arm in Gerrig's and asked,
"Exactly what do you mean?"
Gerrig frowned and turned to look at Kherda. "The Prime Minister says he's told you about the
clawsps..."
Bronwynn moaned. "Indeed. I've heard enough about sugar-clawsps to last a lifetime. How they eat,
how they breed"
"How they kill?" Gerrig rumbled deep in his chest, and the queen stopped walking and looked at him
intently.
"How they what?"
"They kill, your Highness," Gerrig intoned, and Danyilyn and Yona Parmi nodded in agreement.
"Explain," Bronwynn commanded, looking at the actress.
"As you know, we've been performing in Pleclypsa," Dan-yilyn responded. "All went well until a week
ago, when we began noticing swarms of sugar-clawsps buzzing around the city"
"Clawsps don't swarm," Bronwynn interrupted matter-of-factly. She felt certain of this. In the last week
Kherda had read her every book in the library concerning the subject, and not one had mentioned
swarming.
"That's true, they don't," Yona Parmi agreed, leaning to-ward her. "Yet they're swarming in Pleclypsa.
Three nights ago, they swarmed a member of our audience during a per-formance. You can imagine the
screams. Fortunately, the poor man died quickly."
"And he wasn't the only one!" Gerrig burst in. "There were others that night, all leading citizens! It's as if
they'd each been chosen for assassination! By the next morning, we were on our way here!"
Utterly perplexed, Bronwynn looked at her Prime Minister inquiringly.
"It would appear," Kherda began with his usual unnecessary formality, "that at present the southerly
regions of the nation are the only areas infected. But as I warned you some days ago, my Queen, this
malady among our insect population ap-pears to be moving northward toward this city."
Bronwynn shook her head in disbelief. "Then they really do swarm." She missed seeing the Prime
Minister's smug nod as she turned again to the actors. "Does anyone have an ex-planation?"
Danyilyn shook her head, while Gerrig gave the queen an elaborate shrug. Yona Parmi, however,
tapped his chin sagely and squinted his tiny eyes. "You know, of course, that Pelmen and I spent a lot of
time talking. If my memory serves me, he once mentioned some Mari powershaper who could transform
himself into a sugar-clawsp. I wonder. Could this all be re-lated?"
Kherda chuckled involuntarily, then stifled it. Bronwynn looked at him in annoyance, and the Prime
Minister felt obliged to explain. "Well 1 hardly think... I mean, a powershaper here? To what purpose?
And if this should be some Mari attack, would it not start in the north?"
Bronwynn scowled at the man and looked back at the play-ers. "Obviously our Prime Minister knows
very little about shapers." She glanced back at Kherda and went on. "Although he'd like us to believe he
knows everything about everything." She looked at Yona Parmi. "Thank you, Yona, for your sug-gestion.
I'll consider itbut I certainly hope you're wrong. I have an invasion to mount and an army to lead. I
haven't time to worry about the odd activities of a horde of insects."
"An invasion?" Gerrig asked, raising his bushy eyebrows.
"My husband has run off to his homeland to find a war to fight in. I'm going to get him back."
"So you've summoned the Golden Throng?" the huge actor asked enthusiastically, missing the exchange
of rolled eyes between Danyilyn and Yona Parmi. "That explains all the war-riors on the road!"
"It should." Bronwynn nodded curtly. "But tell me, Ger-rigwhy do your eyes look glazed?"
"Your Highness," Gerrig mumbled, "you know I've had far more experience in acting the warrior than in
being one. Never-theless, it's always been my private dream to march with the Golden Throng..."
Danyilyn winced in obvious pain, and Yona Parmi massaged his temples. Bronwynn ignored them.
"You're welcome to join my army any time you choose, Gerrig. But perhaps that's a decision that should
wait until you've rested?"
"Indeed, we're all very tired," Danyilyn agreed as she placed her tiny hands in the middle of Gerrig's huge
back and struggled to shove him toward their apartments.
"A rest will help us all think more clearly," Yona Parmi nodded. "We thank you, your Highness," he
added, bowing deeply. Then he and Danyilyn ushered the big actor off the ramp and down one of the
castle's long, well-lighted corridors.
"I felt you should hear this news quickly" Kherda began, but Bronwynn cut him off.
"It doesn't change a thing. I'm still marching northward as soon as Joss returns from Lamath."
The Prime Minister heaved a despairing sigh. "I feared as much. My Queen, Joss arrived this morning
and went imme-diately to the parade grounds. He sends his apologies, but explains that, given your
commands, he felt he should make as much use of the daylight as possible. He'll come to the palace this
evening to give his report."
"Ah, Joss!" Bronwynn said enthusiastically. "It's good to have at least one advisor with a warlike spirit!"
Kherda seemed ready to comment, then checked himself. "What about the sugar-clawsps?" he asked
tentatively.
Bronwynn shrugged. "Have you ever thought of poisoning all the sugar in the city?" She didn't wait to see
Kherda's expression but turned to climb the ramp toward her own royal suite. "I'm going to pack. Inform
Joss that I expect a drill parade tomorrow. And Kherda," she added, stopping to look back, "send the
heralds to proclaim it throughout the city. I want there to be a crowd."
Terril rode northward from Pleclypsa on a stolen pony, reflecting on the chaos he'd left behind him. The
city was in turmoil. Most of its leading citizens were dead, assassinated by huge swarms of
sugar-clawsps. The little creatures had done this eagerly, fanatically. They couldn't help themselves. They
were acting upon the commands of their god.
Clawsps were small insects with shiny, purple bodies with a singleminded obsession for sugar. They
took it wherever they could find it, from ripening fruits to the tables of kings. With it they built the
sparkling castles of crystallized sugar that decorated the eaves of most human dwellings. Clawsps were
docile creatures as a rule. Whenever they became alarmed, however, their violet armor exuded a stinking
chemical that produced very nasty burns. Most mothers tolerated clawsps; while they could empty a
sugar dish in a week, they never took it further than the roof outside the door. Once the dish was empty it
was easy enough to put on a pair of gloves and break off a tower of the constantly growing clawsp castle
to grind back again into granules. Meanwhile, the little buzzing guards kept childish fingers out of the
sweets. The relationship had always proved of mutual benefit to human and clawsp alike. It meant,
however, that Terril the twin-killer had a standing garrison in every house in the land. His only difficulty
lay in mobilizing this vast army. The process was loathsome.
Each castle was an autonomous unit. Clawsps did not speak, but they did communicate through the
sense of smell. That chemical that proved so painful to human fingers had a pungent odor, that transmitted
the concept of war. There was a variety of other scents as well, each with its own meaning. As a
sugar-clawsp grew older, the odor it exuded became more powerful, until by shifts of scent it could
dominate the younger clawsps round it. Clawsp castles were therefore ruled by elders. All an older
clawsp needed to do to create a stir or arouse controversy was to make a stink.
No mere clawsp, however, could make a stink like Terril. Each time he buzzed into the clear hallways of
a new crystal castle, he projected a scent more powerful than that of all the elders put together. In
moments, he could raise the band to frenzy, for his odor communicated far more than simply war. In the
small nerve centers of the buzzing bugs, it birthed the concept of godhood. Inflamed and inspired, the
insects would swarm from the castle like miniature maenads, searching for a victim on which to vent their
rage. A single clawsp was merely a nuisance. However, a thousand sugar-clawsps clus-tered upon every
exposed part of a human body brought about a hideously painful death. Terril needed only to guide his
mind-less devotees to his intended target and make a single angry pass. Then he could glide to the side
and watch as his victim went down beneath a glistening purple wave.
It was a most effective powerby far the most useful his peculiar altershape had gifted him with. But he
loathed it. His stomach soured every time he had to enter a new castle. While his body glistened with the
same purple oiliness as the shells of these insects, he saw them still with human eyes. The scent that
summoned them to war choked his human sensibilities. The cacophonous buzzing of wings in motion
assaulted his mind. But worst of all was the suffocation of their adulation, as slimy, stinking insects
struggled to rub their armor-plated bodies across his.
Just thinking about it made Terril retch. It took powerful motivation to force him down those crystalline
hallways. But Terril was powerfully motivated. Although he was not the kind of man who could admit
such to himself, Flayh terrified him.
Terril had simply ignored the first invitation to the High Fortress. Flayh had then summoned him to court,
the summons bearing the king's own seal. Terril had dismissed it with a characteristically haughty reply.
Then one day, while in his altershape, he felt the net close around himinvisible, yes, but far more
effective than a web of woven steel. It had irre-sistibly drawn him to Ngandib, to the High Fortress, up a
narrow, fetid spiral staircase into a darkened chamber. There it held him fast as Flayh lectured him
intermittently on manners. Between lectures, Terril had experienced physical and psych-ical miseries
unparalleled in his existence. He was known throughout the Mar as an evil man for the cold-hearted
murder of his identical twin. But when at last Flayh freed him from that tower, Terril had a new
appreciation of just what evil was. Flayh was intensely evil. And the threat of one day finding himself
locked in that tower again was motivation enough to drive him into a thousand clawsp castles and more.
He was driven by more than just fear. Greed was an old comrade that had traveled with him ever since
he found his altershape and left the cow pens of Carlog behind him. Genii had left with him, though at that
time Terril's brother had yet to discover his powers. They'd set out to make their fortune from Terril's
shaping and had tried to build a monopoly on sugar. Then Gerril had found his own altershapeas well
as his conscience. For the first time, Terril saw something other than a mirror image when he looked at
his brother, and the sight humiliated him. While Terril was a stinking, stinging insect, Gerril was a
seven-point stag.
War had comethat uneven war when Pelmen stood alone
against six other wizards and prevailed. He would not have done so, perhaps, had the stalwart stag not
aided him, and Pelmen's victory had cost Terril a treasure. He'd plotted his brother's death from that day.
One winter he'd tricked his brother into the forest and into his altershape. A lonely hunter had sent the
shaft through Genii's neck, but it was Terril who'd guided the huntsman to the quarry. As Gerril had
collapsed upon the snow, changing shape a final time as he drew his dying breath, his treacherous twin
had taken to the wing, bear-ing with him a new nickname: the twin-killer. The moniker was a gift from
Terril's comrade, greed. Greed drove him. And laced among the threats, Flayh had spun marvelous
pictures of Terril seated upon the golden throne of Chaomonous.
But it was more than just fear and greed that drove him northward toward Bronwynn's capital. Deep in
his soul, he nurtured a quiet longing for a new vengeance. The death of his brother in that frozen forest
had freed him, at last, from a lifelong shackle. He prized that freedom. He would not submit easily to the
yoke of Flayh. He would sit on the golden throne, yes, but not at the behest of any upstart merchant,
regardless of how powerful. When the time was ripe, he would act. There were, after all, clawsps in the
High Fortress as well.
Until that time came, however, it made sense for Terril to impress Flayh with his loyalty. This could be
easily done. Flayh had given him explicit instructions regarding a merchant he wanted murdered, and
Terril would happily oblige. As he crossed the bridge into the city of Chaomonous, he spied a petty
peddler moving slowly through the streets.
"My friend!" Terril called. "Can you direct me to the castle of Uda in your fair city?"
The man turned to regard Terril with undisguised contempt. "You sound foreign. You're a merchant,
aren't you?"
"Not I." Terril chuckled. "But I do have some business with one. Do you know the way?"
The man raised an eyebrow in disdain, then pointed forward. "You're going straight toward it. The large
building on the right, just before you cross the bridge to the palace isle. It's no castle, though."
"Thank you, friend." Terril waved as he rode on. "You've been a great help." He heard the city dweller
snort as he rode
past and smiled maliciously. There would be time, he thought to himself.
Terril could hardly miss the house. It was draped with red and purple bunting, the colors of Uda, and
was easily the grandest dwelling on this very grand avenue. Terril urged his horse into an alley, then
changed his form. A moment later he buzzed into one of the open windows of Uda's townhouse in
Chaomonous.
It took only a few moments of observation to identify the man named Jagd. From a corner of the ceiling,
Terril watched as the little merchant moved around the main office, snapping orders, signing documents,
and browbeating underlings. Terril suddenly realized that this Jagd was very much like Flayh. Both men
were small in stature. Both were iron-willed, tight-fisted merchant lords, using and discarding people
without a thought. Terril decided he could take pleasure in settling this score. While his minions bumed
this Jagd into senselessness, he would imagine they were burning Flayh. Terril whizzed unnoticed out of
Jagd's open window and found a clawsp castle hanging from the eaves directly above it.
He didn't hesitate. He plunged into the inverted palace of crystallized sugar, his shell oiling odiferously.
Moments later he led two thousand swarming clawsps into the house of Jagd of Uda. The man heard
them coming and just had time to turn his head to look. No one kept better informed of current events
than merchants. In that split second Jagd knew exactly what was happening, and his mouth gaped open
in self-pity. Then he was screaming in horrified agony. Terril buzzed aside to watch, wanting to insure that
the job was well done. When Flayh heard this news, Terril wanted there to be no mistaking that it had
been carried out to the letter. Naturally the little powershaper would know who was responsible. Who
but Terril could do murder by insects?
By the time Jagd stopped screaming and pitched over onto the floor, a crowd of his kinsmen and
servants had rushed into the office. Terril waited until the resident herbalist announced that Jagd was
dead before leading his purple army out the window. He was amused at the expressions he left behind
him. Jagd's death had summoned almost as many shocked smiles from the terrified Udans as it had tears.
He wasn't quite finished. A disdainful peddler somewhere
along this road had raised his ire, and Terril was nothing if not vengeful. He found the man in moments
and left him squirming in the streets, crying out for someone to take a knife and end his unspeakable
misery. A very satisfactory conclusion, Terril thought to himself as he left his army clustered upon the
peddler and soared off toward the heart of the city. That should be sufficient to panic the local residents.
From this height he could look down on the Imperial House itself. Should he rouse the rest of the clawsps
in the city and make his move immediately upon the palace? He could, he supposed. What recourse
would its residents have against him?
Something caught his eye that made him pause. Far across the spires and roofs of the city he saw a vast
field that rippled with wave after wave of color. A wall of people reared up into the sky over the plain,
and now he began to hear their roar. He angled toward this deafening crowd noise, and was quickly able
to make tout the outlines of a wooden grandstand. The closer he came the more impressed he was with
the size of this land's population. Never had he seen a crowd so huge in Ngandib-Mar. When he saw
why they were cheering, his heart quailed.
There was an army spread out below him. Terril had seen many armies in his life and had even led a few.
But at a glance he realized that the Mari definition of army had little in common with that of the Golden
Throng. His tiny body shuddered. He'd expected to conquer a land this size with just a swarm of insects?
He circled down toward the foot of the grandstand, his mind working furiously. He needed to get control
of himself. He was Terril the twin-killer, master magician, not some impres-sionable peasant. He had
powers these Chaons could not imag-ine. He needed only to stop and take stock of them and to plan
carefully his next step. First, however, he needed information.
He flew under the grandstand in search of a private place and finally found one. There he took his human
form again and walked out to take a human measure of this throng he expected soon to rule.
It still took his breath away, but Terril's cunning was be-ginning to reassert itself. He glanced around and
saw a group of adolescent girls in giddy, giggling conversation. "Pardon me," he said in as suave a tone as
he could manage, and the conversation broke off into shocked stares. Terril chuckled self deprecatingly
and said, "I realize this may seem very odd to you, but can you tell me why this crowd has gathered?"
"You don't know?" One girl frowned archly.
Terril's eyebrows drooped menacingly, and the child's frown turned fearful. "Would I ask if I did?" he
asked.
"The Golden Throng," another of the girls said quickly.
"Yes," the first said. "We've come to watch the Golden Throng!"
"I see. And where is the Golden Throng going?"
"North!" one said. Then she looked at her friends and added with a slight giggle, "I guess." It really didn't
matter to them. When the girls quit giggling and looked back at the curious stranger, they experienced a
terrible shock. He had disap-peared.
"Just look at that," Bronwynn murmured, enthralled by the Golden Throng as it paraded before her. The
cheers of the crowd below engulfed her. "Just look!" she cried above them.
Kherda obeyed. He gazed at the gilded column and nodded appreciatively. He was remembering the
last time he'd stood upon this reviewing stand, on the day Bronwynn's father led the Throng away to war.
He hoped Bronwynn wasn't thinking about that. He'd been up to his neck in treachery at the time. This
present army seemed rather pitiful by comparison to Tal-ith's throng, and the thought dismayed him. If
that army had been so savagely destroyed by their Man enemies, what could be expected from this
military venture? Not even Joss had been able to dissuade her, although they'd argued far into the night.
The girl was every bit as hardheaded as her father.
"Here comes Joss," Bronwynn shouted, pointing down-ward, and Kherda leaned over the railing to
look. As they watched the solitary figure wrapped in a heavy cloak make his careful way up the steps of
the platform to join them, they missed seeing the tiny purple insect swoop over their heads and down
between them to alight on the underside of the rail. When Joss finally reached them he was wheezing, and
Bron-wynn patted him on the shoulder. "It's a long climb," she said in his ear.
General Joss noded grimly, and surveyed the force below them with a dour frown.
"It's a splendid army." Bronwynn smiled.
"It is a skeleton, my Lady." Joss did not mince words on matters affecting national security.
"But you've done wonders with it," she replied evenly, not looking at him.
"Drills and discipline are valuable, my Lady, but they hardly make up for a lack of warriors and
weapons."
"I take it you still disapprove of my military adventure."
"My objections are a matter of record, your Highness, based entirely on objective analysis."
"My lady," Kherda began meekly, "what he means is"
"I need no one else to interpret my words to the Queen," Joss snapped.
"Nor do I need any further discussion on the matter," Bron-wynn announced. "It's heartening to know
that the two of you can agree on something, at least. But my mind is made up." She glanced first at
Kherda, then at Joss. "It's doubtful you'll change it."
"We are unprepared, my Lady," Joss grunted insistently, reopening the door Bronwynn had so
emphatically shut.
Kherda summoned new courage and followed him through it. "We just hate to see your father's folly
repeated"
"You've compared me to my father quite enough, Kherda," Bronwynn snarled, cowing her Prime
Minister.
"Obviously not quite enough," Joss said between clenched teeth, "or you would take it more seriously.
Your father led the Golden Throng in search of you, my Queen, and lost it on a foreign field to a much
inferior force. Had he not lost his army there, he might well have lost it here instead, fighting to regain the
very throne he'd left behind."
"You supported the usurper!" Bronwynn flared. "And you, Kherdayou planned her triumph!"
Kherda cringed, and his eyes pleaded with the general to let the matter drop. But Joss had built a career
upon faithfully pointing out realities, and would not be silenced. "Yes we did, my Queen. Reprehensible
behavior, perhaps, but your father's foolishness was largely to blame. He left the state in chaos."
"And will you abandon me now to my foolishness?" Bron-wynn spat, her eyes flashing.
Joss stiffened. "Your Highness, you know the truth. I never abandoned your father. Nor will I ever
abandon you. But I cannot vouch for the loyalty of any other of your ministers,
and there are many would-be rulers among the courtlings of the Imperial House. Your personal love for
the Man warrior is understandable, and your wish to aid him is, in some aspects, even justifiable. But this
is not a reasonable decision. It is based on emotions alone."
Bronwynn sighed and gripped the railing. "Are you going to give me the whole lecture?"
"Your husband has not summoned you"
"Maybe he can't!"
"But maybe he chooses not to!"
"He may be in trouble."
"But your arrival may bring him more! So the Maris are fighting among themselves. This is no new thing.
It is, in fact, the norm for those barbarians. But if you believe our arrival at Westmouth with twenty
thousand swords will bring cheer to the faction Lord Rosha backs, then you've sorely mistaken the Mari
mind! The Golden Throng will put an end to their warring on one another. Instead, they'll unite to drive us
out!"
"But you'll be our general this timenot my father," Bron-wynn said with mocking sweetness.
Joss ignored her sarcasm and plunged on. "Then there's the other adversaryLamath."
"You told me yourself that Lamath is in chaos!"
"Yet they remain our primary foeour hereditary foe. And by calling me home you've broken any
diplomatic relationship we might have had with them."
"I'll not have dealings with the men who overthrew Erri," Bronwynn grumbled.
"Then you'll likely face them in battle, for what will unite Lamathians more quickly than the threat of a
Chaon invasion? Bronwynn" Joss caught himself, shocked and embarrassed at this breach of royal
etiquette.
Bronwynn turned to regard him with a cool smile. "Yes?"
"Please forgive me, your Highness." He emphasized the title.
"Oh, I think I've already done that," she said brightly, and she leaned over the wooden railing in a studied
show of interest in the parade. Kherda hoped Joss would have the sense to abandon the battle and resign
himself to doing their sovereign's bidding. He glanced at the old soldier behind the queen's back, and
raised his eyebrows. Joss nodded, and the old warrior's shoulders seemed to slump. Bronwynn spoke
again, and the Prime Minister leaned forward to listen. "I really don't care whom we battle, or where. It's
just that I've waited inside that castle for too long. My mind's made up. It's time to act. Joss, take your
finest regiment and return to the palace to make final preparations. We'll march this afternoon. Kherda,
you" She broke off, and pointed. "What's that?"
Kherda glanced over to see that his pasty-faced assistant was holding a message out toward him. The
Prime Minister reached out and took it. In reading it, his own face drained of all color.
"Well?" Bronwynn snapped impatiently. "What is it?"
Kherda cleared his throat and blinked twice. "It'sJagd of Uda, my Queen."
"Yes, yes," Bronwynn snarled. "And what does the chief of merchants want now?"
"Ah... nothing, my Queen. That is, he's unable toI mean, he's dead!"
"Dead? How did he die?"
Kherda drew himself up to his full height and invested his reply with drama befitting its importance. "An
assassination my Lady. He was swarmed to death by sugar-clawsps."
Bronwynn blinked. "Clawsps again."
"Yes, my Lady," Kherda said meaningfully.
Queen Bronwynn heard something in his tone of voice that made her spear him with an angry glare.
"And you're thinking that I need to wait, that we have no business marching off to war while swarms of
crazed insects ravage our citizenry?"
Kherda backed away from her as far as he dared, feeling behind him for the platform's rear rail. "Ahem,"
he said, clear-ing his throat. "I... the thought had occurred to me"
"Exactly what do you think my presence here could add to the struggle against the tiny creatures?"
"Ahem," Kherda said again, still backing. "A ... demonstration of... solidarity, perhaps..." I
suppose I could tour the devastated area?" Bronwynn smiled sourly.
Kherda choked out, "That might be an appropriate gesture"
Bronwynn suddenly looked downward. As her attention left him, Kherda felt like a fish who had
suddenly managed to slip free of a hook. He sighed and sagged against the wooden railing in relief.
"Who's that?" Bronwynn was asking, pointing at a cluster of figures moving through the crowd far below.
Joss looked where she pointed and sighed wearily. "It ap-pears the missionaries are among us again."
He didn't hide his contempt.
"They may have news of Erri," Bronwynn muttered. She quickly crossed the wooden platform and
started down the stairs. Joss.pursued her, but Kherda chose to cling to the railing, waiting for the rickety
structure to stop shaking before de-scending. He was the only one to see the purple insect dart from its
place and disappear quickly in the direction of the Imperial House. At first he was terrified. Then he
laughed at himself. "A coincidence," he muttered. "What could one tiny insect do to me?" The platform
had stopped rocking. Carefully, cautiously, Kherda started the long climb down.
"Naquin!" Bronwynn cried as she reached the bottom of the treacherous stairway. "How very nice to
see you!" She smiled brightly, but it was as fake a smile as any she'd given to Joss or Kherda on the
platform above. Bronwynn had always treated Naquin with courtesy, but she'd never found any common
ground for a relationship with the man. That she kept trying was evidence of her great love for Erri.
Privately, she wondered what the prophet saw in this rigid, blue-gowned ex-priest.
Naquin bowed elaborately, but failed to hold out a hand to help her the rest of the way down. Naquin
had been raised as one of the pampered, not a pamperer. He still hadn't mastered all the niceties of being
of lower station. "My dear Queen Bronwynn. You look much happier than you did several days ago. In
fact, you appear quite radiant."
"Excitement, Naquin," the queen said briskly. "I'm about to take some action instead of waiting around
the palace. Come. I'm about to return to the Imperial House. I assume you have news of Erri?"
Bronwynn was striding toward her horse, look-ing backward in the obvious expectation that Naquin
would follow. The man did, but some uneasiness registered on his face. Bronwynn wondered at its cause,
even as she directed her Lord of the Livery to find Naquin a mount. Joss had joined them and was
barking crisp orders that had servants scurrying in all directions. By the time Bronwynn and Naquin were
mounted, a crack regiment had fallen in behind them to escort them back to the palace.
The skyfaither's uneasiness continued to show itself as he offered her Erri's greetings and told her the
circumstances of his meeting with the prophet. It put her on guard. Her smile never wavered, but
Bronwynn prepared herself for unpleasant news.
It wasn't until they'd entered the Imperial House and climbed the spiral staircase to the throne room that
she finally under-stood. Bronwynn had smiled enough for today. Now she un-leashed her fury. "Erri said
I should what\" she bellowed, loudly enough to echo down the halls.
Naquin shifted position and repeated, "The prophet suggests you should wait. Naturally, you'll give the
highest attention to his instructions."
"His instructions!" Bronwynn gasped, eyes wide.
"Why, certainly his instructions. He is, after all, your spir-itual father, and when he"
"I met Erri when he was a foul-mouthed sailor who still stank of fish! I'll not follow his instructions nor
anyone else's!
Get out!"
Naquin gulped, his eyes wide. "Get out?" he said and she shouted:
"You heard me! Get out!"
The skyfaither stiffened his already stiff back and pursed his lips reprovingly. "You're making a grievous
error" he began, but, when Bronwynn spun around and shouted for the guards, he turned his back on
her in turn and marched self-righteously out of the castle. He'd performed his task. He couldn't be held
accountable.
Bronwynn looked over her shoulder and watched him go. She chanced to catch sight of herself in one of
the mirrors Ligne had placed in the throne room and was startled by the savagery of her sneer. She
softened it, but didn't soften her voice as she shoved a guard aside and stalked toward her royal
apartments. She was angry, and the thing that bothered her most was that she was fearing Naquin might
be right.
No one saw this her way! Not one of her trusted advisors had tried to see it from her perspective. And
from each one she received the same reproachful look, that expression adults
reserve for impetuous teens who won't listen and who are going to be sorry they didn't.
As she burst into her room, a flock of maids ran to greet her, but she waved them all off. "I don't need
you!" She sent them bustling out the doors. Her armor had been laid out for her on the bed. She strode
toward it, grabbed it up, and began buckling on her glistening breastplate. She was suddenly con-scious
of the roaring crowd outside her window, and realized that the news had been published that she
marched today. She walked to a mirror, scooped up a hairbrush, and told her re-flection, "I can't back
out now."
Why not? the mirror answered back.
The hairbrush clattered to the marble floor. Bronwynn stared at the mirror in shock. "What did you say?"
Why can't you wait? Are you not the queen?
Bronwynn stepped away from the mirror, and slowly looked up at the tapestry-draped walls. She
thought she knew who it wasor rather, what it wasthat was addressing her. This knowledge did not
allay her amazement, not did it still the pounding of her heart. "House?" she said. "Are you talking to me?"
Is that so difficult to imagine?
"ButI thoughtPelmen said you had retired from deal-ings with mankind! He said you wouldn't talk
again!"
Unless the Power directed.
Bronwynn looked from one wall to the next, making a slow circle in the center of her gigantic bedroom.
She had difficulty breathing. "Thenyouthe Power is"
It would be helpful if you could complete your sentences, the Imperial House harrumphed. This
House cannot read minds.
"Thethe Power commanded that you talk to me?" she asked, a tremor in her voice.
It seems you wouldn't listen to anyone else.
"Buthow is it that I understand you?"
Why shouldn't you understand this House? the castle lectured sternly. You're of royal blood, are you
not? And have you not demonstrated some talent at shaping?
"Am Itruly a powershaper then?" Bronwynn whispered, awed by the possibility and longing for
confirmation of it.
Who can say? the House grumbled. No one is a shaper
who has not found his altershape. This House has been elsewhere. Has such a thing occurred?
"No," Bronwynn admitted.
Then think no more about it. If it happens, it happens. At present, there are more pressing matters to
attend to.
"The Power doesn't want me to go to Ngandib-Mar," Bron-wynn said thoughtfully.
Perhaps that's so, perhaps it is not. The only clear di-rective is simply to wait.
"To wait," Bronwynn mused. "That's all?"
That's all.
The queen studied this for a moment in silence. Then she frowned. "But why?"
The shutters of her windows flew open with a bang. Anyone else would have interpreted this as a gust of
wind, but Bron-wynn now recognized it as an exasperated sigh.
This House cannot foretell the future! the Imperial House of Chaomonous thundered, and Bronwynn
thought seriously about getting under the bed.
"Sorry," she mumbled. "I just don't know what to do."
Wait! The Imperial House roared. Does it have to be written upon the wall?
"I'll wait, I'll wait!" Bronwynn snapped, annoyed now. "I meant, what do I do about the march?"
Send someone in your place! Is that so difficult to reason out?
"Someone else? But who could" Just then, everything seemed to come into focus for Browynn Ian
Rosha. She sum-moned a messenger.
"Yes, your Highness?"
"Send me General Joss. Then go to the areas frequented by the players and tell Lady Danyilyn that I'd
like to see her." As the messenger saluted and scooted off to obey, Bronwynn smiled. Who better to
take her place than a professional actress?
Terril the twin-killer hung in the air sixty feet above the entrance to the Imperial House. Despite having to
wear his odious body, elation surged through him. He was about to conquer Chaomonous.
The minute the queen left the reviewing stand he'd flown here, to the roof of her castle. He'd taken his
human form then and dispatched a pair of the queen's blue flyers with messages to Flayh and to the new
king of Lamath. Terril enjoyed the irony of thislaunching the seeds of the queen's destruction from the
roof of her palace. The messages warned Flayh and his Lamathian allies to prepare an ambush for the
Golden Throng in Dragonsgate. Now he waited for her to march. Once she was gone, he would unleash
his swarms upon the depleted staff of her castle, and the Imperial House would be his.
It was all so easy! Nothing at all like battling a rival shaper. War in the Mar was a guessing game where
the whims of the powers always made the outcome unpredictable. This victory was so certain it was
almost boring! Almostbut not quite. Tonight he would take his human form again to sleep in the bed of
a king! He could hardly wait.
Suddenly the gates flew open, and the huge throng that had made its way here from the parade ground
began cheering lustily. A double column of warriors marched out first and stepped smartly down the
incline toward the market. As they approached the crowds that clogged the street, the column formed a
wedge and began shoving onlookers back out of the way.
There was a rumbling from within the castle, then the first of the huge wagons issued from the portal.
There were two dozen of these, each drawn by teams of eight heavy draft horses, and each flanked by
golden-mailed warriors. The riders came next, encased in burnished plates of glistening gold, astride
proudly prancing mounts draped in brocade of the same rich hue. Terril was impressed only with the
wealth this all dem-onstrated. He scoffed at the thought of a warrior dressing like the belle of a royal ball.
His multifaceted eyes searched the riders earnestly. There was still no sign of the queen.
With a sudden fanfare, the last column of riders divided, turning their mounts to face inward toward the
open pathway they'd created. Out rode the queen in full armor, astride a grandly caparisoned stallion of
jet black. Her visor was shut, but it was clear from the womanly shape of the armor that this was she.
Her golden cape was trimmed with bright blue, a symbolic reference to the skyfaith. This was the only
intrusion of any other color in the whole of the gilded parade, and it drew all eyes to her. She drew her
sword and held it above her, then spurred her steed forward and rode to the head of the line.
Now it was time, Terril thought to himself, sickened by the thought. The stench of a thousand clawsp
castlesthe prospect made him want to retch. But as he soared upward to survey the world's most
beautiful city, he decided it was worth it. Already he could smell the battle scent of his own purple shell.
He plummeted toward the first large concentration of clawsp castles, even as the army wound their way
across the bridge and onto the northern road.
Once started, he worked quickly, circling the outer edge of the city first, then spiraling toward its center.
The insect army musteredand it was terrible to behold.
They numbered in the millions, and the sinister drone of their wings drew Chaon eyes to the sky in terror.
They moved in a single, gigantic mass, their shining shells glistening in the sunlight as if a storm cloud had
donned a garment bespangled with violet sequins. The swarm's shadow raced across the map of the city
of Chaomonous, blotting out the sun. It held the shape of an enormous spear point, aimed at the city's
heart.
It was Maliff, the falconer, who first spotted the attacking horde. He knew immediately what it was.
Maliff was bored by people and he had a speech problem, but he did stay in touch with current events.
"Crawsps!" he screamed in horror. "There's sugar-crawsps upon us!" The young falcon he'd been
carrying suddenly found itself clutched to Maliff's protective bosom, as the falconer dove through the
door of the mews and slammed it shut behind him. He was too late. Already the clawsps were streaming
in the windows.
They poured down the central spiral stairway of the castle like purple wine whirling down a funnel. They
gushed out and down every branching hallway, filling the roomy palace com-pletely in a matter of
moments. Slammed doors slowed them momentarily, but couldn't stop them. They wiggled through
keyholes and cracks under the doors, and raced fanatically onward. They searched for bodies to swarm.
They found many huddled together in a corner of the servants quarters. Quickly they applied themselves
to coating the outer layer of people with their flesh-eating chemical wastes. It was slow going, however,
for the bodies of those on the outside protected those huddled deeper in the pile. It was small comfort,
perhaps, to smother to death, rather than to bum, but there was a chance a few might survive.
Those caught in the hallways stood little chance at all. A few. however, made a valiant effort. One of
these was the short, portly figure of Yona Parmi. He was on his way up the great spiral to the upper
levels when the assault began. He threw his head back and stared upward as the huge hole in the palace
roof closed with a rush of wings. Instinctively he ducked his head and ran, but not toward his own rooms.
He ran instead toward the royal suiteand Danyilyn.
They had been unable to dissuade Gerrig from donning the golden armoralthough the huge actor had
found it difficult to find any that would fit him. They were bidding him good-bye when the strange
summons had come for Danyilyn to report to the queen. Things had moved quickly after thatthe army
had nearly marched without Gerrig, but he had caught up. Yona had watched the queen depart, but
Danyilyn had not yet re-turned. Now he raced to her side. He had no illusions about the next few
minutes. Danyilyn was all the family he had. He would face death beside her.
He got to the door, but not inside it. They were around him, a stinking, burning tide. Parmi fought back.
He batted the air and stomped his feet, and screamed more in rage than in pain. He saw a hundred tiny
insects struggling to squirm under the door, and made the last decision of his life. He dropped to the floor
on top of them, crushing these and preventing others from reaching the crack. Then with his last effort he
raised his clawsp-coated right hand and plugged the keyhole with his little finger. It was a victory, of
sorts. Yona Parmi died a victor.
Bronwynn was in conference with Kherda and the House when it started. She was the first to know, for
the Imperial House was in the midst of a sentence when it broke off in a horrible scream.
"What is it?" Bronwynn demanded, and Kherda, who couldn't understand a thing the castle said,
nevertheless turned white at the look on her face.
Magic attack! the Imperial House wailed. Must go! Must return to the Power! Use your gift!
After a long shuddery wail, the castle was quiet once more. Only then could they hear the human
screams and the droning that had been growing insidiously louder. There was much shouting and
thumping outside the door, and through all this the queen and her Prime Minister gazed at one another in
shock. Then a half dozen clawsps not wholly crushed by Yona's self-sacrifice wiggled under the door
and shot up toward them.
Everything came together in an instantthe clawsps, the killing of Jagd, the warnings, and the castle's
last speech. She remembered a quiet campfire in the Great North Fir with Rosha and Pelmen. The two
men had traded stories about people she'd thought then were mythical, but knew, now, were real. This
was Terril the twin-killerthe clawsp. Yona Parmi had been right.
"No!" she shouted at the incoming clawsps and she threw up her hand to stop them. From her palm
issued a golden globe of flame.
Kherda fainted. The clawsps fried. And Bronwynn knew, now, she was a shaper. Any minute she
expected to discover her altershape and she looked forward to that revelation with a fierce excitement.
That didn't deflect her from her task, however. She raced to the door, threw it openand burned a
hundred-thousand insects from the hallway. The second ball of flame was much larger than the first.
Terril felt it. Although he wasn't in the hallway, nor even in that section of the castle, he felt itanother
shaper. The moment he did, he fled for the hole in the roof and just missed being cremated by the third
ball of fire, which was the largest of all. This exploded in the midst of the castle's garden, scorch-ing
every leaf and withering each blade of grass. But it also crushed the clawsp attack. A million burned
insects covered the garden floor like violet snow. The rest were gone.
CHAPTER TEN
Sythia Isle
"We'd better go," Mar-Yilot interrupted, more harshly than necessary.
Kam and Rosha stopped laughing and looked at the woman in surprise. Then Kam gave his young friend
a wry smile and shrugged. "She's right, of course." He twisted around to face the sorceress in order to
explain, "It's just that I've not seen the lad since this time last year, and we still have some catching up to
do. Ah, Rosha. There's never enough time."
"There's a remedy for that," Mar-Yilot snorted. "And you know what it is."
Kam grinned, and ran his fingers through his tight yellow curls. "Can't do it, dear lady. Much as I'd like
to visit that fabled island of yours and pocket a few diamonds for myself, I need to stay here." He shoved
an empty breakfast platter away and called toward the kitchen for someone to come and get it.
Mar-Yilot frowned. "It's only a matter of time before Flayh sends his thugs down the road to crush
you"
"Crush me!" Kam barked. "Mar-Yilot, you are a dear friend and a marvelous shaper, but you certainly
do exaggerate. The House of Kam has sat here at the foot of the High Plateau for centuries and
witnessed a score of armies descending the cliff to make war against it. Why, to ease their boredom in
times of peace, the kings of Ngandib used to lay siege to this castle just for practice! But never has it
fallen. Not once have they even breached a single wall! No, my Lady, you hurry on, if you feel you must.
But don't fret about us. Kam can care for itself."
Rosha appreciated Kam's bravado, but he was watching the man's eyes and saw something false there.
Mar-Yilot must have seen it too, but she didn't comment. That puzzled Rosha. He'd always heard that
Mar-Yilot spoke before she thought. Since he'd been around her, however, he'd had the sensation that
she was hiding something.
"So, Rosha," Kam said grandly, "we'll have to finish this up the next time you stop by."
"We'd like that." Rosha nodded.
"We?" Kam muttered.
"My father and I," Rosha explained. Kam's embarrassed response confused him.
"WhatOh yes! Right. Ah.. .listen, Mar-Yilot, I've got my best horses waiting for you. You really think
Pelmen's well enough to ride?"
Frowning, Rosha flicked his gaze to Mar-Yilot just in time to catch her eyes studying him worriedly. She
immediately looked at Kam, and answered with too much intensity, "I feel certain that he is."
"Good." Kam nodded. When there was an awkward pause, the blond warrior got to his feet. "Ahjust
let me check to see if the horses are ready." He quickly left the hall. Mar-Yilot shifted in her seat and
found a bite of biscuit to nibble.
"What's going on?" Rosha asked suspiciously.
"What?" the sorceress snapped, looking annoyed. "Noth-ing's going on, but we certainly need to be, so
grab that precious bundle and let's move, shall we?"
Rosha persisted. "You're hiding something. What is it?"
"I'm hiding nothing!" Mar-Yilot snarled. "I'm just tired, that's all, and I'm not looking forward to a day of
playing magical tag."
"Why haven't you told me what happened to your husband?" Rosha demanded, his face expressionless.
Mar-Yilot feigned surprise. "My husband? What about my husband?"
Rosha stared at her, his eyes hard. "You're not going to tell me, are you?"
The powershaper met his gaze. "I don't know what you're talking about."
Kam stepped back into the hall and said, "Everything's ready. Pelmen's already mounted and is waiting
for you. Seems he's in a hurry."
"Very good." Mar-Yilot nodded and picked up the heavy cloak Kam had provided for her, wrapping it
around her shoul-ders. "Coming?" she asked Rosha cuttingly.
The warrior's only reply was to stand slowly and stalk out of the hall. He fetched his own cloak and the
bundled-up pyr-amid and went to join Pelmen in the stable. His friend greeted him, but Rosha said
nothing.
Kam bade them all good-bye with a cheerful smile, but his eyes were filled with worry. His cockiness
fooled no one. His danger was real. And if there was any true hope for the survival of his house, it rested
upon the alliance of these two power-shapers. "Be careful," he warned them.
Mar-Yilot fixed him with a sobering look. "You could have your people ready to ride by midmorning. I
could Cover all of us, and you'd be out from under Flayh's shadow."
Kam hesitated a moment, then shook his head. "Not now. The dog is chasing you, not me. We'd slow
you down too much, perhaps even cause your capture. What safety is there for my household in that?
No," he added, glancing around at the stable walls, "I'll stay here. And if that dog of a shaper should
happen by, perhaps Kam can be a thorn in his paw." He smiled again, waved, and the three riders
galloped out of his gates.
They rode northward three abreast; Pelmen was in the mid-dle, Rosha and Mar-Yilot flanking him
should he fall. There seemed little danger of that at the moment. He seemed fit, and sat well in the saddle.
The only evidence of his weariness was his detachment from them. He obviously thought of other things.
Still, he concentrated enough to add his own coverage to the magic cloak Mar-Yilot wrapped around
them. That protection enabled them to avoid a half dozen earnest patrols of slavers.
Mar-Yilot and Pelmen talked a bit at first, but Rosha said nothing. He'd not opened his mouth since he'd
left the breakfast table. It was his manner of showing ragean old habit, bom in his stuttering
childhoodand he felt certain Pelmen, at least, sensed his anger. The other two let their conversation
die. When they avoided asking him what the problem was, he knew for certain they'd conspired against
him. He savored his fury in silence.
After several hours they rounded the northern face of the plateau and hit the straight stretch of road that
led westward to the Garnabel Bridge. Suddenly his rage spilled over; with volcanic violence, the words
spewed from his lips. "Foul friends, the both of you! I'll travel no farther, not a pace, until you tell me
what you've hidden!" He reined his horse about and jerked it to a stop, staring at his companions with
glittering eyes.
His outburst startled them both, but Mar-Yilot quickly re-covered. "I'm trying to cloak us!" she shot
back at Rosha. "Just what are you trying to do?"
Rosha ignored her words, turning his hot gaze on Pelmen.
"What are you not telling me?" he asked, half in demand, half in plea. It was the pleading that broke the
powershaper, and Pelmen's posture, which had been so erect since their departure, wilted into a slump.
He sagged in his saddle, and his eyes dropped from the road ahead to the tangles in his horse's mane.
When he finally spoke it was to the woman, and his voice was as thin and weak as Rosha had ever
heard it. "Who should tell him?"
Mar-Yilot's lipsalready pencil thinseemed to disap-pear altogether into a tight line. Rosha twisted in
his saddle so that his shoulders faced her squarely and scowled expectantly. Mar-Yilot squinted toward
the sun, then turned her gaze toward him. Rosha saw only a sliver of her golden eyes, as those auburn
eyebrows pinced together in a frown. "I killed your father," she announced. Then she looked back at the
road. Pelmen's strength returned, and he sat back up straight. "Tell him why," Pelmen ordered, and
Mar-Yilot turned back to look at him, a bit surprised by the authority in his voice. Her eyes flicked back
to Rosha's, who was clenching his teeth and fighting the urge to cry out.
"I was blind. I was fooled. Flayh tricked me into believing that Dorlyth had ambushed my husband and
that Pelmen had bound him with dread. I wanted vengeance, so I trapped your father and Pelmen in a
ring of fire. I knew Pelmen could escape, of course. But I also knew he couldn't save your father." "And
that was your vengeance on me" Pelmen whispered
hoarsely.
"In part." The woman shrugged. "I did intend to kill you, too, eventually, but I recognized that would
take much more planning. Still, 1 knew you would suffer, as I had, the futility of having power and not
being able to use it." Mar-Yilot spoke frankly, in all honesty, without rancour or bitterness.
To Rosha it sounded almost casual, as if she recited the
details of her breakfast instead of his father's murder. For a moment, as the blood rushed into his head
and his tongue thickened beyond all possibility of usefulness, he calculated the time it would take to
unsheath his borrowed blade, leap over Pelmen, and halve the woman in her saddle.
"Don't, Rosha," Pelmen murmured, and the quiet wisdom in his statement stilled the warrior's hand.
"Oh, go ahead," Mar-Yilot growled, and for the first time her voice betrayed the depth of her remorse.
Rosha looked at her sharply and saw a tear glisten on her wan cheek before the woman could brush it
away in irritation. "You have the right." Staring at her, Rosha was surprised at how very frail she looked.
"He had as much right to kill you as you did his father," Pelmen said evenly. Then he looked at her. "That
is, none at all."
Mar-Yilot snorted a mirthless laugh. "If he doesn't, then no one has the right to kill anyone."
"Correct," Pelmen agreed, his eyes carefully watching the road. They were in danger. Mar-Yilot's
confession had made her inattentive. He wordlessly took up her task until she could return to it.
The sorceress laughed, this time derisively. "I had heard you'd become a holy man, Pelmen, but this I
find difficult to believe. By your logic, we've no right to kill Flayh!"
Pelmen nodded. "I don't think killing is ever a right. Un-fortunately, it appears sometimes to be a
responsibility."
"Responsibility to whom?" the Autumn Lady challenged. "If he's responsible at all to his father's ghost,
he'll gut me here and now!"
"Did you see him die?" Rosha asked. The two shapers both turned to look at him, startled by his calm.
"Did either of you see him die?" he repeated.
Pelmen and Mar-Yilot exchanged glances. "I didn't," Mar-Yilot muttered.
"Nor did I." Pelmen sighed. "He told me he preferred that
I didn't watch."
"Where did this take place?"
"On the edge of a precipice not far from the glade of mod Carl. We were searching for you."
Rosha nodded thoughtfully. "There was a weird woman in
the forest that morning, to whom I confided all of my thoughts..." He looked inquiringly at Mar-Yilot.
"That was me," she admitted.
Rosha shifted position in his saddle. "Then if anyone is to blame, it must be me. For had 1 not been fool
enough to attack Flayh's castle on my own, my father would never have fallen into your trap. And if I
hadn't warned you he was coming, there'd have been no trap in the first place."
Mar-Yilot gazed at the warrior, her golden eyes softening with a new respect. "It's a rare young man
who can accept his father's death with such equanimity."
"I wouldn't, if I really thought he was dead," Rosha said bluntly, and he hurried on to explain. "I think I
would know if something like that were true. I'd feel it, somehow. I just can't believe he'd die like that."
The two shapers were stunned. Mar-Yilot withdrew from the conversation. She was no physician of
minds, but she knew enough about denial to let the boy alone. Pelmen did not feel that freedom.
"I'm afraid you'll have to eventually" he began. Rosha cut him off. "Did you see the body?" "No, but
the fire"
"Show me the body. Then I'll believe it." Rosha set his jaw, and turned his eyes to stare fiercely down
the road. There was no more discussion. They rode steadily to the northwest and every hoofbeat
brought them closer to Flayh's net.
The two powershapers and the warrior were not the only travelers on the road that day. It so happened
that on this same afternoon, Pezi and his tugoliths reached Dragonsgate.
They had survived the Tellera Desert. Of course, they'd demolished a caravan of foodstuffs that had
been intended for the new king's coronation banquet, but that hadn't been Pezi's fault. And he'd offered
the trading captain good money for the wagon Thuganlitha had sat on. Could he help it if the terrified
merchant had already sprinted out of earshot by then? What had irritated him most about that particular
adventure was that he'd gotten almost nothing out of it. By the time the hungry tugs finished gorging
themselves, all he could salvage were a couple of squashed oranges and a clump of grapes. His belly had
been vocally expressing its frustration ever since. Pezi would have loved to stop at the family castle at the
foot of the pass to stock up on provisions, but he didn't dare. He was already on the bad side of most of
his cousins. He wasn't about to destroy what was left of his reputation by taking Thuganlitha home with
him.
Thuganlitha! That creature had become the bane of his ex-istence. Pezi hated Thug, and Thug, of course,
was only too willing to return the sentiment. It all could have been so easy without Thuganlitha along! To
entertain himself as they'd trav-eled, Pezi had thought up a hundred ways of disposing of the beast. The
trouble was. he lacked the nerve to put any of his plans into action. He kept hoping one of the other tugs
would do it for him. None obliged. All except Chimolitha were as terrified of Thug as he was. And
Chimolitha wouldn't because she was too fair-minded. She wouldn't harm anything unless she was
convinced that it was right and necessary to do so. Thus far, Thug just hadn't quite stepped over her line.
It made for a most unmanageable situation. Occasionally Pezi remem-bered that he'd intended to turn this
herd into a fearsome battle unit. He usually tried to put that back out of his mind as quickly as he thought
of it. The idea now gave him gas.
Pezi always got gas when he was nervous and he felt par-ticularly gaseous today. He clung to his perch
behind Chi-molitha's horn and gazed upward with bulging eyes, waiting for some sight of the dragon.
He'd seen the twi-beast in the sky three times since they'd left the capital, and that had given him heart.
He'd hoped that perhaps they could go through the pass while the dragon was off terrorizing Lamathian
villages. But that dream was dying. He'd last sighted the dragon the day before, and it was then returning
to its ancient lair. He greatly feared they were about to find Vicia-Heinox home. And what would a
dragon do with a line of tugoliths and one corpulent merchant? He hoped the rejuvenated beast had eaten
recently. Pezi had traveled this road a hundred times and he knew every turn. When they got within a few
hundred feet of the last bend into the pass, he whispered to Chimolitha to stop. She did, and there
followed a series of thuds that issued in a chorus of angry comments, as inattentive tugoliths rammed into
the hindquarters of those in front of them. "Would you tell them all to shut up!" Pezi whispered in
Chimolitha's funnel-
shaped ear, and she obligingly bellowed, "Shut up!" at the bickering herd behind her.
"Not so loud!" Pezi groaned, holding his throbbing fore-head.
Chimolitha rolled her eyes up to regard him a bit resentfully. "Man, why are you never pleased?"
"What?" Pezi blurted, startled. "Why, butbut I am pleased, I'm often pleased! Ah, ah, yes, very
often!"
The animal swung her head sadly from side to sidea gesture that nearly dislodged Pezi completely.
"You don't say so," she murmured.
The fat merchant clamped his legs and arms around the huge horn and hung on for his life. "But I do! 1
mean, I just did!"
The huge beast continued to shake her head in denial. "You yell a lot," she said mournfully.
"I don't either yell!" Pezi yelled. "I mean, I don't do it very often..."
"Dolna doesn't yell." Chimolitha sighed.
Pezi didn't like the direction this conversation was taking. He was also distracted by the din he heard
going on behind him. When he craned his head around to listen more closely, he found to his chagrin that
the other tugoliths were now arguing about what the words "shut up" meant. "Please don't talk!" he
shouted, and the herd hushed. Evidently he'd picked words they could understand, and he sighed with
relief. For the twen-tieth time he reminded himself to keep it simple.
"You yell a lot," Chimolitha repeated stolidly.
"Listen, Chimolitha, could we talk about this at a later time?"
She nodded. "Yes."
"Fine. What we need to do now is"
"What later time?"
"I don't know!" Pezi exploded without intending to. Im-mediately he wished he hadn't and he hurriedly
explained, "I'm just very busy right now, you understand? I'm under an enor-mous amount of pressure!
I'm hungry, I'mI'm tired, my nerves are in terrible shape! I mean, just look at me!"
Chimolitha rolled her huge eyes back and stared at him obediently.
"Not like that," Pezi quickly corrected, and he gestured down at the road. "Ah, look down there
somewhere."
Chimolitha sighed and looked at the road.
"I'm sorry, Chimolitha, but I'mI'm very nervous right now! Do you have any idea what's around that
corner?"
The tugolith frowned in concentration, but she wasn't good at guessing games. Soon she gave up. "No,"
she admitted.
"There's a dragon!" Pezi announced.
The tugolith thought about that for a minute, then she nod-ded. "Oh," she said.
"And we've got to get passed it!" The beast filtered that through her brain, nodded, and then started
moving again. "What are you doing?" Pezi demanded.
"Getting passed the dragon," she answered.
"But!" There was no time for any protest, for Chimolitha was huge, and it didn't take her many steps
to carry the horrified merchant around the last bend.
Pezi gasped as the enormous, scale-plated body of the twi-beast slipped into view. He clutched Chim's
horn in utter panic. Then he glimpsed the two monstrous heads, and what he saw made him crow with
glee. "Asleep!" he whispered excitedly. "The dragon is asleep! Chimolitha, you know what this means?"
She blinked. "The dragon is tired."
"Yes, right, that's right," Pezi whispered. "But it also means we can get past without disturbing it! We've
got to move quietly. Let me down." Chimolitha lowered her huge chin into the dust and Pezi swung
down, balancing a moment on her lower lip before dropping to the ground. Here the pass widened out so
the animals behind Chimolitha were able to step around her. Pezi suddenly realized they were spilling out
of the North-mouth and that some were approaching the dragon. He began jumping up and down and
waving his arms furiously to get them to stop. The tugoliths did stop, mostly to get a better look at Pezi's
strange antics. Although Pezi was mouthing the same angry commands he'd been shouting at them for
days, no sounds came from his lips.
Riganlitha was puzzled. "I can't hear," he complained, and some of the other tugs said they couldn't,
either.
"You must be quiet!" Pezi whispered with great intensity. "We must go past this dragon without waking
it!"
"Why is the dragon sleeping?" Riganlitha asked.
"Because he's tired," Pezi snapped, unconsciously mimick-ing Chimolitha. "Now get in line and walk
softly!"
"Walk softly?" Rig puzzled.
"Tiptoe! Like this," Pezi said, and he demonstrated. His multiton charges obediently tried to imitate. Or
rather, most of them did. Unfortunately, Thuganlitha had by now pushed his way out into the center of the
pass and he was spoiling for a fight. He'd been outmaneuvered that morning by Pezi and had found
himself at the end of the line going up the narrow defile, with no way of getting around the others. The
unlucky tug that had climbed the hill ahead of him bore a dozen new scars on its backside and had been
more than happy to let Thug by. The bellicose beast now danced arro-gantly toward the center of
Dragonsgate and regarded the sleep-ing dragon disdainfully. "What's that?" he bellowed.
"It's a dragon!" Pezi called back threateningly. "And if you wake it up, it will roast your hide!"
That startled Thug a bit, but he remained full of bravado. "He'd better not! I'll horn him!"
"Thuganlitha, please," Pezi wheedled, taking another ap-proach. "Get in line and be quiet!" Then he
added a fatal phrase: "It's for your own good!"
Thuganlitha never did anything for his own good. He turned his head and looked at the dragon, snorted,
and muttered, 'I'll wake him up." Then he charged.
"No!" Pezi screeched, running toward Thuganlitha to block his path. The inevitable outcome of such a
senseless act sud-denly occurred to Pezi; with a shout of, "What am I doingl" he turned and fled in the
opposite direction.
"I find that a very good question," said a voice that seemed extremely close to him. In fact, it came from
right above his head. Pezi stopped in his tracks and gazed fearfully upward at one of the heads of the
new Vicia-Heinox. The thundering of enormous feet behind him abruptly halted. Then it started up again,
moving now more quickly than before. Only now, the sound receded. Pezi looked around in time to see
Thuganlitha wedging himself obediently back into line. The tugolith's eyes were wide with apprehension.
So were Pezi's as he turned to look back up at the glistening teeth and slavering jaws that hovered
above him. "Greetings, your Dragonship," Pezi said. He gulped. Then he added, "Please don't eat me."
"Why ever not?" asked the dragon's other head, which Pezi noticed now had settled into the dust five
feet to his left.
Pezi cleared his throat. "Well," he began lamely, "1 could cite a long personal relationship between us
that spans some years" Pezi faltered and stopped when he realized both heads were chortling.
"Oror I could mention the centuries of com-merce, from which both yourself and my family gained
mutual benefit..." The heads were cackling now and winking at one another. "Or I could point out that
while I might appear rela-tively large by human standards, I'd be no more than a mouthful compared to
eating one of those!" Pezi earnestly pointed at the tugoliths.
"Yes," one head said thoughtfully. "What are those things?"
"They look as if they'd be tough to chew," the other head observed.
"They're tugoliths," Pezi explained. "They come from the far north of Lamath."
"Ah, Lamath!" the head above him said. "The land that loves me!" Pezi knew then that this head was
Vicia.
"The land of dolts," Heinox snorted from his resting place in the dust. "But tell me, Pezi, what are these
things for?"
"Why, well, they're" Pezi looked around at his line of anxious behemoths, then leaned forward to
whisper, "I'm tak-ing them to my Uncle Flayh. I'm planning to make war beasts out of them."
At the mention of Flayh, both eyes in both of the heads narrowed. "And what do you think of Flayh
now?" asked Vicia with a sinister sneer.
"Oh Flayh? Why, I think he's the most powerful man in the world, of course! And I need to get back on
his good side!"
The heads both regarded him thoughtfully for a minute. Then Heinox raised out of the dust and said,
"Come here, Pezi."
Pezi looked around, decided he was close enough, and anx-iously murmured, "I am here!"
"Come closer," Heinox said, moving closer to Pezi himself.
"Are you going to eat me? Because if you are, I'd really rather not!"
"Pezi," Heinox growled, "stop acting like an idiot and come
here!"
Pezi stared. While it had been the Heinox head who said
this, the voice was unmistakably that of his uncle. "You're"
"Of course," the voice snapped. "Now come here!" Pezi huddled together with the head and listened
closely. The watch-ing tugoliths regarded this with awe. Their man conversed privately with dragons.
Their opinion of him markedly im-proved. "I couldn't eat you even if I wanted to. This body isn't
palpable. Your hand would pass right through it. It's an illusion 1 generate to support the revival of the
Dragonfaith in Lamath. It also keeps traffic through the pass to a minimum. Most of the time I maintain
the form of the dragon here without ani-mating it, but when someone passes through, I'm forced to give
my attention here. You, nephew, have bungled in at a most inopportune time!"
"Uncle!" Pezi pleaded. "Uncle, I'mI'm sorry! I just thought"
"No, you didn't, Pezi," Flayh snarled, still in a whisper. "You never had a real thought in your life. I've
known about these beasts of yours for days! My new allies in Lamath had to arrest their keeper to
prevent him from coming after you. However," he went on, softening, "now that I see them, per-haps
there will be some use for them, after all. But get them out of this pass immediately!" Flayh ordered,
stridency return-ing to his voice. "The army of Lamath is this moment on its way to Dragonsgate to
ambush the Golden Throng in the pass. I'm in the process of tracking a pair of magical thieves. I haven't
time for your lumbering beasts at the moment, so get them out of my sight!" At that, both heads lifted up
and away from Pezi, then curled back against their body to return to sleep. The discussion was closed.
Flayh had returned to casting his net.
"Well," Pezi told himself, "It's good to see where I stand." Then he straightened up to his full height for
the benefit of his tugoliths and waddled back to the head of the line.
Chimolitha looked at him stoicly. "What did you say?" she asked.
Pezi puffed out his chest. "I told him to mind his own business and go back to sleep. Let me up."
Chimolitha nodded and lowered her head so he could climb back up behind her horn. Then she started
forward, moving toward the Westmouth and Ngandib-Mar. The pack fell in behind. Even Thuganlitha
seemed docile.
"Man?" Chimolitha said after a moment.
"Yes?" Pezi asked, feeling rather regal.
"It's a later time."
"What? What of it?" Pezi frowned.
"You yell a lot," the tugolith intoned, and Pezi groaned inwardly. He now remembered their earlier
conversation. Chi-molitha never forgot anything.
Pezi and his giant beasts distracted Flayh only momentarily. The sorcerer immediately returned his
attention to creating that wall of magic netting that stretched across the Riverline to the north. He felt
certain that the magical thieves who had robbed his castle would be riding into it any minute.
It wasn't that the crystal object was so precious. With the loss or theft of the other two, the pyramids
themselves had become useless to him. Indeed, he was glad to be rid of them, in a way. They held a
terrible fascination for the demonic dogs he had enfleshed to invade Lamath, and the presence of the
dogs made him uncomfortable. Nevertheless, he was enraged to think something had been stolen from
his own fortress and he'd been powerless to stop it.
Flayh had always been a merchant. While he'd spent dec-ades wrestling with governments and dueling
other merchant houses, those things had always been just business. But to a merchant, no enemy could
be more hateful than a thief. Flayh felt violated. The sanctity of his impregnable tower had been defiled.
And what infuriated him most was that he'd helped the rodents succeed! His living castle, his hired
killerseven his own magical abilities, had failed him in his moment of triumph. It would not happen
again. Wrapped in the darkness of his black-draped chamber, he held his net in place and meditated
upon the alliance that had been made against him.
Mar-Yilot had linked with Pelmen. There could be no other explanation. Terril he already controlled.
Joooms had trembled before him and had sworn not to interfere; like a cunning banker, Flayh had
extracted certain securities Joooms could never disregard. Mast had been so frightened he'd taken his
altershape and fled. The frog was now hibernating under a layer of ice at the bottom of a North Fir pond.
Of the great shapers of legend, only Pelmen and Mar-Yilot remained un-tamed. If the Autumn Lady had
at last learned the truth, then she indeed had cause to hate him. Mar-Yilot was no fool.
Despite her obsessive mistrust of Pelmen, she would reason
her way to the truth eventually.
Flayh assumed she already had done so. That explained how Pelmen and the troublesome young son of
Dorlyth had escaped the plateau. But if so, then he knew where they were headed. The woman was
devoted to her lover and would not stay away from his sickbed for long. Were she and Pelmen traveling
alone, they would doubtless fly, but they had this Rosha along. He'd been trouble for Flayhnow he
would be trouble for his powerful benefactors, for they would be forced to ride north-ward under the
cover of a magical cloak. That's why he'd woven his net carefully across the Riverline. Let that spell of
invisibility touch it, and they were trapped.
As the day wore on, however, Flayh began to doubt. Not a tremor of shaping stirred his trap. Was it
possible? Had they slipped through when he'd been busy with Pezi? He began to curse his nephew under
his breath. Within moments his curses were full-throated cries of rage.
He felt enormous frustration at his own inexperience. He was far more powerful than the two shapers
who fled his pla-teau, but they had been at this business for years. Like aged foxes pursued by an
excellent but untried hunting hound, their seasoned guile compensated for their overmatched abilities. It
galled him bitterly, but Flayh conceded at last that they had outsmarted him. He'd been too obvious in his
thinking. They'd be fools to return immediately to their armies. Surely they realized that Flayh's spies had
already spotted the uncloaked troop concentrations on Sythia Isle and in the glade of mod Carl. Should a
cloak suddenly close again around one of those forces, they would be announcing their whereabouts as
clearly as if they shouted it. No. They were in hiding. They could be anywhere!
With a vengeful bellow, Flayh jerked in his net and cast it randomly across the breadth of the Mar. The
net was a type of penetration spell. It yielded to Flayh no visual image of the places it touched, nor was
his image seen there, as with Mar-Yilot's dream-search. Its chief value was that it detected magic. It
could pinpoint any act of shaping in the wide area it touched; should it brush some rival wizard in
altershape, it would close as relentlessly as any net of cord upon a fish. The spellcaster could then draw
the captured shaper to himself. With the desperation of a luckless fisherman, Flayh cast his invisible
snare and caught something.
He couldn't tell who it was, but he began working feverishly to pull the trapped shaper toward him. The
afternoon disap-peared into night, but Flayh took no notice. The tray of food that was brought to his
door was later removed untouched. He concentrated on reeling in the trapped wizard, and as the time
passed his spirits soared, for he could tell by the direction and speed of his prisoner's approach that this
shaper could only be traveling through the air. Morning dawned as he pulled his captive the last few yards
toward the tower. Triumphantly, he flung aside a drape to see which one he'd caught.
Flayh blinked, then stared, then swore in disgust. He'd expended all that effort to capture Terril, the
purple bug! With a wave of his hand he jerked the unfortunate insect inside and closed the curtain. "Well,
Terril, what a surprise," he snarled acidly. "Want to take your human form? Not a chance!" The vindictive
shaper left Terril bound in the magical net as he walked to the door and threw it open. "Slave! Bring me a
bottle!" Then he walked back to his helplessly hovering captive.
Flayh smiled perversely. "Now, why are you here? So proud of your victory you came to report it in
person? But waitif you had a victory to report, you'd do it from the throne of Chaomonous. What am I
to gather, then? That you have shall we saymiscalculated? That you've failed? But why else would
you be buzzing around Ngandib-Mar in your silly little violet armor? Never mind, Terril, I'll hear the story
soon enough, I'm sure. Slave! Where is that bottle?" A young boy raced into the room, holding a bottle
before him. Flayh took it, turned it over in his hands, and muttered, "This will do." The slave disappeared
in great haste. Flayh held up the bottle so that Terril could see it.
"I'm going to put you inside this, Terril. Oh, you could change shapes and break the bottle, of course,
but I think perhaps I'll lock the bottle inside a metal strong box. Would that discourage you, do you think,
from trying to shift forms? Why, if you tried, I do believe you'd suffocate. But that's up to you. My only
concern is that you suffer." Flayh uncorked the bottle. "Get inside it."
Terril had no choice. Soon the bug was corked up and locked away, and Flayh returned his attention to
searching for the two
thieves. "Too late now," he muttered. "They're safely hidden. Where? Sythia Isle? Carlog? Mod Carl's
glade?" Flayh sat down in a chair and opened his mind to the search. "They'll make a mistake," he
murmured. "And I'll be waiting."
Fifteen minutes after Flayh jerked in his net in frustration, the three riders reached the spot where it had
been. A kind of residue of shaping hung in the air, noticeable to both Pelmen and Mar-Yilot. They
exchanged anxious glances. "Flayh?" Pelmen frowned.
"Probably," Mar-Yilot answered gruffly. "But he's not look-ing here now. All the more reason to race on
to the North Coast!" They spurred their steeds forward with new resolve. They rode the rest of the day
and through half the night, arriving finally at the cottage of Syth's bargeman. They had to pound on the
door to wake him, but once he was up, he welcomed them warmly, rousing the rest of the family to
pre-pare the hungry riders some food. Barleb talked to them nonstop through their dinner, but he didn't
seem bothered by their lack of response. Their weariness was obvious. The moment they'd finished
eating, he bundled them off to their beds. All three went instantly to sleep.
Pelmen awoke to the sound of a slight pattering on the roof. His weary body begged him to stay put
beneath the warm counterpane, but his mind, now fully alert, could no longer pretend to rest. He forced
himself out of bed and felt the shock of the icy floor beneath his feet. He scrambled for his stockings; in
the process, he identified the noise coming from outside. He wasn't pleased. He jerked the cover off his
bed and wrapped it around him, then shuffled down the stairs to the main room of the cottage. Someone
was already up. He could smell the fire.
While they called it a cottage, this dwelling was really more of a mansion. It belonged to Lord Syth and
served as a guest house for islanders trapped by nightfall on the mainland. Never-theless, it felt like home
to Barleb, for his forerunners had lived in it almost as long as Syth's ancestors had ruled the great castle
across the water. The bargeman was relaxing before the fireplace in a large stuffed chair. When he saw
Pelmen, how-ever, he bounded out of it and gestured for his guest to sit down.
"I'll not take your chair," Pelmen rumbled, his voice crusty with sleep. He looked toward the ceiling.
"Ice?" he asked.
Barleb frowned. "Yes, my Lord, I'm afraid it is. You'd best go back and take your rest. We'll not get
across today."
"Not even if I order it?" Mar-Yilot called wearily from one of the rooms up the stairs.
Barleb's concerned frown deepened. "My Lady," he re-sponded loudly. "Are you awake, too?"
"I was never asleep," the woman growled, and the two men heard the rustling of her climbing out of bed.
She padded out onto the landing that ringed the main chamber and looked down, her hair a rat's nest of
auburn tangles and deep dark circles^ gouged under her eyes. "Why are you looking at me like that?" she
demanded, and both men suddenly took an interest in the fire. "I guess I look a mess," she mumbled, her
speech slurred by sleeplessness. Only the most vacant-headed of fools would have dared any kind of
reply. "What time is it?" She yawned.
"Early, my Lady," Barleb answered. "Perhaps if you lay back down"
"I'm tired of lying down," Mar-Yilot snarled. It was one of the prerogatives of power that one never
needed to hide one's grumpiness. Mar-Yilot certainly never did.
"Is Lord Syth expecting us?" Pelmen's question was a dip-lomatic way of inquiring if the sorceress had
visited her hus-band's dreams.
"No." She sighed as she drifted down the stairs. "I didn't want to disturb his sleep. Besides," she added,
"that would only heighten my frustration at not being there physically."
"I can certainly understand that," Pelmen murmured, his eyes studying the flames.
"What is this Serphimera woman to you?" Mar-Yilot de-manded, and Pelmen had to smile at the
challenge in her voice. They had been adversaries for many years. While Mar-Yilot had had only one
love from childhood, she sounded almost jealous of Serphimera's impact on him.
"Why do you ask?"
"Just curious." The slender woman shrugged. "You just never seemed like the marrying type."
Pelmen looked at her with a mock frown. "You think you do?"
The woman looked at him, chuckled, and said, "You're right. Sorry. Didn't mean to pry"
"That's exactly what you meant to do," Pelmen snorted. It was a contest, as were all his encounters with
Mar-Yilot, and he found he enjoyed it. In fact, he'd discovered he genuinely liked this thin, wry-faced
woman. Then thoughts of Dorlyth surfaced again, and all playfulness left him.
It appeared that Mar-Yilot read his mind. She sighed and glanced around the room. "Things may have
been very differ-ent, Pelmen, if we'd banded together sooner."
"I'm certain of it." Pelmen nodded. Then he smiled rather sadly. "But we've no way of knowing if they
would have been any better. We have the opportunity now, at least, for which I'm grateful." He looked at
the door, which had been firmly barred against the cold. "I just wish we could continue this conversation
on the other side."
"There's little chance of that today, I fear," Barleb said earnestly.
"No chance at all, Barleb?" Mar-Yilot asked.
The bargeman sighed. "I learned long ago never to say never to you, my Lady. And if your guest is
indeed Pelmen the Powershaperwell then, what value is there in a bargeman's opinion?"
"It's of great value to me," Pelmen murmured. "If you say we should wait, then we'll wait."
"Why?" Mar-Yilot demanded. "What good is power if you limit it with overcaution?"
"No shaper can control the winds, Mar-Yilot."
"Oh?" the woman said, arching her eyebrows. "That's not what I've heard. The rumor is that Pelmen
Dragonsbane can shape the winds and bend them to his bidding."
"It's not I who shaped the winds, my Lady," Pelmen said quietly. "It's the Power who shapes them and
shapes me with them."
"What's the difference?"
Pelmen raised his eyebrows and smiled. "Control. Initia-tive."
"You can't make it happen at will," she said, and he nodded. "But the Power can?" Pelmen nodded
again. "Then ask it."
"Ask it?" Pelmen frowned.
"Ask the Power to clear off this ice storm and give us a
good breeze home. Then it can dump a blizzard on us for all I care." Pelmen stared at her as if she were
mad. "What's the matter with that? It's a simple enough request, isn't it?"
Pelmen raised his brows again, this time in consternation. "I guess I'd just never thought of injecting my
personal con-venience into dealings of such importance."
"Why not?" Mar-Yilot demanded.
Pelmen thought for a moment, looking reflectively into the fire. "I suppose because it sounds like shaping,
of a sort."
Mar-Yilot measured her words for a moment. When she spoke, it was with a gentleness and grace
Pelmen had rarely known from her. "Is a child shaping her father when she makes a request? Do her
smiles and pleadings force him to yield? Or is it his own nature that causes him to respond as he does?
This Power of yoursyou relate to it, and it to you, with a seeming mutual respect. Why shouldn't it
respond to your request, if it values you?"
Pelmen pondered that as the woman circled around the chairs to a shuttered window. "I... don't know."
"If, as it seems, you're this Power's agent here, isn't your safety of some importance?" Abruptly
Mar-Yilot wheeled back to face him, her lips parted in a brightly cynical smile. "Or is it that you fear to
ask, because you're not quite sure if your mighty Power is able to deliver?"
Pelmen met her gaze evenly. "It isn't that, Mar-Yilot. It isn't that at all."
"Why then?" she demanded.
"Is it time to get up?" a sleepy voice asked from the stairway.
"Might as well, lad," Barleb called out, his eyes shifting warily from Pelmen to Mar-Yilot. "Who could
sleep with two shapers a 'bickering?" Evidently the bargeman expected the dis-cussion to erupt into
magical fireworks at any moment.
Rosha paid them no heed. He dressed himself quickly, stomped noisily down the staircase, and pushed
between the two debaters on his way to the door. He had it unbarred before Barleb realized what he
was doing. It was already open when the bargeman shouted, "Don't do it lad! The storm!"
Rosha looked out at the ice-covered ground, then glanced curiously up at the sky. It was clear. The sun
was just now climbing up over the skyline of the city of Drabeld to the east of them. "What storm?" he
asked.
Barleb frowned, and walked over to the doorway to look out. Then he scratched his head and looked
back over his shoulder at his mistress. "Get your things, my Lady. We can go"
Mar-Yilot's eyebrows arched in surprise. Then she shot
Pelmen a chagrined smile. "Your Power?" she mocked lightly.
"I have no idea." Pelmen sighed wearily. "I only know that now I can see Serphimera!"
There was a bit of wind blowing very conveniently out of the south. It carried them quickly and
uneventfully across the ten-mile channel. Soon after they left the shore, Mar-Yilot lay down to sleep.
Pelmen knew why. She was going by dream-search across the channel, to tell Syth they were on their
way. Pelmen sat in one of the cushioned chairs, wrapped his cloak around him, and enjoyed the ride.
The Isle of Sythia had once been only a barren outcropping in the northern sea. In those ancient days it
had no freshwater, no plant life, and only a single resource. That resource, how-ever, happened to be
diamonds. One day a poverty-stricken sailor named Syth, who operated a ferry between the larger
islands and the North Coast, had the good fortune to be blown onto its rocky shores. As soon as the
storm abated, he made his way to the court of the Jorl of the Isles, and claimed the barren rock as his
own. Everyone in court laughed that day but none more heartily than he. The ill wind that had blown
him ashore had insured that his progeny would never lack for anything.
The first Syth made a fortune. Soon, however, his island was being pillaged, and he decided he had to
move onto it to defend his jewels. He began to spend his wealth on improve-ments. Wells were dug.
Bargeloads of top soil were imported. Trees, shrubs, and grasses were all brought out to the island to
take root in the Sythian ground. Whole herds of wild beasts were transported over from the mainland.
Naturally, along with all this, came people. The early Syths chose their tenants well; over the centuries,
three pleasant little villages had matured in the island's natural coves. There were fishermen and weavers,
cheesemakers and cobblers, fanners and blacksmiths, and every other useful trade. But the island's
economy remained depen-dent upon the sparkling stones that lay scattered over the ground. Fortunately,
there seemed to be an almost endless supply of
gems. As a result, the Syths had built a dreamland, and had always managed it superbly. At the base of
the two hills that humped up in the island's center, a magnificent mansion blos-somed.
Pelmen could see it clearly, sparkling in the morning sun like the diamonds that had built it. Soon he
could see something else. On the beach there waited a crowd, and it was growing.
They arrived to the sound of trumpets and cheers, and Pel-men wondered if the resulting goose bumps
would stay upon his back forever. He shielded his eyes, rocking from side to side as he searched the
crowd for his ladyand there she was! He beamed at her and waved. Serphimera returned his smile
shyly and chewed her lower lip.
Once the barge touched the ground, he was off of it and running toward her. There was one long,
searching kissthen he held her at arm's length and scowled. "Why?" he demanded.
"I'll tell you after the feast." She said it firmly, but with a smile. Pelmen didn't argue. He knew there was
no use in that.
The banquet was as sumptuous as any that might be thrown together at a moment's notice on the very
threshold of winter. There was little fruit, and the vegetables were not all that fresh; Syth spent the whole
meal apologizing. He needn't have, for Pelmen wasn't tasting what he ate. Nor did he really hear Syth's
disclaimers. His eyes were engrossed in those of his lady, who seemed happy enough to return his gaze.
Midway through dessert, Syth turned to his wife and announced, "I have en-tertainment planned, of
course."
"What for?" Mar-Yilot groused. Then she smiled at her husband sweetly and murmured, "I don't care
what it is, 1 can think of something far more entertaining."
Syth mod Syth-el cleared his throat and looked at his guests. "Ahif you're finished, perhaps you'd like
to see your rooms?"
The mansion's rooms were large but well heated, with glazed windows running from the ceilings to the
floors. The walls were painted in cheerful colors that matched the thick-piled carpets, and all the settees
were stuffed full of down for max-imum comfort. Into one of these Pelmen and Serphimera sank, once
Syth and Mar-Yilot had disappeared, giggling, into the castle's tower. Rosha tactfully retreated into his
own assigned apartment. The moment he was gone, Pelmen grabbed Serphimera and kissed her. Then
he sat back and said, "Now. Where did you go?"
There was honest, understandable hurt in his voice, and Serphimera shifted position and looked away
before answering. "1 came here."
"Directly? It took you that long?"
"Not directly, no. I really didn't know where this was, so I didn't know how to get here."
"But why did you come?"
Serphimera sighed, but not in exasperation. It was a sigh of embarrassment mingled with pleasureshe
liked being cared for this deeply. "I told you, Pelmen, months ago, that neither of us were finished. I'd
seen this place in a vision and myself here, doing... what I do. It was time to come, so I came."
"Without a word?" he demanded.
"What word could I give? I'd seen your travels too, my love" She paused briefly, to let the term of
endearment have its impact. "And I knew I would only impede you. It wasn't by my choice that I left you.
It was the Power's."
Pelmen gazed at her, and the anger he'd built up over the months of separation dissipated in a moment.
He kissed her dark hair. "So that's why I couldn't find you."
"Did you look?" she asked with a mocking frown.
"Of course!"
"Good," she muttered. "I was afraid you wouldn't."
Pelmen started to argue, then saw the dance in her emerald eyes and realized she was teasing. "And you
had nothing to do with the rebirth of the Dragonfaith."
Her frown turned serious. "Nothing at all. Only great sad-ness that it's come so quickly."
He frowned. "You knew?"
"I knew," she said quietly.
For a long time Pelmen just looked at her. Then his eyes watered over, and he looked out the window at
one of the twin hills that stood in the middle of the island.
"What's the matter?" she asked, but she already knew the answer.
"I'm wondering how much else you know, my Lady, about you, about me, about this coming war that
you won'tor cannottell."
Serphimera breathed an unhappy sigh and thought a mo-
ment. Then she said, "I don't know everything, you realize. And I don't always interpret correctly what I
see."
Pelmen remained uncomforted. "Only one thing I ask you to tell me, Serphimera, and all the rest can
remain secret until it's fulfilled. Warn me of when I can expect you to disappear again." His jaw clenched
and his eyes hardened as he waited for her response.
The priestess didn't flinch nor did she hesitate. She leaned toward him and said, "I will never again leave
you, Pelmen Dragonsbane. Except, perhaps, through death."
Her answer made him want to shout, but his jubilation was tempered by that last condition. "Do you...
know some-thing ... about that?" he asked tentatively.
Serphimera's beautiful face took on a severe aspect, and her voice had a sepulchral edge she used only
for intoning prophecy. "I see us together to the mountain, Pelmen Dra-gonsbane. And then I see no
more." The expression remained fixed for a momentthe face one might expect to find carved on a
sculpture of a goddess. Then abruptly it crumpled, and she bowed her head, leaned against Pelmen's
chest, and wept. He held onto her, wisely saying nothing. Finally she choked out, "That's all. And I don't
know what it means."
Pelmen clung to her and let her sob, casting about for some appropriate reply. He never found it.
Suddenly his mind filled with a completely different conversation, one she could not be a party to. His
eyes slammed shut in pain and concentration, and once more, as had happened so many times before,
the normally dark field behind his eyelids burned a hot, bright blue. Rosha! he wanted to shout, don't do
it! But his own words were crowded out by the words of others. The link had again been made. The
three pyramids were in contact.
CHAPTER ELEVEN
A Brilliant, Burning Blue
Savage waves batted the rowboat toward the shore, drenching the sky blue garments of its seven
occupants. Erri wrestled with an oar while shouting instructions to the other oarsman. The poor man
struggled to hear, but the hammering sea drowned the prophet's words. Moments later their keel scraped
the sand, and several initiates hopped out into the surf to drag the boat onto the beach. Erri hung over the
side gasping for breath, then gestured for the three men who were to return to the ship to lean toward
him.
"Row into the swells!" he shouted. "Don't let the craft turn edge-on into the waves or you'll be swamped!
Ship oars as the peaks roll under you, then row for all you're worth into the troughs! Oh, what am I
saying," he broke off, grumbling to himself. "You can't hear me anyway."
One initiate leaned toward his master's face, cupping a hand around his ear. "What?" he shouted.
"I said let the Power guide you!" Erri bellowed back. Then he shook his head in frustration, shrugged,
and smiled brightly. When he jumped out of the boat they were all smiling back. He helped them push
back out, then waved and turned for the shore. Suddenly strong young arms closed around his chest and
picked him up. "Strahn!" he barked. "Set me down! I assure you I can walk!" The initiate doubtfully
released him, and Erri ploughed through the foam as it first rushed up the shore past him, then sucked
backward into the sea. He didn't stop until his squishing sandals were grabbed and slowed by the dry
sand high on the beach. Wayleeth and Tahli-Damen waited for him here; she had her arm wrapped
protectively around her husband's waist, and he was scowling sightlessly
toward the ocean. The blind man had been scowling for the past two days.
"Look!" Strahn shouted enthusiastically as he joined them. "You see that huge boulder over there? I used
to play by that boulder!" No one looked but Strahn. Indeed, the other three really didn't hear him.
Already they were learning to screen out most of his irritating enthusiasm.
"Tahli-Damen, stop your frowning," Erri ordered. "You can't see it but the rest of us can, and it will only
make this trip that much more unpleasant."
"You know why I'm scowling," the blind man grunted. "The choice was yours."
Erri winked at Wayleeth and smiled warmly at her. "Ac-tually, the choice was yours some time ago. And
a fine choice it was, too. Wayleeth, please excuse him."
"Oh, don't worry about me, Prophet. I'm used to him." The young woman's bright eyes returned to her
husband's face, and the devotion Erri saw in them confirmed again this pairing. Some matches were
certainly made by the Power himself.
"I used to pick up seashells near here! And down there at those rocks?" Strahn danced as he pointed.
"We used to sit on those rocks until the tide came in and rose up around our necks! We made a game of
seeing who could last the longest!"
Some matches, Erri complained to himself meditatively, seem to be made by mischievous powers intent
on taxing pa-tience to the limit. Strahn, Erri grieved silently to himself how had he inherited Strahn?
"I told you I used to live near here, didn't I? Goats. My father herded goats right over there, at the foot
of the Spinal Range!" The young man was grinning and pointing again, and Erri felt obliged to look.
"Yes," he murmured wearily, "I believe you have mentioned that. Eight or nine times, I would guess." It
was his own fault, Erri reasoned. Begin anything new and exciting while opening yourself to receive any
who might follow, and you're bound to wind up with some of the Strahns of the world. "Shall we go? It's
a long walk to Dragonsgate."
"It's not that far," Strahn corrected eagerly as he fell into step with the prophet. "Why, my father and
I"
"What's that?" Wayleeth gasped, stopping as she said it and pointing. Tahli-Damen banged into her
shoulder and his scowl
deepened. He quickly forgot his irritation, however, when Erri grunted back:
"Dogs."
They had reached the top of the sandy strand and were about to descend into a small gully. On the far
side, silhouetted against the red sky of the setting autumn sun, a line of hounds waited. They weren't
normal dogs. These had been a part of that vast canine army that had ringed the city of Lamath the night
Erri fell from power. They were Flayh's dogs, and Erri's mouth suddenly felt cottony with fear.
Strahn's stricken expression announced his terror to the world, but he still managed to stammer,
"Wh-wh-what do we do?"
Erri swallowed. "What do we do? What we came here to do. We walk to Dragonsgate." Erri plunged
down the hill, churning a plume of sand before him. He didn't look back to see if his small band followed,
nor did he hesitate when he reached the bottom of the dune. He started up the other side, gazing into the
fiery orange eyes of the hound directly above him. As if on cue, the dog slipped to one side and let Erri
stalk on through the line.
Now Wayleeth and Strahn hurried to catch up, and Tahli-Damen did his best to keep his feet in all the
sliding and tugging. "What kind of dogs?" the blind man demanded of his wife and guide. "Describe them
to me!"
"They're... dogs. Black. But their eyes are ... they're like flames"
"Are these the dogs that attacked Lamath?" Tahli-Damen quizzed her, and Wayleeth nodded in assent.
"Well, answer me!" he demanded.
"Yes!" she whispered vehemently.
"I see." Tahli-Damen nodded, unaware of the irony in his words. "They're the demon dogs then, aren't
they. Prophet?"
"If you choose to term them such," Erri called back, con-tinuing rapidly on. As he did, he noticed the line
of hounds turning to trot along beside him. He stopped. They stopped. He waited until his band caught
up, then started walking west-ward again. The dogs trotted forward, matching their pace to his. "It
appears they plan to escort us."
"Why?" Wayleeth flared, hooking one arm through her hus-band's and turning her head to frown at the
hounds. "What do they want from us?"
"I don't know," Erri replied offhandedly. He glanced at Tahli-Damen as he said it and took note of the
blind man's grim expression. A bag holding that object that Tahli-Damen had borne to Lamath now
dangled from Erri's neck, hidden by the fullness of his robe. Had these dogs come for the pyramid?
"I've never seen anything like them," Strahn whispered. "Where do they come from?"
"From Flayh," said Erri.
"But how?" the young man asked. "Did Flayh make them?" Strahn's voice quavered with horror at the
very thought.
"He enfleshed them," the prophet grunted. "They're powers in canine form. Demon dogs, as
Tahli-Damen said."
"And Flayh controls them," the blind man breathed omi-nously .
"Does he?" Erri asked, and Tahli-Damen, surprised, tried to look at him. "I mean, I don't know," the
prophet went on. "I'm just wondering. Perhaps no one controls them. Perhaps they control themselves.
Keep close, they're encircling us."
Dogs from either flank bounded out before them, and others dropped off to close the gap behind. The
black hounds now ringed them, tongues lolling over gleaming teeth, glowing eyes gazing forward. They
made no aggressive moves toward the bluefaithers, yet the potential for attack made all four humans
terribly tense. Conversation died. After an hour of silent walk-ing, Strahn could take no more. He
stooped quickly to grab up a rock.
"No!" Erri commanded, and the young man dropped his stone instead of throwing it as he'd planned.
"They've done nothing to us. We'll not bother them."
Strahn looked as if he wanted to argue, but he didn't. They kept walking.
Night came. The moon was not yet up, but the stars were bright. By this light the initiates kept watch on
their four-legged companions. Eventually sleep became a necessity. "Let's stop here," Erri suggested.
"What about the dogs?" Strahn asked.
"They don't seem inclined to attack us," the prophet mut-tered. "We'll divide the night into three watches.
I'll take the first one."
"Divide it into four," Tahli Damen said. "I'll do my share."
Wayleeth was startled. "But darling, you're-"
"Do they know that?" her husband snarled quietly. Wayleeth did not reply.
They built a fire and lay down to sleep, and the circle of dogs settled down, too, to wait for them. There
were four watches. The three who'd actually been able to see all reported the same thing in the morning:
The flaming eyes of the dogs had never closed.
As they ate their meager breakfast, Erri tried an experiment. He walked a few paces westward, and the
dogs on that side of the ring parted to let him pass. Then he turned and walked back to the fire. He saw
Wayleeth eyeing him curiously, but he made no comment to her. A few minutes later he walked a few
paces eastward, back in the direction of the sea. The dogs on this side of the circle rose slowly to their
feet, but did not part. When he came within six feet of them they bared their fangs. One more pace and
they growled menacingly. Erri didn't chance another step. He propped his hands on his hips and said,
"That's it then. You're herding us westward, aren't you?" The dogs stared back at him, but none made
any reply. "For-tunately, that's the very direction we'd planned to go. Come my friendslet's be
moving."
Two days after landing on the beach, the odd troop made its way up the pass into Dragonsgate. The
dogs had not ob-structed them in any way, but neither had the skyfaithers de-parted a step from their
westward route. While the presence of the dogs had naturally heightened the tension of the journey, Erri
could count at least two advantages in having this escort. Tahli-Damen and Wayleeth had laid their
marital differences aside in order to deal with the crisis, and were now functioning quite smoothly as a
team. She had learned to anticipate his needs before he spoke them, and was making a conscious effort
not to smother him. And Strahn had been so cowed by the hounds' appearance that he'd stopped
speaking entirely for a day and a half. Unfortunately, this effect had finally worn off; throughout the climb,
the young man's tongue was in constant motion. Erri finally had to put a hand over the lad's mouth to shut
him up. When Strahn fell silent, the prophet looked him in the eye and said, "Remember. Somewhere
above us is a dragon." The sentence had its desired effect. Strahn's eyes widened, and when Erri pulled
his hand away, he saw that fear had again sealed Strahn's lips. The prophet sighed with relief.
Then he looked at Wayleeth and her husband. "What are your plans?" he asked gently.
"Are you talking to me or to him?" the young wife asked.
"To both of you. I don't suppose you have two plans..."
"I really don't know," Wayleeth shrugged. "I'm with him. Where he tells me to go, I'll lead him."
Erri nodded. "And you, Tahli-Damen? Where will you di-rect her?"
The blind man walked on several paces before replying. "If we get past the dragon-"
"Oh, we'll get past the dragon," Erri interrupted. "Have no fear about that. The dragon's an illusion, albeit
a convincing one. Just don't you be convinced."
"An illusion, yes," Tahli-Damen nodded, "but there's enor-mous force behind it. I've seen Flayh's power
before. I know what we're walking into."
"Yet you're content to go on?"
"I wouldn't have it any other way," the blind man said with confidence.
"Don't worry," Wayleeth put in. "I'll steer him out of trou-ble."
"Ah, Wayleeth," Erri countered. "But what if the Power steers trouble to youl"
The young woman looked confused. "Would the Power do that?"
"Regularly," the prophet muttered; then he held his hand out to silence her and informed Tahli-Damen,
"We're about to step into Dragonsgate."
They rounded a rock, first Erri, then Wayleeth and Tahli-Damen. Strahn didn't go around it immediately.
Erri popped his head back around the comer to look at Strahn and an-nounced, "You can come on. The
dragon appears to be gone at the moment."
"Gone? That's wonderful! That's what I've been hoping for, all the way up this pass, that it would be
out"
"Strahn?" Erri interrupted. "I'd like to send these two on their way. After all, the twi-beast could return
any minute." Erri turned his gaze upward slowly, directing Strahn's eyes skyward. Then the prophet
returned to the couple.
"I'm satisfied in the knowledge that you're both listening to the Power. Go where guided. Do what you
must. I rather
hope things will wind up rapidly, but I have no idea what to expect, so if 1 don't see you again, know
that you carry my love with you. If I do, it will be at a grand celebration." Erri embraced them both then
and sent them on their way.
The dogs had watched all of this from some distance. Now as the little band parted, they seemed
hesitant as to what do do. Erri glanced over at a couple of the hounds and saw that they appeared to be
talking. He wasn't at all surprised. He'd long ago abandoned the notion that these were mere animals.
After a moment, a decision was made. Half of the dogs, eigh-teen or twenty, accompanied Wayleeth and
her husband down the Westmouth toward Ngandib-Mar. The other half remained behind with Erri and
Strahn.
"Now what?" the young man asked worriedly. He didn't expect the pack to let them back down into
Lamath.
Erri glanced around at the canyon walls. To his right was the sheer northern face of the pass. Forty feet
up he could see the shelf where Vicia-Heinox had sunned itself, and behind it the yawning mouth of the
dragon's cave. "Too steep," he mumbled. "Besides, the apparition might be using it." He looked to his left
at the southern face. "That doesn't look any better." He turned around and craned his neck to look up the
eastern face of the pass. It looked almost climbable. "Think we could get up that?" he asked Strahn.
"Why?" the young man asked.
"If I've understood the Power a'right, we've got to meet someone here. But I don't relish having to wait
in full sight of that dragon, illusory or not."
His words had a powerful impact on young Strahn. "Of course we can make it!" he said enthusiastically
and he turned around and tackled the hill.
Erri followed more slowly, conscious that the dogs were accompanying him to the base of the cliff.
"You're welcome to climb with us, if you want," he offered. Then he cocked his earhad one of the
hounds whined, slightly? He looked at the circle of eyes, but heard nothing more. He took a deep breath
and started up the mountain. "I'm an experienced old climber," he said to himself with a slight grin. "Let's
see if I can beat this boy to the top."
Three hours later Erri clutched an icy boulder and gasped for air. The temperature was dropping
rapidlyhis breath
whooshed out in great gusts of steam. He had to have some rest. It annoyed him to note that Strahn had
already been to the top once and had come back down to fetch him up. He realized now that while he'd
shinned up many a mast, the good salt air had never thinned away to nothing as did this mountain variety.
"Just a little bit higher," Strahn encouraged apologetically. "We're almost there."
"You said that same thing two hours ago, Strahn, when we were right down there!" Erri pointed to a
cluster of rocks several hundred feet below them.
"I... I know, it's just that... well, look how much closer you are!"
Erri looked up at Strahn with a frown, then leaned his head back to try to see the summit. "Looks just
the way it did when we were back down there! I can't tell that we've made any progress at all!"
"But we have, we have," Strahn said almost pleadingly. "Come on, Prophet, you can make it! There's a
small cave at the top..." Strahn added this as he shot a doubtful look at the clouds.
"I know, I know," Erri grumbled. "I can see it too. Snow's coming."
"Perhaps if you could hurry"
"I'm coming as fast as I can!" Erri shouted, sorry imme-diately for the outburst. As if his shout had
shaken it loose from the clouds, the snow began to falland Erri took a deep breath and started
climbing in earnest.
It was another hour before they made it to the summit. By that time they were both covered with frosty
white flakes, and shivering helplessly. But, as Strahn had promised, there was a small cave, and they
plunged into the back of it and clung together to hold some warmth between them. Suddenly Erri sat
back, a puzzled expression barely visible on his face in the dim light.
"What is it," Strahn asked worriedly. Erri clutched for his chest, and Strahn shouted, "Prophet! Is it your
heart?"
Erri glanced up at him. "My heart? No. It's this thing." He pulled the bag from under his vestments and
held it up. "It's glowing hot all of a sudden." The prophet opened the velvet sack, and both of them were
dazzled immediately by the pyramid's brilliant glow. Strahn whirled away from it, covering his eyes, but
Erri sat forward and peered into its radiance. For there, visible within it, were the faces of two of his
finest friends.
When the last sack of insects had been purged from the palace, Bronwynn sent word for Naquin to
meet her. She greeted him with an apology and nothing more. Further words were unnecessary. The
whole city had seen the attack begin, and few inhabitants were untouched by it. Word had spread
quickly of Queen Bronwynn's incredible delivery of the castle, so the national mourning was tinged with
euphoric patriotism. Chao-monous, already mobilized for war, now had the will to fight it. Everyone
praised Bronwynn's wisdom in remaining behind, and the story of Danyilyn's impersonation drew laughs
in every tavern as an excellent joke on the enemy. Nor was there any longer any question of who the
enemy was. There had been magic involved in that massing of clawsps. Those Mari savages wanted
another war. The previous humiliation of the Golden Throng still rankled most Chaons, and the queen's
stunning victory had restored their national confidence. Important mat-ters needed to be attended to. A
state funeral for those killed was the first priority. But there was no question in anyone's mind that
Bronwynn would then swiftly rejoin her army and lead it to triumph in the north.
No one questioned it except Bronwynn. She tried in vain to reopen the conversation with the Imperial
House. The castle was silent. It was deadso stone cold as to make her wonder if she'd imagined its
speaking to her. There was no counsel there. Nor could Naquin offer any advice. These startling events
had taken their toll on his own understanding of the faith, for he couldn't deny that the Power had issued
the warning, nor could he ignore that magic had effected the victory. He was beginning, however, to
rationalize things together in his mind. Since he'd first met Bronwynn, he'd regarded her as somewhat
tainted by her connection with Pelmen. Now he viewed her with a newfound respect. He still couldn't
quite tolerate the concept of magic, but miracles were certainly permissible. "Did you feel any ... any
sense of being... controlled from outside when you destroyed these vermin?" he asked the queen quietly
as they waited for the funeral procession to begin.
"No," Bronwynn grunted, rather impatiently since she knew why he was asking. "Just a terrible rage.
Which I still feel now," she added bitterly, as she cast her eyes back over the long line of coffins. They
were draped in sky blue, by her order. Naquin had considered protesting, but thought better of it. After
all, he had no way of judging the spiritual condition of the dead. "You have no further word from the
Power?" Bronwynn snapped sharply, and Naquin jumped, startled.
"No, my Lady. Unless, perhaps, the command to wait is still in effect."
Bronwynn gazed away, over the heads of her grim-faced bodyguard. "I don't think so," she said quietly.
Then she looked back at Naquin. "And when there's no other word, what more do you have to go on?"
It seemed to Naquin that she was much older than the young queen he'd argued with two days before.
Then he thought no more about it. The procession had begun, and he stepped into his priestly role.
After the ceremony, Bronwynn returned to her apartments to pack. She did so haphazardly, packing a
trivial item, then discarding an essential, her mind wandering constantly to other things. Rosha seemed
very far away, like a pleasant dream that had never really come true. Everything she picked up held
memories, and she finally had to sit on her bed and weep for a while before she could finish the job. It
was foolish, she realized, to pack everything herself. A single summons and a dozen maids would rush to
do it for her. But at the moment, she felt very privateshe didn't need a lot of chattering women around
her, trying to cheer her up.
Once packed, she called her guard to bear it all away and changed into comfortable riding clothes. She
started out her door, but something stopped her. Curious, she thought. That would be a senseless, even
dangerous act. Nevertheless, she walked back through her chambers to a small vault hidden in her
bedroom and took out an object stored there. It was the pyramid that had belonged to Jagd, bagged in a
sack of blue velvet. "Stupid," she told herself as she looked at it. Even so, she slipped the bag's
drawstring around her neck. After donning a heavy cape, she went down to meet her personal brigade in
the stable.
"Bad day to travel, your Highness," one of her guards com-
mented, but there was no suggestion there that they wait. He, like the rest of her force, was ready to
fight. They were all in a hurry to rejoin the Golden Throng. However, when it started to snow on them
twenty miles north of the capital, her captain urged her to turn aside and lodge at a fortified manor near
the campsite. She finally agreed.
Her hosts were a middle-aged pair who had maintained their elevated position in Chaon society through
a policy of con-scienceless pragmatism. While Talith was king, they had served him loyally. When Ligne
overthrew him, they gave her a party to celebrate her victory. Now they swore absolute fealty to
Bronwynn. Since they had plenty to feel guilty about, they were rather alarmed by her sudden arrival.
Bronwynn was aware of both their discomfort and the rea-sons underlying it. She didn't care. She had
far too much on her mind these days to concern herself with the petty hypocrisy of the wealthy. As soon
as the snow permitted, she rode briskly into her camp, ignoring the cheers of her soldiers. News of her
victory had preceded her, enhancing the already consid-erable loyalty of her troops. Her warriors even
revelled in her indifferent expression; as she galloped past, her eyes unflinch-ingly forward, she looked
every inch the confident conquering heroine.
In fact, that cool expression masked a girlish crisis. Her mind was still enmeshed in her grief at the loss of
so many faithful retainers. She also felt overwhelmed by the responsi-bility she now bore. It was one
thing to take one's hereditary place as sovereign. It was quite another to be suddenly hailed as the
national savior. The weight of the two together threatened to crush her unless she could talk about it to
someone. That urgent need set her priorities for the morning.
By the time she reached the large circular pavilion in the midst of the camp, General Joss had already
learned of her arrival and was waiting. "Greetings, your Majesty," he called as one guard grabbed the
reins of her mount and another took hold of her stirrup and her hand. "And hail," he added as she
dropped lightly to the powdery snow.
"You've heard," she said, jerking a rolled bundle down from her saddle before allowing them to lead her
horse away.
"All Chaomonous has heard, my Lady. And well they should have. May the Mari savages hear soon,
and tremble!"
"You sound pleased," she muttered, knocking a drape aside and ducking into her tent.
"Shouldn't I be?" he asked, following her. "In a single act, you've established a right to the throne more
legitimate than any claim of your father, provided a rallying point for the entire nation, and increased by at
least a third the size of your army. Does that not make you happy?"
Bronwynn had arrived at the center of the huge tent, beside a small, portable throne. She'd reached her
destination, and that troubled her somehow, for she realized that the journey here had provided her with
a purpose that had diverted her attention from other matters. Now she had to think about them again.
"I'm not happy, no," she said brusquely. "Too many people died in that battle to feel any happiness about
it."
Joss had no reputation for sensitivity. He did, however, maintain a close watch on the feelings and needs
of his mon-arch. He therefore passed up the opportunity to point out that far more would die in the
planned invasion of Ngandib-Mar than had been lost in the skirmish with the insects. While it was true,
such an assertion would serve no purpose now. The girl was obviously depressed, and such words could
only de-press her further. Better to let her relax and review the events of the past few days from this new
distance. Joss realized that Chaomonous suddenly possessed a splendid military opportu-nity. He was
resolved not to squander it. His response to her was extremely uncharacteristic. With the voice of the
most humble of slaves, in a tone more gentle than Kherda's, he asked, "Can I get you anything, my
Lady?"
Bronwynn jerked around and frowned at him. "What?" she asked.
"Something to relax you? I have some good books in my quarters"
The queen regarded him with a puzzled expression, then sighed and looked away. She hadn't the energy
to figure Joss out this morning; instead she took his offer at face value. "Yes," she said as she walked to
the bed. "Find the two actors, Dan-yilyn and Gerrig, and send them to me."
"As you wish, my Lady," the general said a; lie bowed his way backwards out of the tent. Bronwynn
thought no more about his unlikely behavior. She was preparing herself to give bad news.
Gerrig and Danyilyn came grim-faced through the curtains. The news of Bronwynn's triumph had carried
with it the threat of personal tragedy. The rumor was that many had died. No word had yet come as to
who those were. Both pairs of eyes sought out Bronwynn's face immediately, hoping for a smile of
encouragement. There was none there.
"Yes?" Danyilyn asked. It was a rather impudent greeting for one's queen, but Bronwynn seemed not to
notice.
"Come in and sit down," she said gently. If any hope had survived in their minds it disappeared in the
face of that somber invitation. They sat obediently, and looked at her. "You've heard by now of the
clawsp attack on the Imperial House. I'm sorry, but Yona Parmi was among those killed. He died
outside my door, apparently trying to protect my apartments from the insects. 1 thought you ought to
know."
Gerrig wept brokenly, then began to mumble curses which built in volume and intensity to a profane
tirade against the instigators of the attack. Danyilyn just gazed at the fish-satin walls of the tent, her face a
study in bitterness. After a moment she looked back at the queen and saw that Bronwynn, too, was
weeping. That surprised her momentarily, for while Bronwynn had become acquainted with Yona Parmi
and had seemed to enjoy his company, she'd not known him well. Then Danyilyn put herself in
Bronwynn's place and thought she understood. "My Lady," she said tentatively, "we appreciate your
sharing our tragedy with us. Indeed, it's unusual for a queen to involve herself so personally. It makes me
wonder. Is there something we can do for you?"
Bronwynn looked up and met Danyilyn's knowing gaze, and her relief at being understood unleashed a
flood of new tears that interrupted Gerrig's diatribe. He watched as the ac-tress moved over to kneel
beside the queen and slipped her arm around Bronwynn's waist. He suddenly felt very much out of place.
The back of his throat ached. He fought his way out through the veils of the tent and sought his solace in
the solitude of the snow.
Bronwynn poured out her anxiety and frustration while Danyilyn nodded and occasionally hummed in
agreement. It didn't take long for the young queen to move on from her current concerns to long
concealed confidences. The actress responded in kind. Soon they were chattering like schoolgirls,
losing themselves and their griefs in the warm bath of con-versation. The snow swirled down outside,
covering a swiftly swelling army poised on the edge of conquest. The two women were oblivious to it.
For the moment, the bliss of newly dis-covered friendship held them in its protective trance. Eventu-ally,
of course, the conversation had to work its way back to Yona Parmi, but now they were better able to
bear the sorrow of it together. They each felt sad for Gerrig, realizing that the explosion of their friendship
had essentially locked him out. That led them quickly to thoughts of others, and Danyilyn voiced a
realization that occurred to both of them in the same instant. "We need to get word to Pelmen."
"How?" Bronwynn asked. "We don't even know where he is."
"Which is normal," Danyilyn mumbled sourly. Then she jumped as Bronwynn danced lightly to her feet
and across the carpeted floor to the bundle on her bed. "What's that?" she asked.
Bronwynn unrolled the cloth and pulled out the velvet bag. She gnawed at the knotted drawstring to get
it untied, then jerked it open and produced from inside it an object of incred-ible radiance and beauty.
"This," she said.
Danyilyn regarded the pyramid suspiciously. She knew im-mediately what it was. She also knew of its
danger. "You won't be able to contact Pelmen with that! Instead you're liable to get his archenemy!"
"True enough," Bronwynn grunted, "but at this point I'm willing to talk to anybody who knows anything!
Besides," she added haughtily, "I'm a shaper now, too!"
"My Lady, be careful!" Danyilyn warned, but she was too late. Already the crystal object's inner
radiance was flaring into a brilliant, beautiful blue.
Bronwynn stared into the pyramid, as did Erri and did Rosha. The link was made.
"Bronwynn?" Rosha cried.
"Rosha?" his astonished queen replied.
"By the Power!" Erri muttered incredulously.
"Is that really you?" Bronwynn squealed, and Rosha eagerly assured her that it was. "Where are you?"
she demanded.
"I'm in the Mar."
"Well, I'd guessed that," she snapped. "Where in the Mar?"
The magical pyramids did not transmit the user's voice alone. If Rosha peered into one facet of the
three-sided object, he could see the faces of the other two speakers looking up at him from the other two
facets. He could clearly see the scolding arch of Bronwynn's eyebrows, and it irritated him. His answer
sounded gruffer than he'd intended. "I'm safe."
"Are you with your father?" she probed. She was shocked by the expression of grief that seized her
husband's features. "What's wrong?" she asked, her voice suddenly tender and solicitous.
"By all accounts, my father is dead."
"But how"
"It's a long story, not yet fit for the telling," he said brusquely. His own attitude surprised him. A few
moments before he'd been sitting joylessly in his opulent guest room, longing for contact with this very
woman. Now, he suddenly didn't feel much like talking. "Erri, is that really you?" he asked, trying to
deflect attention from himself.
"Yes, it is," Erri said soberly. He seemed unwilling to go on.
"Are you safe?" Bronwynn asked doubtfully, her eyes still watching Rosha's.
"I think so."
"Where are you?" she asked, now turning her full attention to the prophet.
Erri hesitated. "I...don't think I can really say. In fact, I'm positive that 1 don't rightly know where I am.
But I think that may be just as well. Does Pelmen know of this conver-sation?"
"He should," Bronwynn reasoned, "if he's anywhere near one of us. Do either of you know his
whereabouts? I have a message for him."
"What is it?" Rosha asked.
"It's bad news..." Bronwynn hesitated, reflecting a mo-ment, then chose to go ahead. "Made worse, I
fear, by your word about your father. If you see him, tell him Yona Parmi is dead."
"Yona?" Rosha frowned. "How?" His grim expression grew more so as Bronwynn recounted the events
of the clawsp attack. Erri listened to this news with evident interestand appeared
somewhat relieved at its outcome. Rosha grunted as she fin-ished her story: 'Terril. Did he escape?"
"1 don't know," Bronwynn said. "We swept millions of insects from the Imperial House"
"But no strange bodies were found?"
"If so, I wasn't told."
"Then he escaped. When a shaper dies in altershape he reverts to his human form. So. Terril is against
us." Rosha pursed his lips in concentration.
"You're forgetting something," Bronwynn snapped, and he looked up at her inquiringly. I am with you."
Rosha could usually absorb Bronwynn's inherited haugh-tiness without giving it any thought. For some
reason, however, today it made him want to snap at her. "What do you mean by that? You think just
because you killed some clawsps you're ready to match powers with Mar-Yilot?"
Bronwynn was stung by his sharp reply. Hurt, she fired back an unthinking retort. "I'm ready to match
powers and armies with anyone!"
"What does that mean?" Rosha goaded.
"It means, Rosha, that I'm sitting on your border with forty thousand troops, ready to invade and offer
aid wherever you need it! Now if you'll just tell me where you"
"Did I ask you to do that?" Rosha shouted. "Did 1 ask for you to come in here and rescue me?"
"Wellno, but it just makes good sense, if you're in trou-ble"
"I'm not in trouble!" Rosha barked. "I'm safe, I'm with friends, and we can handle our own problems
without the Golden Throng interfering!"
"All right then, tell me, if you're so safe and secure, why you've not contacted me until now?" He'd asked
for it, Bronwynn decided. She had a lot of anger inside her just wait-ing for release. Now she let it spew.
"You left me in Chao-monous without a word! Not a word! What am I supposed to do, sit at home
knitting until you decide to return? I had to send word to Pelmen to track you down, and I wouldn't have
known anything if my own magical ability hadn't surfaced in a dream and allowed me to meet him on your
precious Mari rock of dead people!"
"That's the Rock of Tombs," Rosha said icily.
"Whatever. I finally figured it out for myself that you'd gone off looking for glory! Talk about me
sounding bold! What were you trying to do? Take on Flayh single-handedly?"
Rosha's jaws clenched, primarily because her barbs were striking so close to a target made tender by
guilt. He struck back. "How do you think I'm able to talk to you? I took this mystical device from Flayh's
tower with my own hands! I'm currently in league with the two most potent shapers in Mari history, and
together"
"No!" The word was thunderous. It came from none of the three, but it echoed in Erri's cave and
vibrated the walls of Bronwynn's tent. The three sat in stunned silence. Then they heard something
elsesomething chillingly dark and evil, em-anating from some distance away.
"That was Pelmen," Bronwynn whispered.
"The 'no' was," Erri said calmly. "The laughter was some-one else. My childrenI think I can call you
that by this time, since you've certainly treated one another as suchthese de-vices were never intended
for this purpose. I understand from our mutual mentor that any conversation through them ends in
bickering. Now I've seen evidence of it, and that's confirmed by my own feelings. I'd like to grab you
both by the ears and shake you! Now let us put these things away as we've been instructed and keep
them safe! The Power has some purpose for them or we would not possess them now. But this is most
certainly not that purpose!" With a head-splitting snap, Erri broke the link.
Rosha sat on his bed, awaiting the knock on his door. At last it came. "Come in," he mumbled.
Pelmen stepped in, as he'd expected; but he hadn't expected Serphimera to follow, or Mar-Yilot, or
Syth. He hung his head in humiliation. No one said anything until he broke the silence. "The laughter," he
said. "Flayh's?"
Pelmen nodded. "It was Flayh."
"Then he heard everything."
"Didn't you know he would?" Mar-Yilot flared, and it crossed Rosha's mind that he ought to feel fright.
Suddenly, he realized that he did. Not only was he frightened of the Autumn Lady's wrath. He felt the
backlog of days of terrifying circumstances suddenly catching up with him. In that moment it was as if
Rosha awoke at last to the mighty forces at work around him forces he had not a breath of control
over, forces he was'nt even aware of. He realized, vaguely, that Pelmen had come to his defense.
"No, he didn't know. That's my fault. I'd thought the object lost at the bottom of the reservoir. It never
occurred to me that he'd managed to hang onto it, so 1 felt no urge to explain its full properties to him."
"Did you hear it all, too?" Serphimera asked Mar-Yilot, and the sorceress nodded in disgust.
Serphimera's eyes met Syth's, and they sympathized with one another silently. Like Rosha, they were
often in the dark. Neither of them had heard a thing.
"Now he must know we're together!" Mar-Yilot fumed.
"Probably." Pelmen nodded. "But he'd surely guessed that anyway. Maybe knowing it for certain will
frighten him, some-how." Mar-Yilot shot him another look of disgust. Pelmen met her gaze. "It could
have been much worse. Our position wasn't revealed. Nor was Erri's"
"Who is this Erri, anyway?" the woman asked. "He sounded thoroughly sensible."
Pelmen gave her a slight smile. "That's one of the best descriptions of Erri I've ever heard. I hope you'll
meet him one day."
Mar-Yilot snorted. "If I survive!" She shot another foul look at Rosha, then stormed out of the room.
After a moment Syth followed herbut not before laying a comforting hand on Rosha's shoulder.
Rosha wouldn't look up. Pelmen nodded at Serphimera, and she, too, disappeared. Then the shaper sat
on the bed beside his young friend. Rosha had put the pyramid back in its wrap-pingsthe burned
remnant of Pelmen's old cloak. He handed it to Pelmen, his eyes still on the floor. "You want this?" he
asked dully.
Pelmen sighed. "Not really," he said, but he took it anyway and sat it, bundled up, on his lap.
"I'm sorry," Rosha growled.
"I'm sorry too. For you. It sounded like a most unsatisfying reunion."
"It was."
"Can I do anything?"
Rosha looked up at him finally. "You can take that thing
out of here and let me go to bed." Pelmen nodded, patted Rosha's back, and started for the door.
"Pelmen," Rosha called, and the powershaper turned to look back at him. "I'm sorry about Yona Parmi."
Pelmen lowered his head, and nodded. Then he looked squarely at Rosha. "I keep losing my friends.
Don't let your guilt cost me you, too." He left the room, closing the door behind him.
CHAPTER TWELVE
Frolic in the Snow
There were many handsome rooms in Syth's palace, but the grandest of all was the long hallway that
spanned the length of the northern face of the house. A series of columns ran along the wall, interspersed
with full-length windows. Some of these were of stained glass. One, the most prominent, pictured a
butterfly in shades of auburn, amber and apricot. Most, how-ever, were clear, providing a vista of the
two peaks in the middle of the island.
It was a beautiful room throughout the day. It made a good spot for an early breakfast, as dawn painted
the twin hills a pleasant pink. In the afternoon, the columns formed dramatic silhouettes, and the room
had the somber mood of a brooding library. By nightfall the personality of the hallway changed
completely. Except for the rare occasions when its chandeliers were lighted for a grand ball, its only light
came from two giant fireplaces at either endor from the moon through the windows.
Pelmen and Serphimera stood gazing out at the hills. With their coats of fresh snow, those peaks seemed
to glow, reflect-ing back the moon's pale light. The view gave rise to thoughts of warmth and rest and
security. It certainly was no invitation to travel. Yet that's what they discussed. Pelmen sighed and turned
away from her. "Why, Serphimera?" he asked. "It's hopeless, don't you see?"
At that moment Mar-Yilot walked into the hall and smiled her most cheerful, cynical smile. "May I share
your despair?" she asked. Her spirits seemed improved over the afternoon, but it was well that Rosha
wasn't present. She didn't forgive easilyand certainly not this quickly. "What's hopeless?" she asked.
Pelmen was not inclined to respond, so Serphimera did. "I have had a vision, my Lady, of Pelmen and
myself going to the mountain. We're trying to interpret our purpose and whether these crystal pyramids
play a part."
"What mountain?" Mar-Yilot asked, wrinkling her nose.
"I don't know," Serphimera said with a slight smile. "Pelmen thinks he does."
When Mar-Yilot turned an inquiring look on him, Pelmen explained, "It's a mountain in the North Fira
mountain where... the Power is." He appeared unwilling to say the words, conveying by his manner that it
was a long story and he'd rather not go on.
Mar-Yilot raised an eyebrow. "The Power. Is it always there?"
"Each time I've passed it." Pelmen nodded, looking out the window.
"And what do you think you'll be doing there?" Mar-Yilot asked.
Pelmen shrugged and explained, "It was there Sheth met with the men of faith and refused their
contribution to the crystal weapon."
Mar-Yilot frowned, as he'd known she would, and said, "This is a story I don't know."
"I didn't know it eitheror rather, only a partuntil I had a conversation with the Imperial House of
Chaomonous."
Intrigued, Mar-Yilot gestured for them to sit in the com-fortable chairs before one of the large fireplaces;
she settled back in one herself to listen. Syth stepped in a few minutes later and joined them, but he didn't
interrupt, for Pelmen had already begun the tale.
"This all happened centuries ago. At that time there was only one land, spreading from the sea on the
east to the high
plains of Ngandib, and from the cold wastes of northern Lamath to the spice islands south of
Chaomonous. A mighty land, obviously, but perhaps a bit too big, for it began to crumble from within.
There were those who shaped the powers, then as now. Others were in contact with the one who made
all things, the One we call the Power. Still others scoffed at the thought of any powers beyond those of
man, and set about to study the world in order to prove such. I suppose there had always been these
groups, but they'd all been able to live together before. Gradually, however, that became impossible.
They warred on one another, and the land was split into frag-ments.
"Certain leaders devised a plan they hoped would unite the One Land again. They thought that if there
was only some overpowering threat which would demand the cooperation of all men, the race would be
knit together once more. At least, that's the reason they gave for the making of Vicia-Heinox."
"Vicia-Heinox?" Mar-Yilot interrupted. "They made the dragon?"
"They didand loosed it upon the world. Fields and vil-lages were burnedwhole nations, in fact,
were destroyed, with names that would surprise you"
"Surprise me!" Mar-Yilot pleaded, clapping her hands in fascination.
"Yes." Syth smiled. "What names?"
Pelmen looked into the crackling fire. "Ever heard of the nation of Arl?"
"Arl? You mean there was once a country down around Arl Lake?" asked the sorceress.
"It was the grandest of the remnants of the One Land, and it stretched from north of the High Plateau to
the borders of what is now Chaomonous."
"But the great South Fir" Syth began.
"It wasn't there," Pelmen said. "All that region was occu-pied. The dragon burned Arl awaythe forest
grew in its place." He paused for a moment before going on. Mar-Yilot sat entranced, delighted by the
story. "The lands did not unite. But certain individuals did. A weapon was devised, fashioned of six
diamonds, each shaped into three-sided pyramids and filled with magical power. The shaper named
Sheth was ap-pointed to meld them together and pass them on to the men of
faith, but he changed his mind. He tried to attack Vicia-Heinox by himself."
"What happened?" Mar-Yilot asked breathlessly.
"Well, we know he lost." Syth shrugged, but his wife hushed him.
"Indeed he lost," said Pelmen. "The weapon was shattered again into the six diamond pyramids. The
One Land has never been united. And the dragon has been with us ever sinceor at least, until very
recently."
Mar-Yilot looked thoughtfully at him. "Then these things your foolish friends were talking through are
really parts of an ancient weaponand you're contemplating remaking it and turning it on Flayh."
Pelmen nodded. "But it's hopeless. We could gather these pyramids, but that would leave three parts of
the weapon still missing. What possible good would that do?"
"You say these crystals are cut from diamonds?" Syth asked. When Pelmen nodded, he said, "In my
vaults are diamonds beyond your imagination. Huge stones, many of them still uncut. We can cut you
some more pyramids, Pelmen. How would that do?"
"Thank you, Syth, for your offerand who knows? Perhaps these that exist came from such an offer
from your ancestors. But it's not much help, I fear. There's magic in these three pyramidsshaping
beyond my imaginationplus contribu-tions of skill in calibrating the exact cuts that would tax the most
gifted of your jewelers. No, I'm afraid it's hopeless."
"Then why do we have these three?" Serphimera asked simply.
"We don't," Pelmen grunted. "We have one. Erri has the second, and I don't know where he is. I know
where Bronwynn is, but the Golden Queen is headstrong in the best of times, and these are, for her, the
worst. There's no assurance she'd surrender the pyramid she possesses."
"But there's a chance," Serphimera said quietly.
Pelmen looked at her, frowning. "Do you want us to go up that mountain? Thinking as you do?"
"Oh, Pelmen," Serphimera said, and there was more passion in her voice than Mar-Yilot or Syth had yet
heard from her. "What does it matter what I want? And if I've seen it, and it's to be, how shall we set
about preventing it? There is a chance,
Pelmen. Perhaps it only appears such to usperhaps the task is hopeless. But this is the pathway that
lies open. This is the light we have."
Pelmen leaned back in his chair and gazed again out the window. "That path looks far from open to me."
"What do you need, Pelmen?" Syth asked. "What can I help you with?"
The weary powershaper turned his eyes to meet the gaze of this new friend, and said quietly, "Horses.
And a map."
"A map!" Mar-Yilot snorted. "What do you need with a map of the Mar! You know these lands like
a"
"He means a political map, darling," Syth interrupted. "The fastest, safest route to Dragonsgate. Am I
right?"
Pelmen nodded.
"How did you know what he meant?" Mar-Yilot demanded.
Syth ignored her and went on, "My best horses are in Ser-iliath, but I have steeds here good enough to
get you there in a day. There you'll pick up my fastest mountsI'll send you with letters, but my stable
master will know them already. And these will be strong enough to make Dragonsgate in four. What are
you thinking?"
Pelmen had gone glassy-eyed. Syth's question startled him back into the present. "I was just
remembering a horse 1 used to ride. Minaliss, I called him, because he had shoulders of steel. I wish I
had him here."
Syth shrugged. "Perhaps in four days you'll feel the same about mine."
Pelmen grinned. "Maybe I will, at that."
"As to routefirst to Seriliath, of course. Then to Tuckad's castle just inside the western edge of the
parks region. Tuckad's dead, but his family is for us. You can carry a message to them from me." Pelmen
nodded. "As to the third nightwell, we've no allies in the Westmouth region. At least, none that far
north. If you want to go south to the Hanni house on the plain"
"Too far south, and I make it a practice to stay out of debt to merchants."
Syth nodded. "As I thought. One night of camping then, and the next day you should reach
Dragonsgate."
Pelmen got to his feet. "It's late," he announced. "And tomorrow we'll be leaving early."
Mar-Yilot frowned. "We just got here! Do you think you're well enough to travel again so quickly?"
Pelmen looked at Serphimera. "I feel better now than I have in months."
"Ah." Mar-Yilot nodded. "I'd forgotten your wife was a healer."
Syth stood up and offered his hand. "Pelmen, you've long been an adversary. I like you better as a
friend." They gripped hands, then Syth stepped aside and looked at Mar-Yilot, who'd gotten up to stand
behind him.
At that moment the sorceress looked like a timid teenager very thin, very awkward. Without looking
at Serphimera, she suddenly stepped up and slipped her arms around her old en-emy's neck. "I don't
know anything about this Power business or what it is you're actually doing," she whispered. "But be
careful! This dog is dangerous!" Then she pecked Pelmen on the cheek and quickly left the room.
Stunned, Pelmen looked at Serphimera, who raised an eye-brow. "Perhaps I'd better be careful too,"
she said frowning mockingly. Then she smiled.
Pelmen was entranced again by her beauty. "I don't think you have anything to worry aboutwife."
She lowered her eyes. "I'd like to be that."
He nodded curtly. "All the more reason to get to Erri as quickly as possible." He embraced her and
kissed her hair, then said, "Go on and get your rest. It will be a hard ride tomorrow."
He was right. It was. But by evening of that next day they were resting comfortably in Seriliath. There
were some har-rowing escapes. There were times of icy silence, for they both still held dark secrets from
one anothertrying to save each other from the coming grief. Yet the hours passed swiftly; regardless of
what they faced, they were at last together.
The tugoliths enjoyed the snow. They were northern animals from wintry climes, and the deep drifts
prompted them to dance and frolic. Even the disciplined Chimolitha couldn't resist an occasionally
spontaneous romp off of the roadway. At those times she seemed totally oblivious to Pezi's strangled
screams.
Pezi had taken it all rather badly. He'd always judged snow to be a good thing to be out of and a bad
thing to be out in.
When the white flakes began drifting out of the sky, he'd eyed them suspiciously and had politely
requested that they go fall on someone else. When they grew in size and began dropping in eager clumps,
Pezi had started cursing them. Not long there-after, he'd begun to feel that peculiar tickling in the back of
the throat that heralded the onset of a cold. His curses had turned to pitiful moans; as the afternoon
plodded on, and he'd started to sneeze. He began to picture himself as chief among the wretched of the
earth. Soon he was weeping and gnashing his teeth. That first night, as the herd had grouped together to
sleep under a stand of leafless trees, he'd huddled in his fish-satin tent and shivered in misery. When
they'd started out again the following morning, Pezi began enumerating his troubles to his stolid, sensible
steed. He'd been at it ever since.
Chimolitha ignored him. She viewed Pezi as she might a sore in an unreachable spot. He was a nuisance,
an irritation, but she was sure she'd be healed of him eventually. Until then, she pressed on through the
snow, enjoying the way it crunched between her massive toes.
Four days after leaving Dragonsgate, the column of saucer-eyed monsters came within sight of the High
Plateau. Pezi exhorted them to move faster, but Chim refused to be hurried. She held to that same steady
pace she'd maintained throughout the journey, and they came inexorably to the foot of the Down Road.
There the gigantic beast stopped.
Pezi brushed the icicles from his runny nose and gazed upward in dismay. "Oh, no!" he moaned,
distraught. "It's blocked!" For days he'd been able to maintain his hold on Chim's horn only by imagining
his triumphal entry into the High City. The acclaim! The honors! The food! Now his dream was
shattereddelayed, anywayand Pezi was heartbroken. This was the last straw, the final indignity, a
gratuitous kick in the groin from the same sadistic powers of nature that had dogged his steps for the last
two years. It was just too much. Pezi clung tightly to Chim's horn, and sobbed.
Chimolitha rolled her giant eyes back to look up at Pezi curiously. She didn't like this fat fellow, but she
did understand tears. And Chimolitha, for all her tough old hide, was the most soft-hearted of tugoliths.
"Don't cry, Man," she said quietly. "I'll go up." She lowered her head and wedged her long snout into the
snow that had drifted against the cliff face. Then she started forward, and upward. She pushed a mound
of snow before her, and the higher she climbed the larger it got. Soon a part of it began dropping down
off the road. Chimolitha was using her body as a plough.
If she expected any thanks, she didn't get it. Not that Pezi wouldn't have felt grateful if the circumstances
had been a bit different. But since he sat astride her horn, and her horn was just above her nose, and it
was her nose the tug was using as the point of her wedge, Pezi suddenly found himself buried under a
suffocating blanket of snow. "Wait!" "Stop!" "Help!" he cried whenever he could spare enough breath to
do so. That was infrequently, however, and it was many minutes before he could get the well-meaning
beast's attention long enough to get her to stop.
Chimolitha rolled her eyes up to look at him again and petulantly explained, "I'm going up."
"But I'm going under! Can't you let another tug go around us and" Pezi's words froze on his lips as he
caught a glimpse of the valley below. There was no need for the tug to answer his question. She clearly
took up all the road between the mountain and the dropoff.
"I can't go back," she explained unnecessarily.
"No! Don't try!" Pezi said quickly as he sat licking his lips and reviewing his options. Then he had it.
"Why don't I just climb over your back and get onto the tug behind you?" he asked.
The question startled Chim, and her eyes grew wide. Was she supposed to know the answer? "I don't
know," she said anxiously. By that time Pezi was already clambering over her backby no means an
easy task for a man of his ample girth.
Then he stopped. He'd suddenly found a very good reason why he ought to stay put right where he was.
Thuganlitha smiled up at him wickedly and said, "Ride my horn!"
It was a cold, breathless ride to the top of the Down Road, but Pezi clung tight to Chimolitha's tusk and
he made it. Sud-denly they burst through a drift into a cleared area, scattering a half dozen
shovel-wielding slavers in the process. Two men were so shocked by the abrupt appearance of the
beasts that they cast themselves off the precipice and were never seen again. The rest had plenty to talk
about at supper.
Pezi and his column garnered few cheers but plenty of awed
stares as they moved up the main street toward the High For-tress. At least part of Pezi's dream came
true, however. Once inside, he quickly found his way to a table, and a platter of hot, steaming meat was
set before him.
The only trouble was, he couldn't taste it. His nose was stopped up. He wrestled with severe depression
over that, but did manage in spite of his despair to clean the plate, refill it, and clean it again. It had been a
very long time since he'd had a decent meal, and he wasn't about to let a head cold interfere any more
than was necessary.
When he rose, he still wasn't quite satisfied. However, there were matters of great importance that he
needed to tend to. Besides, suppertime was not that far off.
He waddled importantly along the corridor leading toward Flayh's tower and started up the steps past
the guard.
The little man leaped nimbly to his feet and blocked the stairs. "Are you crazy? You can't go up there."
Pezi stepped back, propped his hands on his fat hips, and snarled, "And just what is going to stop me?"
"This might," Tibb grunted, and Pezi noticed that there was a dagger blade scarcely an inch from his
navel.
"Oh," he said. He took a generous step backward.
"The question is, why would you want to?" Tibb asked as he sheathed his knife and sat back down on
the step. "Do you have any idea what he's like?" Tibb jerked his head meaning-fully up the ascending
spiral.
"Why, indeed I do! He's my uncle!"
"Oh," Tibb said. It was his rum to be surprised.
Thinking that had settled the matter, Pezi again started up the steps past Tibb, and once again stopped
abruptly. The dagger was out and aimed a little lower this time. Pezi stepped backwardquite quickly
for such a tubby man. "You're very quick with that thing," he harrumphed.
"I practice a lot."
"Why can't I see my uncle?"
"Flayh's orders. Nephew or not, no one goes up those stairs until Flayh's summoned him."
"How can he summon me if he doesn't even know I'm here?" Pezi thundered.
A chill ran up his back as a steel-cold voice behind him answered, "He knows."
Pezi choked and turned around very slowly. One glimpse was plenty to assure him of the speaker's
identity, and he gulped and quickly looked away.
"Are those your beasts in the stable?" Admon Faye asked flatly, and Pezi nodded. "Then get down
there. One of them's out of control."
"Thug!" Pezi yelped and he started rumbling down the dark hallway. Admon Faye met Tibb's eyes and
smiled disdainfully. Then he turned and followed Pezi toward the stables. When the slaver reached the
wooden landing above the cavern, Pezi was already halfway down the stairway. Pezi stopped there, and
looked tentatively downward, ready to climb back up at the slightest hint that Thuganlitha might charge
him. "Chi-molitha!" he squawked. "Can't you do something?"
Chimolitha watched as Thug demolished a third stall in search of something to eat. She thought a
moment, then an-swered, "Yes."
There was a loud crash as Thuganlitha splintered the timbers of a fourth stall with his horn. Pezi stared,
dumfounded. Then he shouted, "Well then, do it!"
Chimolitha looked mournfully up at Pezi and asked, "What thing shall I do?"
"Stop him!" Pezi screeched. "Stop him from destroying this castle!"
"Oh," Chim said, understanding at last, and she looked sternly at Thuganlitha. "Stop it," she ordered.
Thug paused in the destruction of a nearby hay wagon, and looked at her. "Why?" he growled.
Chimolitha rolled her eyes back up at Pezi and repeated the question. "Why?"
"Because it isn't nice!" Pezi trumpeted and he stamped his foot. That wasn't smart: The stairway was
unstable, and he was inordinately heavy. Thirty feet below him an enormous horned monster scowled up
at him in frustration. The stairway shook, and Pezi quickly grabbed the railing to steady himself.
"Why are you angry?" Admon Faye asked calmly, looking directly into Thuganlitha's eyes.
The tugolith was surprised, and the reaction showed on his massive features. He thought for a minute,
then rumbled, "I'm hungry!"
Admon Faye nodded and said, "Fine. What would you like to eat?"
Thuganlitha filtered the question through his tiny brain, then a wicked gleam came into his eyes and he
turned his gaze on Pezi. He grinned. "Him."
Admon Faye leaned his head back and laughed, long and loud. Then he turned to smirk at Pezi.
Pezi gasped and shouted, "You wouldn't dare!"
"I wouldn't?" Admon Faye asked coldly, and Pezi trembled at his poor choice of words. Everyone knew
Admon Faye would dare anything. The slaver turned and looked back down at the curious, upturned
faces of the tugoliths. "It's tempting, Pezi, but I'll wait. You want meat, my friend? I'll send you some
meat." He walked away to give the order.
The slave pit was overcrowded anyway.
Frost formed high on the windows. It was cold outside, but the air was clear, and the sunlight bouncing
off the snow-clad hills made them far too bright for the eyes. Rosha drank from a steaming cup and
gazed beyond them at the rich blue of the sky. Syth sat beside him, his feet propped on a short table, a
heavy book in his hands. There was no sound in the room save the crackling logs in the fireplace and the
occasional whisper of the turning of a page.
"Where are they, do you think?" Rosha murmured.
Syth looked up from his reading, did some silent calcula-tions, and said, "North of Wina's eastern castle.
I hope." His eyes dropped back to the page.
"1 should have gone with them."
Syth glanced back up at Rosha's face, then closed his vol-ume and laid it on the table beside his feet.
"Why?" he chal-lenged.
"You know why."
"No, I don't. It made absolute sense for you to remain, none at all for you to go with them. You were
exhausted"
"So was Pelmen."
"and in need of a healing Serphimera's hands couldn't provide." Syth raised his eyebrows. "Pelmen's
wounds were physical, yours of a different variety."
"What wounds?" Rosha grunted.
Syth gazed off at the distance himself and folded his hands
across his stomach. "It's no shame for a warrior to admit pain. Especially not psychic pain. You've lost
your father. You're estranged from your lover. And, unless I miss my guess, you fear you've lost your
nerve."
"What do you mean!" Rosha growled, almost coming out of his seat.
"What I said." Syth met Rosha's eyes with a frank stare. Embarrassed, the young man looked away.
Then he seemed to melt backward into his chair, as if all the stiffness had suddenly gone out of his bones.
"How did you know?" he murmured.
"Given your recent experiences, how could you feel oth-erwise?" Syth asked. "All you've attempted
since leaving Chaomonous has gone badlyor so you believe. You count yourself responsible for your
father's death and for the near death of your mentor. You found yourself lured into a magic trap and
experienced the humiliation of discovering your own naivete. And then you were rescued by a woman."
Syth smiled, more to himself than at Rosha, as if he found his recitation of Rosha's difficulties privately
amusing. In fact, he smiled at how nearly the young man's circumstances matched his own. "Now I think I
might have an insight some others may not haveperhaps not even your friend Pelmen. Then again, he
may, knowing Serphimera. For you see, on more than one occasion, I've been rescued by a woman-a
woman more powerful than myself. And such exploits just don't sound manly when recounted around a
campfire." Syth now let his smile surface, and its warmth broke through the barrier of Rosha's distrustful
frown. "You left your woman to prove yourself a man in the Mar. Now she's chasing you here,
commanding a force the likes of which you could never muster. And you've found in addition to all of that
that she can shape the powers." Syth grinned. "That can't help but make a man feel a bit inadequate.
Believe me, I know."
Rosha nodded and half-smiled. Then he grimly studied his hands. Syth had touched a part of his trouble,
but not all.
Now Syth leaned back in his chair and laced his hands behind his head, gazing at the dark wooden
beams that sup-ported the ceiling. "But what's really bothering you is the reality of failure." Rosha made
no response, so he continued, "We build such high opinions of ourselves. We believe we're capable of
anything. Who knows, maybe we are. But then the doubt sets inand after that the dread." Syth turned
his head and stared at Rosha until the young man was forced to look at him. "I know a great deal about
dread as well."
"That was a spell!" Rosha protested.
"And yours isn't?"
"If it is, no one's cast it upon me but me."
"Perhaps." Syth nodded. "Then again, I can't be sure anyone cast mine upon me but me, either."
"Don't tell me that," Rosha grumbled. "You had a dread spell cast upon you by Flayh himself. And it
didn't hit just youit froze a peasant family too!"
"You heard about that? By the way, they're all right now. Serphimera apparently visited them too."
Rosha nodded, barely interested. "But that still doesn't explain why the spell worked. What gave it its
force?"
Rosha frowned. "I don't know. Magic."
Syth nodded. "Powers. Shaped powers. And what could end it?" Rosha shrugged. "This one your
friends call the Power. And me."
"You?"
"Surely. I played a part in my own healing. I had to will myself to see past my own failure, past the loss
in battle of so many men who'd trusted me, past the real possibility of Flayh's ultimate victory in this
struggle, and past the inevitability of death itself, which seems like some kind of personal failure to so
many of us. I can fail, Rosha. So can you. Why should we live in fear of proving what we already know?"
Rosha frowned out the window. "Isn't that admitting weak-ness?"
"Certainly." Syth shrugged. "But it's also an admission of fact. Our wives know it already. So do our
friends. Nor does such an admission mean we have no strengths." Syth turned his gaze on this island that
was so precious to him, and his teeth clenched together. His eyes smoldered with a resolve that reminded
Rosha of Dorlyth as he said, "Just because we're outnumbered, outflanked, and probably outguessed as
well, doesn't mean we can't give the dog a fight. And we will. We'll find all the allies we canBelra's
army, the Golden Throng, Pelmen's blue-clad initiatesand somehow we'll get into"
He stopped suddenly, eyes on the window, a frown of concern on his face.
"What?" Rosha said, equally concerned, and he leaped up to gaze out the window himself.
"Not there," Syth grunted. "There!" He wheeled around and pointed up toward one of the beams. He'd
caught a reflection in the glass of the purple shell of a sugar-clawsp. "Mar-Yilot!" he shouted as he
grabbed up his book and launched it at the insect. "Mar-Yilot, come now!"
The sorceress sprinted into the hall. Her golden eyes were wide as she shouted, "What is it!"
"There's a clawsp in here!"
'Terril!" Mar-Yilot yelled without hesitation, and she hurled a ball of flame in the direction Syth pointed.
The clawsp was in the air by now, buzzing wildly around the room as the three of them pursued it. "Take
your proper shape and do battle!" Mar-Yilot screamed, but the insect ignored her as it swooped from
one side of the hall to the other. Syth had retrieved his book and now he threw it again. He'd aimed
poorly, however. It missed the clawsp and shattered a window. Immediately the insect doubled back and
out the broken pane. An instant later the butterfly sailed out behind it, and both were lost to the sight of
the two earthbound warriors. They pressed their noses to the glass anyway. They saw nothing.
Several minutes later Mar-Yilot darted back in the broken window. She dropped to the carpet in her
human shape, and Syth and Rosha waited as she caught her breath. She shook her head and frowned;
words were unnecessary.
"So the dog has his spies amongst us." Syth frowned. "We gave nothing through that conversation, since
as yet we've no plans to reveal. But we must watch ourselves in the days to come. We need to be careful
of lizards, too," he added, and Mar-Yilot nodded curtly.
Rosha glanced around the floor, alerted now for anything. He was still but a hapless warrior among the
wizards, and the prospects chilled him. Even so, the freedom to admit his fear somehow loosed him from
feeling it so strongly. He wanted to talk with this Syth further. Perhaps the man could help him find Rosha
again.
Tibb marched down the Down Road behind the horse of Admon Faye. It had amused the slaver to
position him here; as they descended from the High Plateau, Admon Faye called back mocking
encouragements. Tibb expressed no resentment. He pretended not to notice that he was the only slaver
who wasn't mounted. The insult rankled, but he saw advantages in being a walker rather than a rider. He
cared nothing about the outcome of the coming battle. Since it would be the riders who would attack
Belra's force while the foot soldiers blockaded the foot of the road, there appeared to be little chance he
would be drawn into action. It wasn't that he was cowardly. His personal vengeance was simply more
important to him than a victory for his employers. He intended to survive. He had every reason to expect
that he would.
Poor Pezi had no such guarantee. Admon Faye had forced him to mount Chimolitha and lead the march
down to the plain. The fat man had at first refused, but when the slaver had threatened to let Thuganlitha
have him, Pezi had quickly climbed astride Chim's horn. He'd evidently not resigned himself to his fate,
however. Tibb could hear Pezi's anguished pleadings from way back here.
Occasionally, Tibb glanced over the dropoff at the wide expanse of empty, white landscape. Quite
suddenly, however, it was no longer empty. Out of nowhere, an army suddenly appeared. "Look!" he
grasped, pointing down in excitement. Admon Faye casually turned his head and looked downward.
"What about it?" the slaver called back scornfully.
"It's an army!"
"Of course it's an army. Did you think we were out marching just for exercise?"
"But it just appeared!"
"That's right," Admon Faye responded calmly. "Which sim-ply means Joooms has done his job."
"Joooms?" Tibb said, and Admon Faye craned his neck around to regard Tibb with disdain. Then he
seemed to re-member something and nodded.
"That's right. I'd forgotten you were Lamathian born. Never been in a war with shapers, little sneak?"
"Never," Tibb grunted.
"Mercenary cutthroats, most of them," Admon Faye sneered. He took pleasure in regarding others as
poorly as he did himself.
"Look at those fools with him down there, believing themselves to be invisible, watching us descend and
expecting to surprise us. They don't even realize they're uncovered."
"I don't understand. Why is their shaper betraying them?"
"Because we have his family."
"Where are.. .oh." Tibb nodded. The slave pit truly was filled to overflowing.
"Joooms should be grateful." Admon Faye shrugged. "Belra's paid him a fortune and won't live to collect
a refund. Pezi, stop shouting! We're almost to the bottom of the hill."
Indeed, Chimolitha was shuffling down the last of the in-cline. The slaver had already explained very
carefully to the beasts that they were to do exactly as Pezi commanded, or he would punish them. For
some reason, Admon Faye had been able to communicate that order in a way that had gotten their
undivided attention. When Pezi leaned down to Chim's huge left ear and said, "Turn toward this side,"
she moved left without hesitating. The other tugoliths followed her, maintain-ing a neat, orderly line. As
soon as the last of the tugs was off the road and the riders began to form their ranks on the right flank,
Pezi leaned back toward Chim's right ear and said, "Now turn this way." She turned to face the army of
Belra, and the others followed her example. By then the cavalry was in place. Tibb stood beside Admon
Faye's stirrup, listening to his ugly master berate the enemy:
"Look at Belra theresee him? Red mustache, blue and white armor? Sitting there in his saddle, so
arrogant! He hasn't even deployed his force, you see? He thinks he's still invisible. He expects us to
march right past him, then in turn he will march up the road and take the city without a fight." Admon
Faye grinned, and looked down at Tibb. "He's a fool to side against me, Tibb. Any man who sides
against me is a fool."
Tibb wondered if that was aimed specifically at him, but Admon Faye interrupted his thoughts. "Look
there, next to BelraYou see the dark man? That's Joooms. Watch him!" Admon Faye's fist suddenly
shot into the air. Tibb jumped, for Joooms had suddenly disappeared. At that moment it ap-peared that
Belra suddenly realized he'd been betrayed, for Tibb heard him bellow with rage. "Now!" Admon Faye
com-manded, and the riders charged.
"Kill those men!" Tibb heard Pezi shouting at the tugoliths.
Like children released from school, the beasts cried aloud in glee, and barrelled forward. Not, however,
before Pezi threw himself backward off Chimolitha's horn, begging the powers to let him land in a
snowbank instead of under Chim's trampling feet. He got his wish. Throughout the course of the battle,
Tibb could hear Pezi giggling joyfully.
A dreadful slaughter ensued. It became apparent immedi-ately that the tugoliths would beat the riders to
Belra, and Admon Faye wisely turned his cavalry aside and drew them up to watch. The tugs danced
and gamboled gleefully across the snow, then plowed into their horrified enemies with the crunch of
breaking metal. A few of Belra's followers had the good sense to wheel their horses right then and take
flight. Those who didn't, out of loyalty, bravery, or simple indecision, were spitted on the tips of tugolith
horns. Thuganlitha had thoroughly enjoyed his feast of slave flesh. As a result, many of his victims were
quickly consumed. Chimolitha tossed Joooms's mount casually aside, charging onward through the ranks.
Riganlitha trampled Belra, leaving the shreds of his broken body in the snow. He had been a noble
warrior and a decent citylord and had always expected to die in battle, but not like this, certainly. Never
like this.
Tibb watched it all, astonished. He was admittedly a rogue, a brigand. Even so, the savagery of this
attack appalled him. Moments later, as the mounted slavers returned to the base of the road and started
back up to safety, Admon Faye reined in beside Tibb and booted him lightly in the back. As Tibb
tum-bled into the snow, the ugly slaver cackled and asked, "What do you think of your master now, little
sneak?"
"You know what I think of you," Tibb muttered as he got to his feet, brushing the white powder from his
cloak. "Not that it matters." He pointed out at the tugoliths and asked, "What are you going to do about
them?"
The encounter had been briefevidently too brief, in the estimation of the tugoliths. Several of them still
frisked around playfully among the carnage, but once all the horses and men were down, the game lost
much of its appeal. Admon Faye took all of this in and murmured, "They're in a dangerous state, aren't
they. Any suggestions?"
"None that would please you," Tibb grunted, and Admon Faye laughed again.
"Better get up the road, little sneak," he suggested. "Unless you wish to be squished." Then he spurred
his horse forward. The animal was most unwilling; but, after it felt the spurs again, it trotted toward the
vast patch of red-stained snow. Admon Faye smiled broadly and looked directly at Thuganlitha. "Did
you enjoy that?" he called brightly.
"Yes!" Thug answered enthusiastically, and all the others agreed that they had enjoyed it, too.
"You want to do it some more?" he asked, his tone that of a teacher inviting her tots to learn a new
game.
"Yes!" they said, almost in chorus.
"Very good! About a mile over that way is a castle. Karri lives there. We don't like Kam," he said with a
scowl, and he got some sympathetic scowls back. "Let's go knock down Karri's castle and eat him!"
"Hurray!" The tugoliths all cheered and they frolicked away in the direction of Kam's castle.
Tibb watched them go and shook his head. He didn't know Kam, but he pitied him. Then he started up
the Down Road, making a point of avoiding Pezi, who also climbed it on foot. He wanted a chance to
think through what he had seen.
A few hours later, the House of Kam no longer existed. The tugoliths thought it was all great fun.
CHAPTER THIRTEEN
The Battle of Dragonsgate
Midmorning on the fifth day after leaving Sythia Isle, Pelmen and Serphimera rode up into Westmouth.
They were both ex-hausted. So were their horses. But anticipation of this moment had enlivened their
senses. Both were excited and mentally prepared for anything. They expected an encounter first with the
false Vicia-Heinox.
They galloped unhindered to the center of the pass, their horses kicking up the powdery snow behind
them. There they slowed to a silent stop and looked about. The pass was empty. There was no sign of
the dragon.
"He's gone," Serphimera said.
"Maybe Flayh's finally overextended himself," Pelmen re-sponded enthusiastically. "Maybe he can't
maintain the illusion any longer."
"Or maybe he's just off terrorizing our homeland," she muttered.
Pelmen looked over at her and smiled. "I thought you were supposed to be the hopeful one."
Serphimera shrugged. "You seem to be in such a positive mood today, 1 thought it might be a good
chance to let my own fears out."
Pelmen nodded, his smile dying. Then he dismounted. "We need to give these animals a rest and decide
which way we're going." He looked up and noticed she was studying him. "What is it?"
"Is Lamath your homeland? You never say."
Pelmen shrugged. "What makes a homeland? The place your mother chose to be when you were born
or your own choosing when you're grown?" He helped Serphimera dismount as he went on, "If I must
choose, 1 choose to be a citizen of the old One Land. That makes Lamath my homelandand the other
realms as well."
"Look there," she said suddenly, pointing, and he spun around. A young man robed in the gown of a
skyfaither ap-proached them timidly.
Strahn eyed them with uncertainly. He was unnerved by the dark blue color of Serphimera's habit.
Although he'd never seen either Pelmen or Serphimera, he knew them both by rep-utation and stood in
awe of them. But it didn't make sense that the prophet would send him in search of someone who was
still loyal to the dragon. "Are you... Pelmen and Serphimera?" he asked hesitantly.
"We are. Who are you?"
"The Prophet of Lamath sent me here to meet you."
"How did he know we were coming?" Pelmen inquired with a curious smile.
"I don't know." The lad shrugged. "I was going to ask you the same question. But come, we've got to
hurry!"
"Our horses are weary. They'll carry us no further without rest."
"Oh, you can't take your horses where we're going," Strahn said quickly. He glanced around the pass,
looking for some-place to leave them.
"Where are we going?" Pelmen asked.
"Up there." The initiate pointed up the eastern cliff face. He didn't notice Pelmen's gape of surprise. "I
don't know where to tell you to leave your horses." He frowned. "I don't think anyplace will be safe."
"From the dragon?"
"From the battle. You can't see the armies from here, but you can from above. The army of
Chaomonous is just entering the Southmouth. The Lamathian army marched into the valley north of us
just yesterdaythey've been trying to beat the Golden Throng here. Anyway, they should clash this
after-noonright about where we're standing."
The need for haste was evident. Pelmen led the horses to one side of the pass and hurried back, his feet
ploughing a trough through the snow. "Lead on, my friend," he shouted, and the three started their ascent
of the cliff. What looked impossible proved to be merely difficult, once their guide showed them the path.
They climbed quickly, speaking rarely. It was nearly noon and they were almost to the summit when
sunlight glinting off of metal caught Pelmen's eye. He turned around and surveyed the panorama below.
The view took his breath awayand also broke his heart. To his left, the glistening column of
Chaomonous wound proudly upward through the mountains. To his right, well hidden in the rocks of the
North-mouth, a contingent of blue-clad Lamathians waited. Expecting the Golden Throng to turn
westward toward the Mar, the Dra-gonfaithers were poised for a quick, vicious thrust into the Chaon
flank. They would be trying to divide Bronwynn's army, cutting off the retreat of the front half and bottling
the back of the column in the steep defile. Pelmen frowned in dismay. This would be yet another
senseless conflict.
"Pelmen," Serphimera called softly. "We're almost to the top."
The shaper dragged himself away from the sad spectacle
and bent his energies to finishing the climb. They found Erri waiting for them on the summit, and the
prophet and Pelmen embraced like brothers. "You did find me, didn't you?" Erri smiled.
"1 think you found us instead."
"And none too soon, by the look of things," the prophet murmured, stepping toward the edge to survey
the impending conflict. Then he looked back at Pelmen and raised his eye-brows. "Do you think we'll
win?"
"That all depends." Pelmen sighed. "Whom do you mean by 'we'?"
"It's strange," Erri said with a nod, "to find one's loyalties so thoroughly skewed by events. I spent a
good many years in the Lamathian navy, and we fought many a skirmish with golden-sailed boats. I may
know a few of those golden warriors down there, but those tiny figures in blue are my friends, my kin,
andbefore the Powermy ultimate responsibility. It's not an easy thing to wish defeat on one's own
countrymen. I do understand the necessity of it, however, if Bronwynn's shining soldiers are to win
through to battle Flayh." He glanced back at Pelmen, eyeing him keenly. "But perhaps you've come to tell
me her army really isn't needed..."
"How would I know such a thing?"
"You've come for the pyramid, haven't you?"
"Yes ..."
"You must have some purpose for it."
"Perhaps we would, if we could find the others that go with it. There were six pyramids originally, and
three have been lost for a millennium. Thus far we only have one."
"Now you have two," Erri said purposefully as he reached within the folds of his robe and pulled out the
velvet sack. "I'm happy to be rid of it." Pelmen passed the bag to Serphimera, who wordlessly hung it
around her neck, concealing it within her voluminous habit.
"Thank you for keeping it safe, my friend. I only wish I could be more hopeful about its value."
"If it's in the Power's purpose, you'll find the others." Erri shrugged, and Serphimera nodded in
agreement. "Until that happens, however, I suppose we must rely on more conven-tional means of
resistance. It appears Queen Bronwynn must have this victory."
"So it does." Pelmen grunted, gazing down at the pass. The Golden Throng had reached the center of it
now and was making the expected turn toward the west.
"I only hope it may be cheaply won. Today!" Erri an-nounced. "I pray that every Lamathian might prove
a coward and thus survive!"
At that moment the warriors of Lamath launched their attack on the unsuspecting Chaon flank. As their
blue capes furled brilliantly behind them, they looked anything but cowardly.
General Joss was no novice. He had not expected an attack from the Northmouth, but he wasn't entirely
unprepared for it. That was, after all, the way to Lamath, and he'd given most of his adult life to battling
blue-clad warriors. Had the blue riders kept silent as they started their charge, they would have met less
resistance; for, while the snow slowed their mounts, it muffled the sound of their hoofbeats as well. The
Dragon-faithers, however, roared out their battle cry. It warned Joss in time to turn his flank to meet
them.
Without hesitating, he launched a counterattack. He sent his vanguard of riders directly into the
Lamathians, breaking their charge and providing time to form the infantry into pha-lanxes. At the moment
he had far more warriors in the pass than did his opposition. If he could succeed in walling off the
remainder of the blue army, he might quickly rout them. The irony of this encounter flicked through his
mind; at long last he was meeting his ancestral enemy with a fully outfitted army, yet the tight squeeze of
Dragonsgate would permit less than a tenth of his force to participate. He'd made his reputation fight-ing
border skirmishes and longing for a pitched battle on an open field. By the choice of the enemy
commander, this was yet another border skirmish, and no one had more experience at such than Joss.
With his phalanxes formed, he sent one rushing forward to plug the gap, then closed the others behind it.
Only then did he wheel his horse to check the location of his queen.
Half of Joss's riders always led the march. It was this van-guard that now meleed the attacking
Lamathians. The other half always brought up the rear, protecting against surprise attacks from behind.
He'd positioned Bronwynn in this rear guard. He could see now that, just as he'd expected, she was
struggling to get around the foot-soldiers and ride to the center of the action. He quickly formed another
phalanx to block the Southmouth off from the rest of the pass and commanded the remainder of the
column to remain stationary. Then he with-drew behind the line and waited for the queen to reach him.
"Who is it? What's happening?" Bronwynn shouted angrily as she galloped up beside him. The line of
warriors closed tightly before them and drew taut across the Southmouth. Though they faced the
battlefield, the general's primary purpose for them at the moment was to keep the Queen from racing into
the fray. Joss had no doubt she'd do it if she could get through.
"We've been attacked by Lamath, my Lady," Joss responded calmly. "As yet there's no cause for alarm.
We're better de-ployed than they. I think they expected to surprise us, but they mistimed their charge.
They've lost that advantage now." Joss understated the case. In fact, the Lamathian assault had already
been repulsed. The clash of armies and the screams of the dying distracted Bronwynn. She clapped her
hands over her ears. Joss had long ago learned to block out those chaotic noises and he gazed
unflinchingly at the section of heaviest fighting. The blue line was bending backward. Then it broke with
sur-prising speed as three of Lamath's most stalwart attackers were abruptly cut from their saddles. Joss
said nothing, but he did permit himself a smile. That clinched it. He was certain the battle was won.
And it would have been, except for the dragon. From high in the sky there came a shriek that iced the
blood. Thousands of heads jerked upward to watch the twi-beast come plum-meting downward, and the
battle, clearly won a moment before, was suddenly clearly lost. A thunderous roar rose up through the
canyon, the battlecry of the host of Lamath, still hidden beyond the cliffs. The wall of blue riders
reformed, then re-doubled its attack, and terrorized Chaons fled before it.
"My Lady, ride to the rear," Joss told Bronwynn firmly. He now unsheathed his own sword, prepared to
die defending her escape.
"Command your army, Joss!" Bronwynn spat. "Don't try commanding me!" The young woman rose up
out of her saddle, standing in her stirrups as she faced her panicked host. "It's a lie!" she screamed. "The
dragon is dead! This is the trick of a shaped"
The noise in the pass was incredible. Few, if any, of her warriors could actually make out her words. But
the sight of their golden-mailed queen shaking her sword at the dragon shamed her men into turning
around. Once again, that small part of the Golden Throng who were actually engaged in combat faced
the enemy.
Bronwynn had rallied them; now Joss sought to direct them. That was no easy task. Ranks were
broken. The footing, already treacherous due to the snow, was growing more so with the bodies of the
fallen. He did what he could, but not without an added touch of personal bitterness. They might win yet,
he thought to himself, but now it would not be his victory.
Bronwynn cheered with pride at the effects of her words. She shouted encouragement at the top of her
lungs. But then she began to notice various golden warriors turning back to look at her expectantly. The
awesome weight of her new rep-utation dropped upon her once again. Of course! They expected her to
win the battle for them!
The dragon had not ceased its horrid screeching. It had passed down the long incline, petrifying
Bronwynn's rear guard. Now it swooped back up the same route, flying low, causing rank after rank of
golden warriors to collapse on their faces in fear. Bronwynn wheeled her horse around to meet it, her
face a mask of rage that hid the uncertainty of her heart. It wasn't that she feared this on-rushing illusion.
She feared instead trying to shapeand finding that she lacked the power.
Her hesitancy sealed her failure. The twi-beast shrieked up into her face, and she threw herself
backward off her horse. She fell in the snow uninjured, but to her watching host it appeared she'd been
knocked from her saddle. The results were calamitous. The tide of battle turned again.
From their vantage point high above the action, Erri, Pel-men, and Serphimera watched the lines surging
from one side of the pass to the other. Erri soon shouted himself hoarse and was reduced to whispering
anxious comments. They had all been cheered by the Golden Throng's initial resistance, but no one was
surprised by the dragon's appearance nor its predictable consequences. While it was hard to make out
individuals from this distance, Erri thought he could pinpoint Bronwynn, and had cackled when the tiny
figure's challenging gestures had
rallied her forces together. His eyes were still on her when the dragon-shape flashed back over her head.
Like most of her army, he thought it had knocked her sprawling. "It knocked her off!" he rasped in
shock. "The beast is substantial after all; it knocked her off her horse! Pelmen you must... Pelmen?" Erri
looked around in vain, but the shaper was gone. He fol-lowed Serphimera's pointing finger and saw a
falcon diving into the fray.
Pelmen didn't fly directly for the dragon. That would come later, when he had the attention of the
combatants. It was necessary first to grab their attention, and he did so by flying to Bronwynn. The
warriors who clustered around their dazed queen jumped back in amazement when a man dropped
sud-denly from the sky and kneeled beside her. Pelmen ignored them. "Are you all right?" he asked her
quickly.
Bronwynn's eyes widened. "Pelmen? You're here?"
"Answer me," he demanded curtly.
"I'm fine!" she blurted out.
"Then get back on your feet immediately." He didn't wait to see if she obeyed. He shot into the sky again
and circled the center of the pass three times, screeching loudly. Then he dropped to the canyon floor in
the midst of the battleand disappeared. So did the rest of the Golden Throng.
Erri grunted and looked at Serphimera. She was smiling serenely back at him. "He is rather impressive,
isn't he?" the old sailor rasped.
Serphimera raised her eyebrows. "Rather." Then she bent over to look back at the pass.
As quickly as it had vanished, the Golden Throng reap-peared. During that moment of cloaking
Bronwynn's army was unaware of what was happening, but it faced a newly stunned enemy. The
blue-robed warriors were backing away in con-fusion. Pelmen took advantage of the relative hush by
making an announcement. In a voice rich with the polished tones of the theater, he shouted: "Men of
Lamath! Your dragon is dead! If any man asks you who told you so, tell them I! Pelmen Dragonsbane!"
As if on cue, Flayh's illusion came whistling down out of the heavens. Its double-throated roar of rage
was real. It echoed Flayh's own thunderous bellow in a castle tower more than a hundred miles away.
That was quite all right with Pelmen. He now had everyone's attention and was ready to give his
dem-onstration. He shot skyward in his falcon form. This time he flew straight for the dragon.
The struggle for Dragonsgate had become a shaper battle. Yet it really wasn't a contest. Flayh was too
far away. With all his art and power, he couldn't outmaneuver an experienced wizard who was there on
the scene. All he could do was roar in frustration as the falcon flew through his illusion and emerged
above it. The spectators below stared upward in rapt silence as the falcon banked to one side and
swooped around to pierce through the dragon again. It did so a third time before another voice, if
anything richer and more mellow than even Pelrnen's, thundered, "You've heard the Dragonsbane,
cowards of La-math! Men of Chaomonous, at them again!"
No one asked who'd spoken those words. The armies simply responded to them. The Golden Throng
charged forward with a shout. The men of Lamath raced desperately for the North-mouth and the road
home. And Gerrig, who had shouted, leaned against the eastern cliff face, cackling with glee, and
congratulated himself on another fine performance.
The Golden Throng camped in Dragonsgate. The ensuing celebration made the walls of the canyon ring.
It had been a long time since Chaomonous had enjoyed such a victory certainly not in the lifetime of
any of these warriors. The fact that it had been won for them by magic stole, nothing from their triumph.
Instead, it enhanced their images of themselves as an army. The men of Chaomonous considered the
Golden Throng to be charmed. Their very location exhilarated them. They would sleep this night in the
ancient lair of the dragon, in the pass that had born the name of the twi-beast for centuries! What other
army in history could make such a boast?
While the warriors whooped in delight, their leaders re-newed an old quarrel. Bronwynn's pavilion had
been erected in the center of the pass. Within its fish-satin walls she and Joss engaged in a heated debate.
"We must go northward, my Lady! Any other move is suicidal! We have routed them today! One day's
pursuit and we could utterly destroy them!"
"I don't want to destroy them," Bronwynn said firmly. "I want to turn westward and march on Flayh's
fortress."
"Your friend Pelmen has told you of its impregnability!" Joss pleaded. "How can you turn away from a
clear-cut victory and certain conquest and march through the snow to an una-voidable defeat?"
"I've made up my mind"
"If we move west, the Lamathian army will march back into the pass and cut off our retreat. The Golden
Throng will be trapped on the Westmouth Plain. Again."
"I said I've made up my mind!"
"My Lady, consider this. Divide the force. Give me a part of it to pursue these dragon worshippers"
"You've never suggested dividing our army! You've always said there could be no quicker path to ruin!"
"Yes, my Lady, but you've shown me there is indeed a quicker pathmarching westward without
utterly destroying Lamath!"
"I will not destroy Lamath! That's final!" Bronwynn shouted.
Both she and the general were terribly shocked when a voice from just inside the doorway said, "I can't
tell you how much that relieves me."
"Who's there?" Bronwynn demanded imperiously.
"Can't you see me?" Erri asked.
Pelmen answered, "I'm afraid she can't." Then the shaper removed the cloaking spell.
General Joss already had his sword out. Now he pointed it at the four intruders and demanded, "How
did you get inside?"
"I think that's obvious," Pelmen said quietly.
"There was no need," Bronwynn snapped. "I would have let you in."
"I was certain of that. A few of your warriors, however, took offense at the garments of my friends. This
seemed the simplest solution." Pelmen spread his arms. "Bronwynn?" he asked.
Had they been alonewere she not the queenhad she not experienced shaper power that somehow
demanded she maintain her independenceshe would have run into his em-brace. Instead, she walked
deliberately across the tent and reached out her hands to take his. "Welcome, Pelmen."
"Am I?" he asked. "I fear we've intruded ..."
"You're all welcome. Erri?" She reached out with one arm and hugged the prophet warmly. "I'm glad
you're alive."
"And I'm glad so many of my people still are, despite your victory. General Joss, I hope you'll accept her
decision."
"I always accept my monarch's decisions. I don't always agree."
"Perhaps you'll eventually come to agree with her."
"Or perhaps we'll all die in the snows of the Mar," Joss replied coldly.
"If so, it won't be due to the army of Lamath," said Erri.
"You're certain of that?"
"So I believe."
Joss snorted. Beliefs were meaningless to him. Still, he held his tongue. Decorum demanded it.
Bronwynn turned to Serphimera. "He found you again, I see." She smiled. Then she looked at Pelmen.
"And you found my Rosha." Pelmen nodded. "Is he safe?"
"He was when we left."
"Then he still doesn't need my aid?" Bronwynn asked archly, her nose angled upward. She was
prepared for an unpleasant reply.
"My Lady, at this point we all need one another's aid. Whether he realizes that yet or not, he will."
"If he doesn't kill himself playing the hero," Bronwynn snorted.
"He's not playing the hero. He is a hero." These words were the first Serphimera spoke. They got
immediate attention.
"What does that mean?" Bronwynn asked after a brief pause.
"Only that Rosha is being the one he must beas you are, as Erri is, and as am I. The Power inspires us
all, yet each of us takes his own approach. We must. We're different people."
Bronwynn looked at the priestess a moment, and her expres-sion began to soften. "Then do you think
this.. .this grand march of mine... my army ... do you think the Power might have inspired it?"
"1 don't think such," Serphimera said briskly. "I know it."
Bronwynn peered at her, then looked back and forth from Serphimera's face to Pelmen's. "Really?" she
asked, her ea-gerness growing.
"When she says she knows," Pelmen murmured, "you can believe her."
"That's such a relief!" The queen sighed. "You don't know how I've battled with the fear that it's all been
a monumental
blunder! And today, just before you came, when I saw that it all would be lost" She interrupted
herself. Fixing her eyes on Pelmen. "Thank you for being here," she said earnestly. "Although I still don't
know why you've come."
"I've come to reclaim the pyramid I entrusted into your care. I think you know the one?"
"Oh, the pyramid..." Bronwynn said, as if hesitant about surrendering it. Her hesitation lasted only a
moment. "I'll get it." She walked to her bed, dropped to her knees and plunged her hand underneath it.
Her servants had found the object there when they'd broken camp that morning. They'd dutifully
re-turned it to the same spot when the tent was erected that after-noon. "Here it is," she grumbled, pulling
the blue velvet bag out and holding it up. "What do you want it for, anyway?"
Pelmen looked at Serphimera. "That's an excellent question. I only wish we knew the answer."
CHAPTER FOURTEEN
Blind Mission
'Tahli-Damen?" Wayleeth asked tentatively.
"Yes, my dear," her husband answered, with a distant for-mality that made her heart hurt.
"Why are we doing this?" She asked it simply. She did not imply that they had made a mistake, that he
was a fool, nor even that she was unhappyalthough she was. She tried to keep all those feelings out of
her voice as she asked, wishing in all sincerity for an answer that really made sense.
"Because the Power says we must."
There it was againa reply she'd heard beforea reply without substance. For although Wayleeth tried
daily, she heard no such thing from any such Power. Or, if she was hearing
the Power's voice, she certainly didn't recognize it. Her spirits sank a bit deeper. Her gaze dropped to
the snow-covered ground around them. Her eyes teared.
They rode through the Mar on horses provided by the House of Uda. Tahli-Damen had suggested it, but
only upon Way-leeth's request had the cousins now in control of the family fortune surrendered the
animals. They considered Tahli-Damen a crazy man. Wayleeth, on the other hand, had good sense. If she
felt this was the only way to care for their mentally diseased kinsmen, they would indulge her.
The horses had sped them across the countryside, but not enabled them to shake their implacable
escort. A ring of dogs still accompanied them, but they no longer took much notice. Tahli-Damen, of
course, couldn't see their black companions. Wayleeth was busy, spending the quiet hours of the ride
think-ing about past choices.
She was a dutiful wife. That's what she'd been trained to be, and she did it well. Her task had been easy
when they rode her husband's talent to prominence within the Merchant League. She'd been a gracious,
lovely hostess, always doing the proper things at the proper time. Now she traveled toward the High
Fortress at the direction of a blind fanatic who once had been her husband, but seemed no longer to
consider himself so. It made no senseand yet she did it. The question that bothered her most was not
why they rode to Flayh's castle. That she could logically attribute to Tahli-Damen's mental condition.
What she couldn't understand was why she didn't protest.
She glanced up and gasped in disgust and horror. She stopped her horse and Tahli-Damen's as well,
and sat gaping sound-lessly at the field before them.
"What is it?" he asked. When she wouldn't speak, he de-manded, "Tell me what you see!"
Wayleeth swallowed with difficulty, battling nausea. It wasn't a sight she could readily describe, but she
tried. "The snow... is churned up. It's... slushy, as if trodden underfoot by enor-mous horses. And it's...
it's stained. Bright, bloody red. There are" She gulped for breath. "bodies, frozen bodies in the
snow. Some are..." But she couldn't bring herself to tell him of the half-eaten human and equine remains
scattered before them. She struggled, but could not stop the coming of her silent sobs.
"A battlefield then," Tahli-Damen grunted, believing he understood. He couldn't understand. He couldn't
comprehend this at all. Wayleeth counted it yet another blessing of his blindness. No wonder he could be
so optimisticand so holy. "Enormous horses, you say?" he mused. "I wonder what that could be?"
Wayleeth offered no suggestions. She just covered her mourn and tried to stop trembling.
"How close are we to the plateau?" Tahli-Damen asked her.
Wayleeth took two deep breaths, bit her lips, then replied with perfect composure, "We're at its base."
"Good," her husband muttered. He dismounted clumsily.
She frowned. "What are you doing?"
"We'll walk the rest of the way."
"But"
"Our cousins told us the city is full of thieves and black-guards. Horses would make us too
conspicuous."
Wayleeth gazed down at him bitterly, wanting to shout at him, wanting to scream. How inconspicuous
did he think he could be, wearing a sky blue robe with eyeballs to match? But she didn't. Instead she
climbed down off of her horse. "It's a long way up," she muttered.
"It's early yet. We'll make it before nightfall."
"There are slavers up there."
"They'll not bother themselves with a pair of foolish fa-natics," he told her with smiling confidence.
But Tahli-Damen was wrong.
After the escape of the magical thieves, Admon Faye had publically beheaded every slaver assigned to
the Down Road on the night when Rosha had eliminated, twelve and escaped with Pelmen and
Mar-Yilot. Now the rogues atop the Down Road watched it with a vengeful care born of fear. It was
tense, yet boring work, and they laughed with glee at the diversion of two blue-clad initiates from
Lamath.
"What have we here?" One slaver chuckled as he seized Wayleeth by the collar and jerked her around
to look him in the face. "Why, it's a girl!" he whooped. "Mates, we got us a religious girl!"
"Really? Let's check!" another man cackled as he stooped to grab the hem of Wayleeth's robe and
jerked it upward.
"Stop!" she cried, struggling to hold the garment down over her.
Another group held the struggling Tahli-Damen. "This one's blind," one of them shouted.
"Let's toss him off and go play with the woman," another suggested.
They would have done so, had it not been for the dogs. They heard the snarls as the hounds bounded up
the road into their midst.
"Dogs!" one slaver shouted and he fled up the street toward the castle.
"Get away!" another rogue cried to his fellows, but his words were unnecessary. The group was already
scattered. The slavers had seen these devilish creatures before and wanted no part of them.
"Come on!" Wayleeth shouted as she grabbed Tahli-Damen by the hand. "Run, will you?" she screamed,
dragging him. They ran up the street as far as the first alley, then ducked down it, Tahli-Damen banging
against the wall of a shop in the process. She dragged him on until they came to a door, then she
dropped his hand and pounded on it with both fists. "Please!" she cried desperately. "Somebody let us
in!"
"Who is it?" a voice from within growled.
"We'restrangers. Friends!" Wayleeth amended quickly. "We're trying to escape some slavers! Help
us, please!"
There was a brief pause, then the voice grunted, "Go away!"
Wayleeth stepped back. "Go away?" she said to the bolted door in disbelief.
"Go away!" the voice yelled again, and the heavy wood did not muffle its angry, insistent tone. The
resident of the Man capital didn't wish to tangle with slavers.
Wayleeth's face crumpled, and she began to sob. She leaned against the door and cried, and
Tahli-Damen stretched his hand toward the sound to pat her comfortingly. She knocked his arm away
and scowled at him, an expression totally wasted. "Leave me alone!" she snarled.
"Wayleeth," he murmured tenderly and he tried reaching out to her again. "That was horrible, my love,
horrible. But you mustn't miss the most important thing."
"And what's that?" she snapped.
"The Power did take care of us."
She wished he could see her face, for her look expressed far more than words ever could. But he
couldn't. He gazed sightlessly toward her with a smile she was sure he meant to be encouraging, but
which struck her as merely idiotic. She leaned back against the bolted door, and thought once again
about her choices. It would all be bearable, she told herself, if oncejust oncethe Power would
address itself to her.
"Mother, can't you" Pahd mod Pahd-el began, but his mother didn't let him finish.
"I've done what I could," Chogi Ian Pahd-el answered her son brusquely.
"But she's dying!"
"That's not my fault. She ought to stop speaking against him." The heavyset woman stood by the door,
her lips pursed, her hands folded primly before her.
Pahd paced back to the bed, but not to lie upon it. He couldn't sleep, and for Pahd there was no greater
torment. His wife's condition worsened by the hour. He knelt beside Sarie and peered again into her
waxy face. Then he seized her hand and called over his shoulder, "Mother! What can I do?"
Chogi snorted. "You know what you can do. You've known all along. You've just been too lazy"
"I've not been lazy!" Pahd flared. "I've not yielded to the man because it wouldn't be right!"
Chogi arched a weary eyebrow. "Integrity, suddenly. You'll forgive me, perhaps, if I seem a bit dubious,
but I am your mother, and I know you rather well."
"He wants me to kill Maris!" Pahd pleaded.
"What of that? We've always killed Marts! It's been the family business for years!"
"Not when I rode with Dorlyth," Pahd murmured, his body stiffening with deserved pride. "That day we
killed Chaons and drove them, screaming, from our realm!"
"Dorlyth is dead." Chogi grunted. "And your wife will be soon, unless you quit spouting inanities and face
facts. Why can't you trust him, Pahd? He wants to make you the ruler of the world!"
Pahd looked at his mother with disgust, then pointed down at Sarie's unconscious form. "You can look
at that and ask me to trust this wizard?"
Chogi's eyes half closed, and her lips formed a thin, rigid line. "Trust him or don't, you either serve him or
she dies. It's your choice. She's your wife." Chogi leaned back against the door and folded her arms
across her chest. She did not fear the look of rage that turned his face scarlet. She'd seen it all his life and
knew it was meaningless.
Pahd whirled away from her, stalked to the wall, and jerked a scabbarded greatsword down off its
hanger. He buckled it on as he strode toward the door, and his mother stepped calmly out of the way.
So rarely did Pahd leave his own chambers that Chogi's guards in the outer hall almost fell over with
surprise. He ignored them, walking briskly down the steps of his tower and turning toward the tower of
Flayh.
The husky slaver on guard at the foot of Flayh's stairs insolently pulled out his sword. "You can't pass,"
the man drawled.
Pahd whipped out his blade, brought it slashing around to clash against the slaver's, and sent the man's
weapon bouncing crazily down the hall. The slaver's insolence evaporated as Pahd's sword tip danced
within an inch of his nose. "I will be king in my own house!" Pahd roared. Then he sheathed his weapon
and stomped up the spiral, leaving the guard to melt in relief against the wall.
When he reached the top of the stairs, he found that the door was already open, and Flayh was seated
in a chair, waiting for him.
"Come in! Come in!" the wizard called with a false friend-liness. Pahd stepped into the room and
slumped into the chair Flayh offered. "You're very welcome, King Pahd. I had hoped you might come to
see me."
"What do I have to do?" Pahd growled.
"Have to do?" Flayh asked. "You're the king, my Lord. You can do as you wish."
"What do I have to do to get you to release Sarie from this fever!"
Flayh frowned. "Sarie. Yes. A difficult case. I've tried to help, you know. She resists."
"Just tell me," Pahd said wearily. He slipped his greatsword from its scabbard and dropped it, clattering,
onto the flagstones. Pointing his finger toward it, Pahd muttered, "It's yours."
Flayh gazed into Pahd's face and said, "I recognize that's no mean offer."
"It's yours. All I ask is that you spare Sarie."
"I accept your offer, Pahd," Flayh said quietly. "For you
see, I need you."
Pahd snorted. "Why? When you've got monsters that squish your enemies between their toes? When
you've got slavers to slit their throats? What need do you have of me?"
"Legitimacy." Flayh shrugged. "Oh, 1 must admit, the tugoliths are rather amazing. And cute, too, don't
you think? Remarkable! Did you know that was my nephew Pezi's idea? Really amazing. These slavers,
though. Rude lot, aren't they! Terrorizing peoplethey're necessary for security, of course, but worthless
against major armies like the one that is marching to us."
"What army?" Pahd grunted. "You've smashed the last of the resistance."
"Most of it, yes. But not all. Syth still lives, as does his aggravating woman. And this nuisance son of
Dorlyth. But they're a paltry threat compared to the army that marched through Dragonsgate today."
Flayh's visage had grown stony with bitterness. "I understand you object to killing Maris. You surely
could feel no shame at the slaughter of Chaons?"
Pahd frowned. "Chaomonous? Through Dragonsgate?"
"I tried to stop them. Even sent the army of Lamath to ambush them. All to no availbecause of
Pelmen." As he said the name, Flayh's face lost all expression. His eyes, how-ever, were icy.
"A shaper battle?" Pahd asked uneasily. He loved a good fight, but shapers had a way of confusing the
conduct of battle that made him anxious.
"Of a sort." Flayh shrugged. "You don't worry about him. Concern yourself instead with the Golden
Throngand triumph."
Pahd nodded. He stooped down to pick up his sword and sheathed it as he walked toward the door.
"And Pahd..." Flayh added, stopping him. "As to Sarie well, I'll do what I can. But she must do
something as well."
"What's that?" Pahd asked flatly. He was beaten. He hadn't the energy to bridle anymore.
"Tell her to stop resisting."
Pahd hung his head. Then he sighed and left the room. Pahd knew well his limitations in the matter. He
could control his wife about as well as he could control his motherthat was, not at all. Defeated, he
made his way slowly back to his royal chambers. No one took much notice when he passed.
"We must go on," Tahli-Damen said firmly.
Wayleeth shook her head, and looked around at the circle of dogs. They sat in the frozen mud of an
alley on the eastern side of Ngandib. The gray afternoon slipped toward night, but Wayleeth would go no
further without some sign.
"Tell the Power I've got to know that too, before I'll move," she mumbled.
"I thought you did know that," Tahli-Damen answered. "Isn't that why you followed me to Lamath?"
The hint of mockery in his tone enraged her, but she wouldn't say what she felt. She couldn'tnot
without denying the things she'd avowed to Errithat she had heard the Power, that this was her
purpose as well as her husband's, and that she believed. Wayleeth sighed. Then she answered honestly,
"I thought I did too."
"What changed?" asked Tahli-Damen.
"Can't you see?" Wayleeth pleaded. Then she buried her head in her hands, silently abusing herself for
her terrible choice of words. It took several minutes for Tahli-Damen to respond.
"Of course I can't see. I'm blind, Wayleeth, and I can't appreciate any of the horrors you've described to
me over the past week. I can't see anything except a shapeless blue haze that lingers always before my
eyes. Wayleethmy dearest is it meaningless? Is all this that I've tried to do, this faith, my pilgrimage
to Erri, my missionis it all, to you, what it is to our kinsmen, the nonsensical ravings of a lunatic?
Because if it is... my darling, if it is... I'd rather die. If there is no purpose in my blindness, then I see
nothing but despair, and I'd rather die." Tahli-Damen chuckled then, and Wayleeth heard a bitter edge to
the sound that had not been there since the first days of his magical affliction.
"I don't hear daily instruction from the Power," he told her. "Most days..." He hesitated, as if unwilling to
reveal this, but then continued. "Most days I hear nothing at all. But I go on. Wayleeth, by faith I go on,
because not to go on, not to believe, is to admit I'm nothing but a stupid fool, who..." Here he had to stop
to control his own emotions. "Who, without wishing to, has led the love of his life into the darkest
possible circumstances."
Wayleeth stared at him, aware of what he was saying and wanting to reply in the most helpful manner
possible. Although he'd clung to her hand for many miles and relied upon her eyes for direction, he'd not
revealed any real need for her until that moment. Now that she understood it, she responded in the only
way a devoted wife could. She took him by the hand and pulled him to his feet, murmuring, "All right. 1
have my sign."
They walked to the High Fortress in the company of their canine comrades, who seemed to grow more
excited with every step. No one stopped them, but Wayleeth didn't view that as good fortune. She fully
expected to die within the next few moments. She thought she might prefer ending things out here in the
open rather than within that looming tower. It was not to be, however. They walked straight to the open
gate of the cavernous stable and up inside. No one guarded it, which puz-zled Wayleeth only for a
moment.
When she saw the tugolith, she realized human guards were totally unnecessary. She also understood the
enormous hoof-prints in the snow and the mangled corpses. She remembered tugoliths now; although
she'd never seen one, the merchant academies were all excellent.
The beast that walked menacingly toward them wore an extremely nasty expression. She didn't
screamshe couldn't say anything at all. Instead she clutched Tahli-Damen's arm and pointed fruitlessly.
Her husband frowned and cocked his head.
"I'm hungry!" Thuganlitha announced. Since no alarm had been given, he assumed these new arrivals
belonged here in the castle. The woman's trembling did not surprise him, since he'd grown accustomed to
humans trembling in his presence. He addressed his complaint to them, making it clear that he wanted
action immediately. It really wasn't a threat.
Wayleeth didn't know that and she shrank back in horror. Tahli-Damen, however, smiled a kindly smile
and modeled his reply after Erri. "My child, if I had anything to eat I'd give it to you. In fact, I have
nothing. I'm hungry, too."
The beast peered at Tahli-Damen as if he were crazy, then bellowed again, "I'm hungry!"
Tahli-Damen no longer smiled. "And as I said, I am hungry also. But I have a mission to perform in this
place, and it cannot be put off while I obtain food for you. You will excuse us."
Thuganlitha's enormous eyes grew bigger in surprise. Then the color of Tahli-Damen's robe suddenly
registered in his simple brain and he remembered a certain conversation with the despised Pezi on the
road. "I can eat you!" he roared in delight.
"Eat me?" Tahli-Damen snapped. "How ridiculous! That sounds like the dragon talking! Wayleeth, is the
illusion of the dragon standing before me?"
Wayleeth stammered, "N-n-no..." But she couldn't man-age to be any more specific.
"Humph," Tahli-Damen grunted, puzzled. "Well, you are obviously someone with a tasteless sense of
humor, and I haven't time for jokes. Stand aside, please. We have business within this fortress."
Thuganlitha didn't understand all of what Tahli-Damen said, but he'd gathered he'd been insulted. It
shocked him. No one spoke to him like that! "I'll horn you!" he roared, and his words thundered off the
stable's rock walls.
"That isn't amusing," Tahli-Damen scolded. "Wayleeth, lead me on into this castle."
Perplexed at having his threat so carelessly disregarded, Thuganlitha watched dumfounded as Wayleeth
hurried for-ward, hustling Tahli-Damen toward the stairway. Before the tugolith could respond, the pair
was up the stairs and out of his reach. Then his rage spilled over, and he vented it by charging the wall.
This was solid stone, chiselled from the knoll upon which the fortress rested. He could do it no harm. Yet
his impact was so great that those watching from above half expected the wall to collapse before him.
"I'll horn you!" the incensed tugolith trumpeted. Then he took up a vigil at the bottom of the stairs. His
brain was small, but some things he knew, among them that this was the only way into or out of the
castle. He'd missed homing this insulting man on the way in. He would not miss another opportunity!
Any confrontation with the tugoliths quickly drew a crowd upon the landing above the stable, and this
group murmured
with astonishment. But what startled the onlookers most was not Tahli-Damen's demeanor nor the gall of
the woman who led the blind man up the staircase without permission. Rather, it was the pack of
fiery-eyed dogs that surged up the stairs behind them. Someone raced away to inform the sorcerer.
Flayh already knew. His ever vigilant fortress had seen the dogs approaching and reported it
immediately. Flayh met the scurrying messenger in the hallway and brushed impatiently by him. "Where
are they?" he snapped, and the would-be messenger shouted some reply at his back. The wizard never
heard it. He was talking to the High Fortress.
They have followed the blind religionist toward the apart-ments of the king, the fortress wheezed in
pain.
"Why are they here?" Flayh snarled. "Why?"
The High Fortress had no answer and dared not make any reply. Flayh hurried up the wide spiral
toward the lavish bed-room of Pahd mod Pahd-el, muttering anxious curses to the walls. He stopped at
the top of the stairs. The dogs stood in the hallway outside Pahd's door, gazing at Flayh as if they'd been
waiting for him. Instantly he was a dog himself, and the ensuing conversation was carried on in the yaps
and growls of the canine tongue.
"Why are you here?" Flayh barked.
"We follow this one."
"But why?"
"Because he once carried a piece of the gate. He may again."
"That wasn't in the agreement!" Flayh howled. "You swore you would remain in Lamath and would
never return to this place!"
"We swore," one of the pack snarled, "but you swore an oath as well, and you've not kept it."
"I've not had time!"
"You've not made time! You were to gather the pieces and remake the gate! What steps have you taken
toward that?"
"I know where all of them are," Flayh said, guarding his thoughts very carefully. He was frightened, and
he didn't like the feeling. His fears were well founded. The powers he'd enfleshed as dogs could kill him if
they chose. It wouldn't do to let them know he'd lost the only pyramid he'd actually possessed.
"Where?" demanded one of the powers, thrusting his muzzle into Flayh's face.
"I know," Flayh repeated, maintaining his composure. "If , I tell you where, you must swear you will
leave!"
"Where!" barked a half dozen dogs at once.
"Swear!" Flayh snarled with authority.
Several dogs answered, "It's sworn."
"One of the objects you seek was in Dragonsgate yesterday morning, possessed by Queen Bronwynn of
Chaomonous. An-other is in Lamath, in the hands of that peoples' prophet. Now go as you've sworn!"
With a full-throated bay of the chase, the pack left the hallway as quickly as they'd come. Flayh waited
for a moment, then took his human shape once again. "Are they out?" he asked the walls.
They have left this fortress and are racing swiftly toward the Down Road, the castle said with relief.
The agony of so many powers present within its walls had been unbearable. It enjoyed the respite, but
realized it would be brief. Soon Flayh would be back in his tower, and the cancer of magical pain would
grow again.
The sorcerer swept toward the double doors of the king's apartments and slammed them open. He
pointed his hands at the two blue-robed figures and shouted, "What are you doing in my fortress?"
Terrified, Wayleeth cowered against the far wall. Tahli-Damen, however, simply turned his head in the
direction of Flayh's voice. He'd recognized it immediately, for he'd heard it often at general meetings of
the Merchant League. He'd found cause to tremble at it recently, for Flayh's ball of flame had been the
last thing he'd seen. He did not tremble now. He smiled with the grace of a man of faith, and said, "We've
come on an errand of mercy, Lord Flayh. And it appears we've arrived in time." He turned his head
toward Sarie, directing Flayh's eyes there. The wizard looked, then cursed in frustra-tion. For the first
time in weeks, Sarie was sitting up in bed.
"So," Flayh said, controlling himself enough to smile. "You're feeling better, Sarie Ian Pahd?"
Sarie stared at him woozily, trying to make out who he was. When she did, she threw her arms over her
head and screamed.
King Pahd jumped to her side, putting his body between her and Flayh.
"Come no closer," Pahd growled.
Flayh frowned. "What did you say?"
"I said come no closer! Harm her again and I'll lead no army in your defense!"
"I thought we'd settled that," Flayh murmured quietly. He turned his head and called over his shoulder to
a guard. "Fetch Admon Faye to me." Then he looked back at Pahd, whose blazing eyes bulged from
their sockets in agitation. Flayh spoke softly, almost tenderly. "You will lead the combined armies of the
Mar, Pahd, or I'll kill your wife outright. But you'll not lead them in my defense. I guess I overstated your
importance to me, trying to make you feel you had some worth. But listen, PahdI have no need of your
protection. I wish your presence at the head of my army only for the sake of convenience. If the
legitimacy of your royal claim ceases to be an asset to me, if you become more trouble than you are
worth, I'll simply replace you. Then you can spend all your time here, watching your dear wife suffer.
And she will, Pahd, I assure you she will. I thought we'd understood each other," Flayh finished sadly.
"Do we understand one another now?"
Pahd gazed at the wizard as long as he dared, but at last he had to look away. He sought support in the
eyes of his mother. She only frowned and raised her chin in contempt. He turned to Wayleeth, but saw
only terror in those eyes. There was no comfort in the face of Tahli-Damen eitherjust a sightless smile,
as if the man gazed permanently upon heavenly fields. Someone came through the door and he sought
encouragement there. He met instead the ugliest sneer in the world, and looked away quickly lest he
retch on the bed, conscious of Admon Faye's chortle. Pahd knelt beside his wife and put his arms around
her. This allowed him to hide his face in one of her pillows. There he would wait until the powershaper
left.
"Slaver?" Flayh asked. "Are your war-beasts hungry? Feed them these Lamathian fanatics. Perhaps
they'll welcome a taste of home." Then he whipped around and left the room. The appearance of the
dogs had startled him and demanded im-mediate response from him. But he had important matters to
tend toa search to conduct and a new spell to perfect. He
had no more time to waste upon such a trivial matter as Pahd mod Pahd-el.
Tibb had not seen Tahli-Damen enter the High Fortress, but he'd heard about it. Everyone inside the
castle had heard about it within ten minutes of its occurrence. The rampaging tugolith in the stables made
certain of that. When Tibb heard that the sorcerer had summoned Admon Faye to the chambers of the
king, he hustled toward Pahd's tower himself. Tibb never wanted to be very far from his hideous master.
He got to the spiral steps in time to break the fall of one of the blue-clad intruders. The man came
hurtling down the stair-way just as Tibb rounded the corner, and the two hit the stone floor together with
a noisy crash.
'Tibb!" cried the slaver in his most mockingly genteel tones. "You always arrive just in time! I fear that
poor fellow tripped upon the staircase. Do help him up, won't you?"
Tibb growled and hobbled to his feet, then grabbed the fallen figure by his tom collar and roughly hoisted
him up. He sud-denly saw Tahli-Damen's eyes and he stared.
"Recognize him?" Admon Faye called, coining on down the stairs and pushing Wayleeth before him.
When Tibb shook his head, the slaver chuckled. "No, I guess you wouldn't. You didn't join us until after
our dealings with this merchant of Uda." Admon Faye smiled at Tahli-Damen's uncertain frown.
"Flayhpardon me, Lord Flayhdidn't recognize you in there. But I did. I have a good memory for
faces." It was true. His own face was so memorable that everyone recognized him. In self-defense, he'd
trained himself to memorize the faces of others. "You used to be the ruling elder of Uda in the Mar, didn't
you?"
"Briefly," Tahli-Damen admitted.
"Until Flayh and Pelmen burned your eyeballs blue!" the slaver crowed. He made the words obscene.
Tahli-Damen didn't reply. When his mirth subsided, the slaver went on, "You caused my employer a
great deal of grief when the last Council of Merchant Elders met."
"You were there?" Tahli-Damen asked.
"Don't you recognize me?" Admon Faye asked in surprise.
"I cannot place your voice." The initiate shrugged, remind-ing Admon Faye of his blindness.
"Of course! You can't see me!" the slaver chortled. "You don't know who I am, do you?"
"I think I do," Tahli-Damen murmured. "What? Speak up!" "Could you be Admon Faye?"
The hideous brigand smiled. "I could. I surely could." The bellowing of Thuganlitha, although several
floors be-low, could now be heard clearly. The tugolith had overheard a comment made by someone on
the landing above him about blue fools, and had taken the phrase as his own. It had become a rhythmical
chant, punctuated by the stamping of his giant feet. "Feed me blue fools! Feed me blue fools!" he
shouted, over and over again. It was becoming a great annoyance.
Admon Faye shoved Wayleeth down to land beside Tahli-Damen on the floor. "It seems you're being
invited to dinner." The slaver smiled politely. "Actually, I believe it will be a rather swift passage for the
both of you, which seems somewhat unlike our Lord Flayh. He appears to have a great many things on
his mind; otherwise he'd want your killing to take more time. But since he was so explicit in his sentence
and since we do need to quiet down that racket, I'll bid you good-bye. Tibb? Do you think you can
manage to feed these two to our enormous pets?"
Tibb nodded and pulled Wayleeth to her feet. "That way,"
he grunted, thrusting the two initiates before him.
There were probably many reasons for what Tibb did next, some of which he was unaware of himself.
He hated Admon Faye, of course. He was a Lamathian and had in years past spent time on his knees
before a dragon statuea different branch of the faith from that of these light-robed fanatics, true, but in
Tibb's mind religion was all the same. He'd met and been impressed by the young woman who was now
queen of Chaomonous, and she had thought highly of people who wore these light blue robes, although
Tibb couldn't guess why. And, while some of the slavers had been amused by the antics of the tugoliths,
Tibb couldn't shake the image of that blood-stained snow from his mind. For these and other reasons,
Tibb propelled his two prisoners past the hallway that branched to-ward the stables, heading instead for
the slave pit.
"Be brave, Wayleeth," Tahli-Damen advised with that con-strained elation of would-be martyrs
everywhere. "The Power has some purpose in this." Wayleeth didn't reply, nor really even hear her
husband's platitude. She'd realized that they'd missed the turn, and was anxiously watching new
develop-ments.
' A moment later the corridor came to a dead end at a heavy wooden door. There was a key in the lock,
and Tibb turned it. When he opened the door, the stench sent the two initiates reeling backward. Tibb
reached in, grabbed two hapless figures out, then slammed the door shut and relocked it. He turned to
Tahli-Damen, seized the hem of the blind man's robe and jerked it up and off. Tahli-Damen didn't
protest; instead he murmured encouragingly, "We came naked into this world, Wayleeth. We'll go naked
out of it." Once again, Wayleeth did not reply. She'd nearly been stripped once already today, but she
had the impression that this little man had quite a different purpose.
Tibb threw the robe to one of the starving slaves he'd pulled out of the pit. "Put that on," he growled, and
the slave quickly obeyed.
Now it was clear to Wayleeth what was taking place, but she didn't explain to her husband. She feared
that if he knew, Tahli-Damen would not permit this exchange to be made. Si-lently she shucked off her
own garment and passed it to the other slave as Tibb nodded approvingly. Then the slaver un-locked the
door again, pulled it open, and started to shove the two naked initiates into the anonymous hellhole.
Wayleeth stopped him first with a question: "Why are you doing this?"
Tibb's snarling expression didn't change. "Dragon knows." He shrugged. Then he pushed Wayleeth
backward into the fetid swamp of the slave pit and slammed and locked the door.
Wayleeth sat in the black silence, listening. A few moments later the horrendous thumping and bellowing
from the stables finally ceased.
, It was a horrible place to be, but they were alive. And Tahli-Damen, who by now had pieced it all
together, said, "No, the dragon doesn't. But the Power does."
CHAPTER FIFTEEN
Dragon Dung
Pelmen and his companions spent the night in Bronwynn's gilded pavilion. They got little sleepthe
celebration outside continued until daybreak. Then too, they each wrestled through the hours of darkness
with burdensome personal concerns all, that is, save Erri's youthful companion. Strahn's merry snoring
insured that no one else would sleep.
Despite the restless night and despite the bleary eyes that greeted her when she stepped outside to meet
her warriors the next morning, Bronwynn gave the order to break camp and march toward the Mar.
General Joss stood stiffly at her side, an expression of confident obedience to his queen fixed upon his
face. Only the general himself could know if his stomach still churned with frustration. Joss would
certainly tell no one.
As the servants and soldiers dismantled their tents, Erri and Strahn made preparations to slip quietly
away. Just as they were leaving, however, Pelmen stopped them. He had Serphimera by the hand.
"Prophet, could we hold you here another moment?" Pelmen asked. Then he explained what he wanted
Erri to do.
"You mean you're not already?" Erri growled, a frown wrinkling his face. "I thought surely you'd already
taken care of that."
"We've not had the opportunity," Pelmen murmured, and his arm tightened around Serphimera's
shoulder as he added, "We might not get another chance."
Erri nodded and turned to his companion. "Strahn, go fetch the queen. I think she'll want to witness this."
The young man raced off, returning quickly with Bronwynn in tow. She did, indeed, wish to take part.
So it was, in a ceremony as simple as it was ancient, that Pelmen and Serphimera were married. In the
heart of Dra-gonsgate, at the center of the three lands, on the spot where the bloodthirsty beast that had
brought them unwillingly to-gether had died, they were wed. And when it was over, the prophet who had
linked them shuffled off to the north, and the queen who'd been their witness marched westward with her
army, leaving them alone in the pass. Pelmen and Serphimera did not feel slighted. There were important
tasks to be accom-plishednone, perhaps, more so than their own quest. They had taken advantage of
an opportunity. Now they bent their attention once again to the pyramids.
They sat on a flat rock that had been cleared of snow, near the northern cliff and the dragon's cave.
Pelmen had pulled the three crystals from their wrappings and set them before him. "Where are they?" he
murmured aloud, and all three objects seemed to glow a little brighter at his words.
"Is that wise?" Serphimera asked. "Could Flayh not be lis-tening?"
"Perhaps," Pelmen granted. "I brought them out in the hope that they might inspire us. Where can the
other three be?"
Serphimera glanced around the pass. "Hidden here, some-where?"
"In Dragonsgate?"
"Isn't this where the weapon was destroyed?"
Pelmen nodded. "But I hardly think something so large and sparkling could escape the dragon's attention
throughout a mil-lennium. He liked sparkling things anyway. That was how the merchant houses gained
his favor. They brought him dia-monds."
Serphimera nodded. While she'd worshipped this dragon throughout her whole life, she'd loved an
idealized vision of the beast. She knew little about the real Vicia-Heinox. "What did he do with them?"
Pelmen chuckled. "He liked to toss them in the air. One head would toss a diamond up, and the other
would catch it. The trouble was, the two heads kept swallowing diamonds, which is why the beast
needed" Pelmen stopped himself, his expression that of a man who's just heard a thunderclap.
Serphimera had heard it also. Without a word, they bagged up the three pyramids. Then Pelmen
stepped back away from
the cliff face, and pointed out a cave mouth some forty feet above their heads. "There," he said, and
Serphimera nodded and hoisted up her skirts to tie them out of the way.
It was a difficult climb, but they had the eagerness of in-spiration to drive them upward. Soon they were
onto the shelf. The smell within the dragon's old lair was loathsome; as they crawled inside and stood up,
Pelmen and Serphimera ex-changed looks of mutual sympathy. "How can we bear it?" she gasped.
"We'll manage," Pelmen said and he pointed to several signs of human habitation. "Someone else did." A
year before, this cave had been the dwelling place of Tibb and his unlucky companion Pinter. The
remains of their fire was visible beside the mouth of the cave.
"Are you sure they did?" Serphimera questioned. "They're not here now, are they?" She said it with a
slight smile that assured him she was teasing. She had no intention of turning back.
They both turned to face the wall of dragon dung which was the source of the horrible stench. "They
must be in there somewhere," Pelmen muttered.
"Shall we start?" Serphimera asked and they each picked up a flat stone and began to dig. The outer
layer had solidified and was hard to break through. The deeper they dug, however, the softer the
substance became. With blessed adaptability their noses became inured to the smell. Before long they
had shed every trace of fastidiousness and dug with their hands. The task was far from pleasant, yet they
were together, and there was a certain joy in that. They were soon befouled from head to foot, but since
both were in that state they were careful not to judge. And their purpose was clear. They worked with
the certainty of inspiration and the faith that they must find what they sought.
They uncovered mounds of gemstoneshuge rocks of crys-tal that, once cleaned, would sparkle like
the stars. They also found weapons, chains, helmets, and breastplatesthe undi-gested accessories of all
those the dragon had consumed. But so far they had found nothing that even resembled the objects they
needed. "It was centuries ago that he swallowed them if he swallowed them," Pelmen said. "We have
to expect they would be in the earliest layers."
Serphimera grunted agreement, preferring not to open her mouth to comment. Suddenly, however, the
wall she was work-ing at so diligently collapsed before her, and she couldn't help screaming "Pelmen!
Come here and look at this!"
"What is it?" Pelmen shouted, nearly sliding down as he scrambled over piles of dung to get to
Serphimera's side. "Have you found another one?"
"Just look!" the priestess said again, her face radiant with discovery.
The light was poor. Quickly Pelmen summoned a ball of orange flame and waved it through the hole
created by Serphimera's digging.
They both gasped. Then they plunged forward together, squirming and shoving until both wiggled
through the hole. They clasped hands, and turned around slowly, surveying the room. It, too, had been
fouled by the dragon, but that could not hide its splendor. The floor was paved with delicately painted
ceramic tiles. The walls were lined with thick, polished slabs of gorgeous marble, which reflected back
the fireballs' illumination brilliantly. The ceiling rose far above their heads and was curved like the
underside of a dome. The room was hugetwo hundred feet from one wall to the other, Pelmen
estimatedand was circular. From where he stood, Pelmen could make out three sizable corridors
angling off from it in different directions, all running deeper into the mountain. But the room's dominating
feature stood in its center. A circular dais rose on concentric marble rings to a height of thirty feet; on top
of it sat a jewel-encrusted throne. The platform wasn't fully visible. Piles of dung and hoarded treasure
hid a large part of it. But Pelmen could make out its form and knew immediately what it was. He stood in
awestruck silence, gawk-ing upward.
"Where are we?" Serphimera asked, her reverent whisper preserving the wonder of the moment.
"We're in the throne room, my love."
"Of what?"
"That's the throne of the ancient One Land."
Like excited children, they explored it. In the world outside, the sun went down, but they paid no heed
to the time. They investigated every part of the huge throne room, Pelmen stop-ping every few minutes to
read and interpret another inscription he found carved in the marble. He did so effortlessly. They were
inscribed in those same strange rune-shapes he'd learned first from the ancient book. Once they
completed the circuit, they left the throne room, intent on exploring the corridors. They soon realized this
could be an endless task. The hallways went on and on, expanding outward into still more hallways, and
those into others. Pelmen understood, now, why the capital city of the One Land had never been found.
It was a city under the earth.
They tired, eventually. Without a word to one another, they returned to one of the first rooms they'd
explored together. It was a bedroom; by the richness of the canopied trappings and the size of the
canopied bed, they'd judged it to have been the sleeping chamber of the kings. Serphimera had found a
marble tub in a small adjoining room. After experimenting with a pair of handles, she found that she could
fill the tub with water. They stripped off their stinking garments and climbed in, wash-ing the dung from
their bodies. Then they made their way to the bed. Here at long last their love was consummated. It was,
after all, their wedding night. They slept.
Tomorrow there would be more work. Somewhere near the bottom of that dung pile that obscured the
throne, they expected to find the missing pyramids. But for the moment Pelmen and his bride dreamed in
one another's arms, in a sunless realm untouched by trouble for a thousand years.
Erri hurried down the road into Lamath as fast as his legs would move him. Strahn, however, was not so
eager. That quickly became obvious. When he got ten yards ahead, Erri turned and scowled at the lad.
"What's the matter now?" he barked.
Strahn didn't look at the prophet, but rather past his head. For an answer, he pointed and grunted,
"Them."
Erri turned around and looked, and the sight startled him enough to make him jump. A line of the black
dogs stood across the base of the road, blocking them.
"I see," Erri muttered. "Well, we've been among them often enough. They ought to seem old friends by
now. Come on." Once again the short prophet barrelled forward down the hill, and the younger brother
hurried to catch up. As they approached the fearful line, Erri expected the dogs to part and make a path
for them, as they had previously done. When it became clear that this time the hounds weren't moving,
Erri slowed his pace. When they still didn't budge, he stopped. Then something happened that he had
never expected. One of the black dogs spoke.
"Where?" it rasped, its teeth gleaming.
Erri's mouth fell open in surprise, but he quickly regained his composure. These beasts had revealed their
intelligence often enough. He should hardly be astonished that they talked. "I'm going after the army of
Lamath"
"Where?" growled another dog.
"Why, I assume they're less than a day's march up the road"
"No!" barked still another.
"Where?" growled the first dog menacingly.
"Show!" howled the hound that stood beside it.
Erri didn't understand. "I don't know what you're ask-ing"
"Show!" the dog howled again and leaped forward. Erri was knocked onto his back and was set upon
immediately by a dozen dogs who snuffled down his collar and up the skirt of his robes.
"Where?" some dog demanded again, and another said, "No!" to his fellows. At last Erri began to
understand.
"If you're looking for that magical object, I no longer carry it with me!" he shouted, and the dog atop his
chest pressed its muzzle down into his face, driving Erri's head back into the snow. Fear seized the
prophet then. It wasn't the proximity of those glistening fangs, nor the shock of the beast's cold nose on
his skin. It was the bottomless fires that stood in place of the dog's eyes and which testified that this
hound was not of the natural world. ' "Where?" the slavering beast snarled.
"Halfway to the Mar, where it belongs!" Erri shouted, not really even sure what he was saying.
"Mount!" one beast barked joyously to the others. Then, with the hideous baying of a pack that has
scented its quarry, the dogs were off at a run. But they didn't dash up the road to Dragonsgate as the
prophet had expected. Instead, they took off across the frozen ground toward the northwest, loping
easily along a direct line toward the Great North Fir. Moments later Strahn was beside him, lifting Erri to
his feet.
"Thank you for your marvelous moral support!" Erri grum-bled as he straightened his garments and
brushed off the snow. If Strahn was offended, the lad didn't show it. Erri sighed and once again took off
down the road.
"Where are we going?" Strahn asked, walking beside Erri now.
"We're trying to catch up with the army," the prophet grunted.
Strahn hesitated. "The army! Why?"
"Because they're our people and they need our help. Are you coming or not?"
"I'm coming." Strahn nodded, but he made it clear by his pace that he wasn't coming very fast. Erri
ignored him, racing onward. Strahn was amazed how quickly the little man could move.
By afternoon, Erri caught up with the tail of the column. Without introducing himself, he made the
acquaintance of Agamalath. a Lamathian warrior who was as honest as he was gruff. He was bitter and
didn't mind sharing his bitterness with this strange little man who'd suddenly joined himself to their
shambling retreat. "You call this a retreat? It's flight! A rout. We've been routed! When I rode with
Asher, we were never even defeated, and now this] A rout. A humiliation!"
"1 knew Asher," Erri observed casually. "He was a good man."
"Good! He was great!" Agamalath snarled. "A great man! And we lost him to this slimy lizard. A waste!
An utter waste! Great men come along once in a generation, and to lose a man like thatBah! Who's
going to lead Lamath now?"
"That's a very good question." Erri nodded. "We've cer-tainly had pitiful leadership since the dragon was
killed."
"Prophets," the warrior said, shrugging elaborately. "What do they know about running a country?"
"Nothing." Erri grunted emphatically.
"Oh, they were well-meaning enough," Agamalath said in deference to Erri's robe, "but they were
innocents! The world is full of hard men, my friend, and do you think a handful of prophets can turn aside
all those swords just by wearing light blue robes? Not a chance. I should know."
"And I should have known, too," Erri muttered.
"What?"
"What was their biggest mistake, do you think?" Erri asked. "The biggest?" The man scratched his
beard, glanced back toward the south again, then yawned before he answered. "I don't know. Well, yes
I do. Not planning for a strong defense. You've gotta have a strong defense or the brigands of this world
will slit your throat!"
Erri pondered that. "And yet, this army was collected in a period of days..."
"Of course! We were all sitting around the bars of Lamath, waiting for some action!"
"Then it seems, had the nation been threatened, the prophet could have collected you together as quickly
as this young king did."
"Then why didn't he?" the warrior grunted. "Lamath was threatened, but no one called on us to help. A
waste. Because that boy is even less a king than his crazy father was!"
Erri squinted his eyes thoughtfully. "So what we need is a truly great kinga man like Asher."
"That's it. That's what we need. Send this boy back to his fancy estate."
"And yet you followed him," Erri said. He let just a hint of accusation creep into his voice, and it made
Agamalath squirm with embarrassment.
"Yes," he sighed, "I did. But you have to realize, that dragon's reappearance carried a lot of weight.
Sham or no sham, it was impressive."
"I saw it," Erri grunted, and the warrior looked at him questioningly. Fearing he might be recognized, Erri
deflected the man's attention back toward the dragon. "But why did everyone believe in him so quickly?
Everyone knew the beast was killed!"
"Well," the veteran sighed, "old beliefs die hard. And slowly, too. I should know! I was a fervent
believer in Ultimate De-votion!"
"Serphimera's group?"
"What a lady." The man smiled, his eyes glazing over as if he saw a vision of her on the horizon. "Now,
she was great." "She is indeed." "Is?" Agamalath cried. "She's alive?"
"She's alive " Erri nodded. "In fact, we watched the battle together yesterday."
The warrior winced at the mention of the battle and shook his head. "Serphimera alive. 1 thought she'd
been eaten by the old beast!"
"So you were ready to follow the dragon again, because of that?"
"1 guess so. And you know, when 1 started hunting around for a place to worship the Lord Dragon, all
the old shrines were gone! Your skyfaither friends had destroyed every last one of them!"
Erri frowned, then nodded. "That was a mistake."
The old warrior looked at him, puzzled. "A mistake? But you were right! It's ridiculous to worship a
dead dragon!"
"So it appears to me. But nothing confirms a man in his faith so quickly as trying to force him to abandon
it. Religious persecution stiffens resistance." Erri shot Agarnalath a twin-kling smile and added, "I should
know!"
"But it makes good sense to close the chapels!" the veteran grumbled. "Keep a lot of fools like myself
from folly!"
Erri gazed up at the man until he caught the warrior's eyes. Then he grunted. "It didn't, did it?"
The prophet was a small man. Although wiry and quick, this burly warrior could have felled him with a
blow. Another man might have died for such a pointed insult. But Agarnalath just looked at Erri,
pondering the words. Then he shrugged. "You're right."
Erri glanced away, out at the numbing sameness of the white snow, and clasped his hands behind him.
"No, this mixing of faith and government is bad business. You're absolutely right. What we need now is a
great king. Someone like Asher."
"Asher," the warrior groaned. "Where will we find another Asher?"
"Who knows? Maybe there's one in the making right now." Erri thought of Rosha.
Throughout this conversation, young Strahn had walked thirty yards behind them. Just as the warrior
would occasionally check to see if Chaomonous was coming, Erri would turn and wave at his young
companion, urging him to catch up. Strahn had not refused; he'd simply failed to comply. Now Erri bid
Agarnalath a good journey and waited for Strahn to catch up.
"Why have you been walking back there?" Erri asked pee-vishly.
The lad shrugged. Erri waited, and Strahn finally offered a meek explanation. "He's wearing dark blue."
"Yes?" Erri waited again.
"And carrying a sword!"
"That's true." They walked on a few more paces in silence.
"I'm afraid," Strahn finally confessed.
"What are you afraid of? The man's first and foremost a Lamathian! He's..." Erri suddenly caught sight of
his young companion's face. Strahn had set his jaw and hunched his shoulders, prepared to absorb
another lecture. That vision drove Erri's rebuke right out of his head. He saw, instead, a young man of
whom he'd demanded muchbut to whom he'd failed to give himself. It was a startling discovery. The
problem was clear: Erri's favorites, his brightest initiates, were elsewhere. Naquin was on his own
somewhere in Chaomonous. Tahli-Damen had marched unflinchingly into the jaws of Flayh. The
othersthose who had been closest to him during his brief period of rulewere scattered now across
the country, each trying in his own quiet way to affect a deep, meaningful change in this society. Strahn
was a more recent addition, a new boy. But now, as Erri looked at him, the prophet allowed himself to
see potential he'd never noticed before. The Naquins and the Tahli-Damens were on their own now. But
it was a world of young Strahns who would reshape the One Land and direct the attention of its citizens
to the Power. And it was with the Strahns of the world that Erri needed to concern himself. Erri
pondered a moment in silence. Then he said, "You know, I'm afraid too."
Strahn looked at him sharply, more worried now than ever. "Really?"
"Sometimes." Erri smiled at his companion. "But then it passes." He waved his hand at the line that
stretched out before them. "These are our people and they're frightened too. Let's go see if we can
encourage them some. Maybe then we'll all feel better."
Strahn stared at Erri, his expression still one of puzzlement. But this time when the prophet picked up
speed to rejoin the tail of the retreating column, the young man went with him.
Erri smiled inwardly and told himself that one day Strahn
could even be a great man.
Pelmen woke with a start, and sat up in bed. He was sur-rounded by total darkness. One moment later,
a ball of flame bobbed above the bed, and he had to lower it a little to keep from singeing the canopy.
He remembered now where he was, and who lay beside him.
Serphimera slept on her side, her long hair spilling across the pillow she clutched so closely. He sat for a
time watching her, admiring the shape of her lips and the curve of her thighs. He briefly considered
remaining here. Flayh knew nothing of this place. They could be safe here, turning their backs on the
troubled world and living peacefully within this endless artifact. Then he smiled at his folly and woke her.
She was alert immediately. "Is it time?" she asked. "I have no idea what time it is. It could be morning or
midnight and we wouldn't know." He noticed Serphimera shielding her face from the glare of his light. He
waved his hand and it moved over a bit, out of her eyes. "Yet we're both awake. And there's little
enough time left to those who struggle outside. Let's gel on with it."
They rose and dressed, leaving the glorious bedchamber with a shared lingering sense of sadness. Once
in the hallway, Serphimera turned the wrong way. "Where are you going?" Pelmen asked.
"Isn't that the way out?"
"Maybe there is an exit in that direction, but we'd probably emerge someplace in the Great North Fir
and be hopelessly lost. I don't think we have the time to go looking for it."
"You mean the throne room is that way?" Serphimera asked, pointing behind her, and Pelmen nodded.
The priestess smiled brightly and shrugged. She'd never had much of a sense of
direction.
A few moments later they stood once again in that circular chamber that had once bound the three lands
into one. "Where do we start?" Serphimera asked.
"At the bottom of that pile," Pelmen answered, pointing.
"How do you start at the bottom?"
"You just wade in," Pelmen murmured, and he did just that. She sighed and followed after him. They dug
an hour before
they found the fourth pyramid. They found the fifth only mo-ments later, and with shouts of jubilation
they threw themselves into their digging with a new excitement. Oblivious to the substance they tunnelled
through, they dug with the keen ex-hilaration of anticipated victory.
Three hours later, they admitted to each other their growing frustration. "I must rest," Serphimera
wheezed, and she waded toward the steps of the dais and sat down. Pelmen squatted where he was, and
heaved a disheartened sigh. It seemed Serphimera's eyes widened suddenly, then closed again. "We
know it's here," she encouraged him.
He nodded. "That seems reasonable. But what if it's not? What if we can't find it?"
"Then you won't have to remake the weapon. And you won't be obliged to use it."
Pelmen turned his head and met her most penetrating stare. "You know the price of using it?" he asked.
"I've always known the price. Long before you told me of its makingperhaps before we even metI
knew that cost. I just didn't know the circumstances until now."
"And how do you know now?" he asked. "Another vision last night?"
She looked away, unable to meet his eyes any longer. Then she noddeda brief, quick jerk of her
head.
"And you know we'll find the sixth pyramid?"
"We already have," Serphimera murmured, and she pointed toward his foot. "You kicked it up just now
when you squatted down."
Pelmen slowly looked downward and saw the pointed tip of the sixth crystal pyramid. He reached down
and reverently picked it up. The set was complete. "There remains only the task of putting it together," he
said, and Serphimera nodded.
"Where do we do that?" she asked briskly.
Pelmen shook his head, shocked that they actually possessed all the parts of the ancient magical object.
"I know where Sheth was to have taken it, once he'd made his contribution."
"They're alive with magic," Serphimera said quietly, "so obviously his contribution was made. Who else
was to partic-ipate in the project?"
"The men of faith, who resided on the mountain in the Great North Fir. That's the mountain of your
visions."
Serphimera nodded again, her expression a mingling of trag-edy and resolve. "We'll go up that mountain,
Pelmen. We'll not come down it."
He frowned. "Are you sure? I mean, before you said you just couldn't see beyond"
"I'm sure," Serphimera interrupted. There was no point in discussing it further. They sat there for several
minutes, each lost in private thoughts. Finally, Serphimera got to her feet. "I guess we'd better get
started."
"It's a long way to the mountain," Pelmen said after a moment. "Maybe we ought to rest again before we
go?"
She caught his meaning instantly and responded with a shy smile. They returned first to the marble bath,
then to the giant bed. It was a long time, however, before they slept.
Pelmen and Serphimera stepped out of the lair into brilliant afternoon sunlight. The early thaw had come,
melting the last of the muddy snow from the pass below them and leaving a swamp of thick brown muck
in its place. They quickly climbed down, found their mounts where they'd left them, and loaded their
precious treasures into the saddlebags. Only then did they notice they had company.
A huge pack of dogs encircled them, pinning them to the canyon wall. Serphimera gasped. "Dogs!"
Pelmen gazed around at the circle. "They're not dogs at all."
"But how do you"
"Look at their eyes," he told her, and Serphimera did. She shivered, and Pelmen put a protective arm
around her shoul-ders. "What are they?" she whispered.
"Powers. They've been given that form by Flayh."
"They're not illusions?"
"No, these are not like the false dragon. They're realreal enough that those teeth could tear us open
and those jaws snap our bones." He murmured this in such a cold, flat manner that Serphimera looked
away from the dogs and at him. His eyes remained fixed on their adversaries. It was evident his mind was
hard at work.
"You can escape, at least," she whispered, and that drew his attention back to her.
"And leave you?" His mind flashed immediately to Dorlyth.
"There's too much at stake for us to"
"What's wrong with you?" he snapped. "You saw us both going up that mountain, didn't you?"
"Yes," she answered softly.
"Then we know we'll not die here. Come on." He lightly touched the flanks of his horse with his heels,
and it took a few tentative steps forward. Serphimera's horse quickly fol-lowed, wanting to stay close to
its companion. They moved slowly toward the line of dogs, horses and riders alike closely watching these
unnatural beasts for some movement signaling attack.
No attack came. As had happened with Erri and his follow-ers, the line turned westward and trotted
before them, while those behind closed ranks around them and matched their pace. "It's as if they're
escorting us," Serphimera murmured.
"Into the Mar, yes. The question is, will they permit us to go our own way once we're there?"
"What was that you just said about the mountain?" Serphi-mera asked, her eyes straight ahead but a sly
smile playing on her lips.
Pelmen permitted himself a rueful chuckle. After a moment, he said, "There are some advantages to
knowing some of the future."
The seriousness of their circumstance settled slowly in on both of them. "Do we dare talk?" Serphimera
whispered. "Is there some way Flayh could be hearing all our conversations through these?"
Pelmen studied each of their entourage in turn, twisting in his saddle as he did so. he didn't know the
answer to her question. In fact there was really no way of knowing if Flayh himself might not be one of
their traveling companions. Pelmen shrugged at her. "I guess we could talk of other things. If he's
listening, it would at least waste his time while wasting none of our own. Why don't you tell me everything
that happened from the moment you left me at the edge of the Great South Fir?"
"I already did!"
"Then tell me again," Pelmen urged her, his eyes upon one of the dogs. Serphimera proceeded to do
that, Pelmen inter-rupting her frequently with questions. They came down out of the pass, making good
time. Without saying so, Pelmen began angling northward. The dogs did not interfere, although he'd
expected them to. In fact, it almost seemed that those ahead of them had anticipated his change of
direction. The pack stayed right with them, moving soundlessly through the melting snow. And when
Pelmen dared to spur his horse into a gallop, Serphimera trailing him closely, the pack silently matched
the pace. There was no outrunning them and no eluding them, but neither did the hounds make any hostile
advances nor attempt to turn Pelmen and Serphimera from their course. Within a few hours, they'd
reached the edge of the Great North Fir and turned to ride parallel to it toward the northeast. Pelmen
reflected that they surely made an unusual sight-a mounted man and woman, surrounded by a sprinting
pack of bizarre hounds. It didn't matter. Their horses were rested and willing to run, and every purposeful
stride took them nearer to their destiny on the moun-tain of the Power.
Serphimera noticed it first. "It's getting bigger." "What?" Pelmen asked her.
"Our escort. It's getting bigger. Haven't you noticed?" "No, I haven't." Pelmen frowned.
"Watch the forest," his bride said, pointing, and soon he began to see themnew dogs, just as black as
those who'd led them from the pass, slipping out to join the others. It continued throughout the day and
into the night. The pack that had numbered in the dozens threatened to swell into the thou-sands and
moved like a black flood across the white landscape. They raced just inside the Great North Fir under a
canopy of widely spaced evergreens, across ground still covered with pristine snow. In their wake they
left a muddy swathe of dog prints a quarter of a mile across.
The riders didn't slacken their pace, and the dogs did not complain. When their horses began to give out,
however, Pel-men and Serphimera stopped and camped. It was only then that their normally silent
companions began to whine, growl, and finally to bark impatiently.
"It's as if they can't wait," Serphimera observed, and Pelmen
nodded.
"Yesbut what is it they can't wait/or?" Night had fallen and firelike eyes ringed their campfire like row
upon row of orderly fireflies. Pelmen didn't cloak the camp. He saw no sense in it.
The next morning they rode on, upon mounts barely rested from the days of exhausting travel and still
skittish of the unnatural beasts surrounding them.
"Have you noticed we no longer need to guide our horses?" Pelmen asked his wife.
She nodded. "I wonder what would happen if we tried to turn south?" Several nearby dogs turned their
heads and looked up at her. "Not that we will," she explained to them, and they all looked back at the
trail. She shot Pelmen a wide-eyed, silent exclamation, and they both laughed. It was hearty laughter.
They had covenanted to enjoy their last few days.
Midway through the third day of their journey, Pelmen's horse drew up lame. They could travel no
further. The two riders dismounted, and talked over what to do next.
If the dogs seemed restless at night, they seemed frantic now. One beast tried to shove his muzzle
between Serphimera's legs, and she shouted in surprise and stomped on his head. The dogs persisted,
surrounding them so tightly that the two humans had no place to step. Pelmen finally understood what
they were yapping. "You want us to try to ride you?" A chorus of excited howls greeted his question, and
two dogs turned their noses toward the mountain and waited patiently for the people to sit astride them.
"We'll break your backs!" The shaper protested.
"Sit!" growled one hound menacingly, and Pelmen shrugged at Serphimera. They relieved their horses of
the provisions they'd been carrying and distributed these on the backs of several willing dogs. Then
Pelmen and Serphimera took three pyramids each, and mounted the waiting hounds.
The rest of the ride toward the mountain of the Power was hardly comfortable, and on more than one
occasion the two humans had to fling themselves boldly off their mounts to get the pack to stop. But in
due time, they arrived at the foot of that mountain that seemed so special to the Power. They were
greeted there by a throng of dogs three times the size of the horde that accompanied them.
Serphimera stared at the sight, aghast. "How did Flayh have time to make them all!" she marveled.
Pelmen regarded the dogs stoically, and muttered, "I'm more concerned with why." He hopped off his
steed, collected their belongings, and started up the mountain. Serphimera fol-lowed behind him. After a
moment, she stopped and looked back. "They aren't following us." In fact, from this vantage point she
could see that the army of dogs had started to ring the mountain, each facing outward, teeth bared as if
defending it from attack. "It's odd," she murmured.
Pelmen didn't hear her. He didn't hear anything. He climbed the peak with a feverish haste, drawing
upon reserves of energy he'd been unaware were there. He climbed as a man possessed.
Serphimera turned back to see he was already far above her. "Wait!" she shouted in annoyance. But he
didn't wait. Then she realized that the process had already begun, and already it was taking Pelmen from
her.and the young warrior saw a look of loss and despair in his host's face that wrenched his own
stomach. "What is it?" he asked fearfully, awe creeping into his voice. "It's.. .not the dread returned, is
it?"
Syth looked at the snow and breathed a long sigh. "Not any caused by magic. Or perhaps it is. I don't
know. It's hard, these days, to put causes to things. Who can know what powers have been loosed upon
usor what powers we've loosed upon ourselves. Here. Read this." Syth thrust a note toward Rosha,
and waited for the younger man to come and take it. "The flyer arrived this morning," he mumbled as
Rosha took the letter from his hand.
CHAPTER SIXTEEN
Alliances
Rosha woke to a cold, silent house. Puzzled, he rose and dressed, then went down to breakfast in the
window-lined hall. He ate alone, served by a steward who seemed unusually sub-dued. They exchanged
no words until the end of the meal. Rosha glanced up, caught the man's eye, and asked quietly, "Where's
your master?"
The servant said nothing. He simply pointed out the window at a line of tracks in the snow. They led up
the nearer of the island's twin peaks.
Wrapping himself in rare bear furs and donning a cap of the same precious pelt, Rosha started out after
the lord of the island. The snow crunched under his boots and the hairs in his nostrils froze, but he kept
up his quick pace and soon topped the hill. He saw Syth then, standing stiffly with his back to the wind,
looking toward the gray skies of the north. The man must have heard him, but didn't turn around. "Syth?"
Rosha called softly. In that still place his words seemed like a shout.
Syth didn't appear to be startled. He slowly turned to Rosha,
TO LORD SERILIATH AND THE FELL LADY OF FALL-GREETINGS AND ADIEU. THE
DOG UPON THE MOUNTAIN HAS SENT HIS BEASTS TO EAT MEAND THEY WILL.
MO-MENTS AGO I WATCHED A HERD OF ENORMOUS HORNED MONSTERS UTTERLY
DESTROY THE HOST OF BELRA. LORD GARNABEL, UPON THE PLAIN TO THE SOUTH.
NOT ONE WAR-RIOR WHO STOOD TO FIGHT SURVIVED THESE BEASTS CON-SUMED
THE CORPSES. THEY ARE GUIDED BY ADMON RAYE. AND THEY NOW SURROUND MY
KEEP MY WALLS ARE BREACHED I GO TO DEFEND MY CHILDREN -AND TO FAIL SO
PASSES THE HOUSE OF KAM
Rosha's eyes misted over as he read the last lines. He turned his angry, puzzled gaze up to Syth, whose
face was hard. "I... I don't..."
"Magic beasts, do you think?" Syth asked sharply, though with no expectation that Rosha might know.
"Mar-Yilot has been in her tower all morningor rather her body has. She's abroad, seeking the answer
to that question and the counterspell to these monsters. If such exists," Syth finished bitterly.
Rosha reread the message, still in shock from the incom-prehensible savagery it described. "I... there
were some huge horned beasts in Lamath, but"
"What? Where?" Syth demanded.
"In Lamath. But I'd understood they were normally doc-ile"
"The dog rules Lamath now," Syth spat. "Any beast with half a brain can be pushed to hostility if the
force applied is wicked enough. And Flayh is certainly that. Come on!" he barked, and he started for the
palace.
"Where are we going?" Rosha shouted.
Syth wheeled swiftly to face him. "To war, lad. To war!"
The Lord of Seriliath spent the remainder of the morning sending messages to those few barons still living
who stood with him. They were to rally to his side at dead Tuckad's keephe would lead them to battle
from there. He wrote swiftly, but took care to include every detail of his own recent experience and of
Kam's end. The grim news would circulate quickly enough. It was best that his people hear it from him.
Like ripples rolling outward from the palace, the news spread to other parts of the island. Business on
Sythia came to a halt. Cobblers, farmers, blacksmiths, and jewelers laid down the tools of their trades
and took up those more ancient tools of combat. This was no longer a war for professionals. The life of
their island had been threatened. They would march even against monsters to defend it.
Rosha sat in his apartment, struggling to control his thoughts. He was not afraid of his own death, and
he'd caused the deaths of too many others to shrink from the coming battle. Two things, however,
plagued his thoughts. The first was that he wished things were resolved between himself and Bronwynn.
The second was that he didn't want to die wastefully. He heard the clamor all around himmen
preparing to go to war out of loyalty to their lord. He liked Syth. He honored and respected Syth. But his
loyalties were to others. Could this be his last summons to arms? To ride to a fruitless demise in the
company of strangers, at the side of one of his father's old rivals?
There was a knock on his door. "Come in." It clacked open. He was surprised to see Syth himself step
into the room. "You? My Lord, you have much to prepare"
"And this is a part of those preparations," Syth answered quietly. He bore a shield and sword. The shield
was angled away so that Rosha couldn't see the device on its face. The sword Syth laid upon Rosha's
bed. "I understand your blade was 'borrowed' from a slaver. I can't judge its quality, but I can vouch for
the temper of this weapon. It was forged for meone of a pair. 1 can only carry one greatsword at a
time. Will you bear its twin?"
Rosha grasped the sword and tested its balance. It was
beautifully made. Its blade gleamed, smiling with a bright ferocity. Its hilt was a work of art. Threads of
gold, silver, and scarlet intertwined to form its grip, and its pommel was a brilliant diamond the size of a
goose egg. Rosha gazed at it in wonder.
"A bit ostentatious, I realize." Syth smiled apologetically. "But I can assure you all that finery won't
interfere with its effectiveness."
"It's beautiful," Rosha whispered, and Syth nodded in mute agreement. "What do these say?" the young
warrior asked, running his fingers across a series of runes engraved on the blade and inlaid with gold.
"You'll have to ask the woman who gave them to me," Syth said; as Rosha met his gaze, he went on
meaningfully, "They were a present from my wife."
"Powers?" Rosha asked soberly.
Syth shook his head. "I've never wanted to know." Then he looked down at the shield he still held. "My
friend, you owe me nothing. While I have arms I'd be honored for you to wear, I see you as an ally, not a
vassal. It would be inappro-priate for you to wear my livery into the coming battleif indeed that's
where you choose to go. This shield ... is false. It was carried by the ugliest man in the three lands as he
impersonated one of the finest. It was taken from the hut where he discarded itwhere my spellbound
body lay in dread. False as it is, however, its colors are true. They're your father's, Rosha. Yours, now."
Syth turned the shield around.
It was larger than his father's own battle shield, and much finer looking. The paint was new. Dorlyth had
never worried much about that. But the colors were righta field of tan, or "wheat-colored," as his
father had always said, crossed by a single bar of forest green. Not flashy, but simple, and it was striking
enough to be quickly recognizable on a battlefield, which was its primary purpose. Rosha took the shield
proudly, and gazed down at it.
Syth paced the room and spoke. "We were warriors, your father and 1. Ranged across the field or
around the banquet table, we understood one another. You're just like me, so you'll understand, too.
Ours are not the concerns of the shapers. They'll mold the events we'll only play a part in. They'll shape
history, and thereby become legends. But those are things they'll do in solitary places. They'll do them to
men, or for men, but they'll do them alone. Weak as we are, powerless as we are, it is our lot to lead the
men they struggle in solitude to damn or to save. I find romance no longer in this task of war. What I
once thought glorious I now find was only grim. But we do what we do because our puny weight might
somehow tip the scales and because the people we lead must be involved, some-how, in their own
redemption if it's to mean anything to them. I don't say war is the best way of involving them. I do say it's
all I know. And nowtodayit's necessary." Syth stopped walking and looked at his young guest. "Will
you ride with me to Tuckad Castle?"
Rosha thought seriously before answering. He nodded fi-nally. "To Tuckad Castle, yes. Beyond that, I
don't know. You may have judged me wrongly, Syth. It's my wife who leads men, not I. As for my
fatherhe was a leader, yes. But first he was a hero. He used to say that was a disease and that he
feared I'd caught it from him. I did catch it. I believe, somehow, that a single individual can make a
difference, and 1 want to be where I must be to make a difference in this conflict. Where that is, I don't
know. Yes, I'll carry the twin of your sword, and I hope to do honor to it. And I thank you for this shield.
But where I carry them, beyond Tuckad Castle, I really cannot say."
"That's fair." Syth started to leave the room. Then he stopped at the door. "But I haven't judged you
wrongly, Rosha. If you think somehow we disagree, then you have misjudged me."
All available barges were pressed into service, but it still took several hours to get the army across the
water to the North Coast. The minute the last citizen soldier stepped off into the snow, they left, riding as
swiftly as possible to Seriliath under the coverage of Mar-Yilot's cloak. They spent the night there, but
were up before dawn and gone, leaving the city empty of men and of horses. Bainer joined them that day
on the road with his few warriors and began a tedious monologue that lasted a half hour before Syth
interrupted.
"Bainer? Have you noticed anyone following us?" Syth asked, and he craned his head to look back
along the column.
Bainer frowned. "I've not, no. But if you wish, I'll take my fellows and ride back there"
"Wonderful idea!" Syth smiled. "Why don't you just es-
tablish a rear guard to insure that we're not surprised like the last time."
Bainer nodded importantly and reined his horse around to ride back down the column. Rosha frowned
slightly and looked across at Syth. "I thought Mar-Yilot was covering us?" .
"She is," Syth grunted.
"Then what's the need in that?"
Syth chuckled. "My ears need the rest. Don't yours? Be-sides, I'm trying to plan."
"Plan what?" Rosha asked.
Syth looked at him with a sly smile. "A task fit for a hero."
Rosha raised his eyebrows in surprise, then turned his eyes forward. They didn't speak again for the rest
of the ride.
They reached Tuckad's keep by nightfall, and found that Cerdeb had already arrived. The man's face
looked haunted. Few riders had accompanied him from his home far to the south in Downlands region,
and the trip had been harrowing. "Dogs," he murmured. "Wicked beasts. They can talk! And slavers, of
course. And now you speak of monsters..."
Much more in evidence were the burnt orange tunics of the merchant house of Hann. Syth had good
relations with these traders and had harbored hopes that they might lure other trad-ing houses to his
cause. He quickly found the Hanni leaders and pressed them on the matter. "What about Blez or Uda?
They hate Flayh's Ognadzu colors as much as you do, don't they?"
"We all despise Flayh," Laph mod Parem answered apol-ogetically. "But no one else seems ready to
fight him. Blez is a small house. The men of Wina are terrified. Uda is in a state of chaos. They lost their
local leader last spring, a fellow named Tahli-Damen. The man went blind and then later lost his mind,
and his family attributes all of this to Flayh. Now we have word that their ruling elder, Jagd, was
assassinated in Chao-monous. Flayh is at the heart of all these doings." Laph and his brother merchants
exchanged anxious looks. The trader went on, "You must remember, Syth. All of us watched Flayh
display his power at the last meeting of the Council of Elders. We realize what we're facing. And now
that he has tugoliths"
"You know for certain they're tugoliths?" Rosha interrupted, and the merchant nodded grimly.
"They were stolen from Lamath when Flayh overthrew the religious governor there. They're malleable
creatures that can easily be shaped to the personality of their handler. Rumor has it that their handler now
is Admon Faye."
Syth nodded wearily and turned away. One could always trust the information of merchants. It was their
business to know. He controlled his despair and looked back at Laph. "What can you tell me about new
developments here?"
Laph sniffed and shuffled his feet. "Pahd mod Pahd-el has mustered the Mar. Or rather, his mother has
in Pahd's name." Syth raised his eyebrows. "I didn't receive that notice." "Yes, well, you wouldn't, would
you?" Laph said. "1 suppose not. Who stands with him?" Laph snorted. "Everyone. Accept you and
yours, us, and Ferlyth. Some are more active in their support than others, but only Carlog and your
northern cities have resisted him." "What about Garnabel?" Syth asked. "If you know about the tugoliths,
you surely know what happened to Belra, their citylord." "Yes. Kam described it to me."
"Garnabel has totally surrendered. They've elected Pahd's cousin Janos as their new citylord and
marched three thousand men to the capital."
Syth absorbed this news with a strained smile. "It's a wonder that you still stand with me, knowing all of
this."
"We've come for only one reason. We've opposed Flayh too long for him to welcome us. He's a
vindictive little man, and if he captures us, he'll kill us allor worse. Our one hope is you and the Golden
Throng."
"Bronwynn!" Rosha grunted. "Where is the Golden Throng?" "Encamped on the Westmouth Plain. With
the aid of Pelmen Dragonsbane, they routed the army of Lamath and passed through Dragonsgate."
"Ah-ha!" Syth cried, cheered at last. He grabbed Rosha's hand and gripped it hard. "Here is finally some
good news!" Laph mod Parem shrugged. "Perhaps. But if Lamath turns and closes the pass, their retreat
will be blocked. And while I'm told it's a grand-looking army, they're untried in battle." "You said they
routed"
"With Pelmen's aid," Laph said meaningfully. Then he asked with a raised eyebrow, "Can we count on
Pelmen's aid?"
"That I don't know," Syth countered. "But we can count on Mar-Yilot."
"All Ngandib-Mar trembles before the Autumn Lady," Laph said politely, "but Flayh has proved himself
darker and harder than even she. Joooms is with him, and so is the twin-killer."
"Yes, we know about Terril."
"Then if you will," Laph pleaded, "ask your lady if she can contact Pelmen and request his succor.
Without it, we're lost. We may be lost with it."
Syth sighed, and patted mod Parem on the shoulder. "I'll ask her right now. Come on, Rosha." He
started for the stairs that led to the chambers mod Tuckad had allotted them.
"You mean she's here?" Laph asked.
Syth smiled. "A part of her." They went up the stairs to find her.
Mar-Yilot glowed at the far end of their long, dark room. No tapers burned, nor were any needed, for
the orange corona that ringed her transparent image provided all the illumination necessary. Her face was
drawn with frustration and weariness, but that was her most common expression, so Syth felt no alarm.
He walked confidently across the wooden floor to her, Rosha still trailing behind. "You've come." Syth
smiled.
"I said I would," Mar-Yilot responded. "You are all safe?"
"We are."
"Did Cerdeb arrive safely?"
"Yes." Syth smiled wistfully. "But I can't say he brought much encouragement with him. Nor many
warriors, either. He didn't have the luxury of coverage as he traveled. It looks to me like he's already
making peace with defeat."
"He's a Downlander." Mar-Yilot shrugged as if that ex-plained everything. Maris hailing from the
Downlands did in-deed have a reputation for faltering under pressure. "What of the House of Hann?"
"They're here with a full complement. But they, too, are worried. They've requested that you seek out
Pelmen and plead for his succor."
Mar-Yilot snorted and propped a hand on a hip. "Did you tell them young Rosha here might have more
influence with him than I?"
"I told them only that I would ask you. I said nothing of our contact with him, nor of his quest to
reassemble this ancient weapon. Their information worried me more than Cerdeb's long face. Apparently
Flayh has bent all the shapers save your-self and Pelmen to his will."
Mar-Yilot raised her eyebrows. "Joooms finally caved in?".
"Which we knew was inevitable." Syth nodded. "Now you're faced with a perilous army of
opponents"
"Pelmen battled many of us at once and won."
"That's true, my dear, and you're at least as talented as he. But the merchants credit Flayh's vindictive
nature and unpre-dictability over your experience. Perhaps we do need to call Pelmen back after all.
When he left Sythia he had very little hope of succeeding in finding the pieces"
"He wouldn't have undertaken the journey if he had thought there was some other way." This was Rosha
speaking. He lay back on a bed, peering up at the darkness, his hands clasped behind his neck.
"Yes, but if we move into shaper battle"
"Flayh will defeat us," Rosha interrupted.
Mar-Yilot gazed at him caustically. "You sound very certain of that."
"I am," Rosha growled. Then he sat up, and his eyes glowed with light reflected from her aura. He
looked into Syth's face and said, "You know it too."
"Do you have any suggestions?" Mar-Yilot snarled, but Syth held up a hand to silence her. Then he
scratched his jaw and sighed.
"Rosha's right."
"Syth!" Mark-Yilot complained, frowning.
"He's right. The dog has the knowledge to counter any shaper attack on him. I'm sure that's what he's
preparing him-self to face. Perhaps if we sent someone he didn't fear against himsomeone he thought
he'd ensnared in dread"
"You're thinking of going against him yourself?" Rosha asked.
"I forbid it!" the sorceress cried, and her halo of light flared up like a flame.
Syth smiled. "1 couldn't go. 1 have an army to lead, small as it is, and besidesI'm not a hero." He
looked around at Rosha. "You could go."
Rosha stared back silently.
This exchange of looks made Mar-Yilot impatient. "How
could he go? He's already been inside the fortress once and needed the help of two wizards to get out!"
"But he did get out," Syth murmured, eyes still on Rosha. "And he succeeded in bringing away what he
went in after."
"You're suggesting we ask Pelmen to lay aside his task to help this boy get into the fortress again?"
"Not Pelmen."
"He'll need some powershaper to cover him." Mar-Yilot snarled. "And if you're thinking of his queen,
remember: She's no shaper yet!"
"I was thinking of you, Mar-Yilot."
His wife stared at him. "Me! Where will you be during all this?"
"Outside on the plain with the Golden Throng, battling Pahd and our Mari brothers."
"No," Mar-Yilot said bluntly. "I'll not leave you uncov-ered."
"You can cover me all you choose, my Lady, but Flayh will penetrate your coverage and kill me if he
pleases."
"Let him try! I'll battle him above the"
"No," Syth barked, and his frown stopped her. "The key is the shaper. Eliminate Flayh and you eliminate
the power that binds the other shapers. You also eliminate the need to murder countless Maris in Flayh's
name."
"And you propose to send a boy to do a task that"
"Not a boy, woman!" Syth roared. "A hero! One who's faced a bear, a dragon, Admon Faye, and most
importantly of all, Flayh himself, and survived each encounter! Armed with a magic sword of your own
design, protected and supported by your own vast experience, he could slip inside a castle he knows
well and go straight to the source of our dilemma!"
"And what about the living fortress!" the Autumn Lady shouted.
"Create enough magic inside its belly and you'll incapacitate it! You told me so yourself!"
"And what of the other shapers during this time?" she snarled. "Joooms and Terrilwhere will they be?"
Syth smiled triumphantly and murmured, "Pelmen battled many at once, and you're as talented as he!"
Then he frowned. "There'll be a battle going on below! That will attract Flayh's attention and that of his
allied shapers as well."
"When he has battle beasts to chew you up and swallow you?" Mar-Yilot sneered. "Why should he
trouble himself? He'll not even notice you!"
It was a strong argument, but Syth refused to heed it. "My Lady, listen! It's our only hope!"
"Then we're hopeless indeed, and perhaps should yield now!"
"Do you believe that?" Syth demanded accusingly, knowing full well what her answer would have to be.
Mar-Yilot pouted a moment before giving it. "No."
"Very well. Then we'll plan for"
"But I don't believe this will succeed."
"Then let me convince you"
"You'll not convince me, Syth! I'll do it, but 1 don't think it can possibly work!"
Syth threw up his hands in exasperation. "Of course you don't! Because there's one thing you always fail
to take into consideration!"
"And that is?" she asked, cocking her head to one side.
"We are right. And Flayh is irrevocably in the wrong!"
She smiled, finally, but with cynicism, not amusement. "You think events will honor your moral vision?"
she asked.
"I think we must live as if they will."
The sorceress shrugged. "And die with the same convic-tion."
"If need be, yes."
Mar-Yilot nodded, and looked at Rosha. "He fits very well with your Pelmen, doesn't he?"
Rosha had watched the argument unfold with a kind of awe. To be in such company, to hear his merits
discussed so criti-cally, and to measure the responsibility offered to him against his own self-esteem had
challenged him to produce his best. He wanted to be wise, to be viewed as wise, and to justify Syth's
confidence in him while winning Mar-Yilot's respect. When she aimed this comment at him, he responded
imme-diately: "Of course. That's why they both impress you so deeply."
Mar-Yilot was stunned. She thought about it, then acknowl-edged the possibility with a nod. Her eyes
suddenly darted at Rosha's face, gripping his attention. "And why I ought to be impressed by you, too?"
That startled Rosha. He could think of no quick retort. "I... don't know..."
"Well, it doesn't matter," Mar-Yilot said quietly. Melan-choly crept into her voice as she continued, "My
husband has made a decision, and I'll abide by iteven though I fear it will cost him his life. But I guess
that's the way it is with moralists; they demand that the world be just, and then kill themselves proving it
can be made a little more so." Without a good-bye, without any warning that she was leaving, Mar-Yilot
disappeared.
The two warriors were left sitting in total darkness. It sur-prised Rosha to hear Syth chuckling. "She
does love a good exit line," the lord of Seriliath murmured, and Rosha could almost hear the man's smile.
He had no smile of his own. He reflected on the question Mar-Yilot had asked him. He'd never been
much concerned with questions of morality, but her com-ment had truly stunned him. How could he be a
hero and not have moral convictions?
"In any case, it's settled. Rest somewe've had a hard two days. But as soon as you're ready, you need
to be on your way."
"To the High Fortress," Rosha murmured. Despite his ef-forts to keep them submerged, fears began to
nibble on his confidence. "And when I'm there?"
"Just wait. She'll find you. Think, Rosha," Syth added, his voice rich with encouragement. "This is your
opportunity to be who you must be."
Rosha stared into the darkness, swallowed, and nodded grimly.
It was inevitable that Erri should be recognized. He had, after all, been the head of the Lamathian
government, and he hadn't hidden himself from his people as had the former king. As he shuffled along
with the defeated army, listening, arguing, laughing, and encouraging, the whispers began around him.
Soon the news traveled up to the head of the line, that while the upstart king had fled in fear, the prophet
had rejoined his people in their hour of greatest need. Before long, a mounted contingent from the ad hoc
leadership had raced back to greet him formally. Despite his protests, the prophet and the terrified Strahn
were put on horseback and led to the head of the column.
As they passed, the warriors cheered joyfully, and Erri returned their waves with an ironic smile. It
appeared leadership had little to do with one's ability and more with how many people recognized one's
face.
The prophet hadn't planned on this. Politics was a nuisance, a headache he'd been happy to be rid of for
a time. But by the time they arrived back in the capital, he'd decided that, if somebody had to lead
Lamath for the next few critical weeks, it might as well be heat least until other, more lasting
ar-rangements could be made. Agamalath had been rightLa-math needed someone like Asher, and
that certainly wasn't Erri. He did, however, have someone in mind.
By the time they marched into the city square, there was already a sizable gathering of civic leaders
waiting to greet him. Erri grimaced at their stiff, formal poses. Obviously they'd planned some sort of
ceremony, and the small prophet hated the thought. There were so many things he needed to attend to.
Why waste time standing around listening to pompous talk? Once again, the petty business of parochial
politics interfered with his major concerns. He sighed inwardly and forced a smile of greeting for the tall
dignitary who approached him.
"Lord Erri," the man began, and the prophet winced in pain. "We offer you a kingdom."
Erri nodded affably. "Fine," he said. He could have pro-duced a far more flowery speech, but his
attention remained elsewhere. He hoped to get this nonsense over quickly so that he could find some
private place and tune his spirit to the movements of the Power.
"When shall we plan your coronation?" the man continued.
"My what?" the prophet grunted in shock, as he turned his head back to look up into the eyes of the
official who towered over him. "I'm no king!"
"My dear prophet." The dignitary smiled condescendingly. "As I said, we offer you a kingdom. Our land
has always been a kingdom. We're accustomed to that. And as we've all had the chance to sample your..
.prophetic.. .form of govern-mentand, incidentally, to see where it leads uswe urge you to accept
the throne we offer instead of returning us to that unstable circumstance. You shall be King Erri the
first or King Prophet, or whatever you might preferand at your death, the crown shall descend to
your heirs."
Erri nodded thoughtfully and glanced around at the rest of the assembled leadership of Lamath. Their
aims were rather transparent. They wanted someone to take on the difficult chore of binding the nation
back together againpreferably someone they could disassociate themselves from when his policies
be-came unpopular. Erri would serve nicely. And he had no heirs, which meant in all probability that the
crown would eventually come to one of their heirs instead. By that time, the throne might be worth
something again.
The prophet smiled, and said, "No."
A moment of shocked silence followed by his refusal; then the group buzzed with animated whisperings.
Erri raised his voice to speak above them. "I'm not the king type! But you're right. Lamath does need a
king." The gathered host hushed to listen to him. "We need a good ruler, a strong ruler. Someone a lot
like Asher." Murmurs of agreement rippled through the crowd. The prophet had touched a nerve. That
was it, exactly. "And I think I have just the man."
"Who?" someone blurted boldly, and there were several more cautious echos of the same question.
"I'd prefer not to announce that as yet. The time isn't right. Until that time comes, I'll accept your offer to
rule Lamath as a regent. But let's not concern ourselves with the triviality of a coronation. Now if you
don't mind, there are important mat-ters that require my attention. Excuse me." Erri gathered up his robes
and took off across the square.
This abrupt ending to their ceremony stunned the Lamathian leadership. They gazed around at one
another in confusion and embarrassment. Strahn soon noticed that several people were looking
expectantly at him. When others did the same, he found himself the focus of attention, and his face turned
red. Not knowing what else to do, Strahn shrugged elaborately. Then he turned to race off after Erri,
mentally berating the prophet for having so little respect for conventions.
Erri had already thrust the meeting from his mind and was wrapped in earnest conversation with the
Power. He was plead-ing that his unannounced nominee for the crown of Lamath might survive the
coming storm. Remembering Rosha's fool-hardiness, Erri scowled. That was not a hopeful sign. Still,
there came a timesometimes in a momentwhen foolhar-diness was tempered by crisis into bravery,
and ambition crystallized into destiny. "Perhaps," Erri mumbled, "that time is at hand for Rosha." Erri
listened, but the Power did not respond.
Scouting parties from the two armies met and exchanged greetings long before the two armies came into
view of one another. Nevertheless trumpets of alarm were sounded, and two lines drew up facing each
other as if in preparation for a pitched battle. When the leaders rode out to parlay, all were smilingall,
that is, except Queen Bronwynn. She looked at Syth and addressed him sharply. "Where's Rosha?"
Syth's eyes widened, his only admission of surprise, but his smile stayed fixed and even grew warmer.
"Your husband said you were direct--"
"Where is he?"
"That's a lengthy tale and a bit of a secret"
"Tell it," Bronwynn snarled. She felt very much a queen this day and quite hostile. Syth looked around at
his allies, then slowly turned back to face her. He got off his horse and started to walk away. "Where are
you going?" Bronwynn called, her voice charged with annoyance.
"I said it was a secret. Come walking and I'll tell you."
Bronwynn looked at Joss, who gazed back impassively. She flung herself down from her saddle and
walked quickly to Syth's side. Those left behind tried to appear disinterested as they strained to hear
whatever bits of the conversation they might. They all heard Bronwynn emit a bark of outrage and saw
her face turn red with rage. They heard nothing more.
"He's safe," Syth was whispering. "Much safer than either of us, at present."
"How do you know?" Bronwynn spat.
"Because it's my wife who's protecting him, that's why!" Syth growled back, mostly for show. He wasn't
really angry. Rosha had anticipated Bronwynn's response and had tried to prepare him for it, but that had
really been unnecessary. This was just like talking with Mar-Yilot. "And you can drive that jealousy right
out of your head. It was my idea."
"Yours!"
"Our frontal assault will be suicidal unless they're success-ful. That is what you came for, isn't it? To aid
Rosha in his cause?"
Bronwynn hesitated a moment at that, then snapped, "Of course."
"Good. Then why don't we map out our general strategy with the rest of the group? But keep quiet on
Rosha's where-abouts. I trust my people and I'm sure you trust yours, but it's a treacherous age.
Agreed?"
"Agreed." Bronwynn nodded, a little miffed at how easily he was handling her.
"One other thing before we join the others."
"Yes?"
"Is Pelmen with you?"
Bronwynn blinked. "No. He was, but we left him behind in Dragonsgate."
"Looking for the other pyramids." Syth nodded. He sounded dismayed.
"Why?" the queen asked.
"Oh. Just hoping."
"Riders!" someone in the ranks shouted, and a trumpet sounded the alarm again, this time in earnest. The
two leaders whirled toward the south.
Bronwynn glanced at Syth's face and saw his disbelieving frown. She whipped out her sword and
demanded, "Enemies?"
"I don't know!" Syth shouted in honest dismay. "It's either your husband returning far too soon or
Admon Faye! Wait!" he called to his archers, who were nocking their arrows. "Wait until we know for
certain who it is!"
The lead rider wore the colors of Dorlyth mod Karis. The rest were arrayed as freed men, in colors of
their own choosing. They drew up some thirty yards distant, and the lead rider tore off his helmet and
scowled at them. "What's the matter with you, Syth? Haven't we fought against one another enough for
you to recognize me?"
Syth looked at Bronwynn in joyful surprise, but she was no longer beside him. She'd thrown her sword
aside and was racing to greet her father-in-law with open arms. Dorlyth climbed painfully from his saddle,
but he was still strong enough to grab her off her feet and swing her around like a child. The Golden
Throng was perplexed beyond measure, but the army of the north greeted this sight with a loud huzzah.
As Bronwynn and Dorlyth strolled arm-in-arm back to the beaming Syth, the Throng, too, began
cheering enthusiastically. They didn't know what, but evidently something wonderful had happened.
"Dorlyth!" Syth shouted above the din. "I thought you were dead!"
"So did your wife, apparently," Dorlyth said with a slight smile, and Syth covered his eyes in symbolic
embarrassment.
"She was fooled," he offered apologetically as he pulled his hand away. "She thought Pelmen had put a
spell on me."
"So she told us." Dorlyth nodded. "But here you are, so I judge she learned of her error, and here am I,
so it wasn't quite as costly as you may have thought. And here you are as well!" Dorlyth grinned, hugging
his daughter-in-law close.
Bronwynn smiled shyly, but didn't pull away. She felt none of that need to establish independence that
had marred her last meeting with Pelmen, nor did she project any of her current ill-will toward her
husband on Rosha's father. She'd not seen Dorlyth for years, but she'd loved him from a distance as a
model of what her Rosha hoped to become, and as family. "Does Rosha know you're here?"
Dorlyth frowned. "I don't know the first thing about Rosha. Nor, for that matter, about you, or this army,
or Syth, or what's been happening. I've been back at my castle trying to recover from a fire ring and I'm
still not able to get around as well as I'd like."
"But how are you here at all?" Syth begged.
Dorlyth turned and pointed at his mount. "You see that horse? It used to be Pelmen's, and"
"Minaliss?" Bronwynn asked, twirling out of Dorlyth's em-brace and staring back at the horse. "It is!"
"Smart animal," Dorlyth said. "Came around through the fire, somehow, and found me. I managed to get
up across his back and he carried me to my castle. I've been recuperating ever since then, but I got word
from one of my people that an army was coming through Dragonsgate." Dorlyth propped his fists on his
hips. "I am the Jorl of the Westmouth, you realize, sworn to defend the realm against intruders." He
looked at Bronwynn.
She met his eyes evenly. "Am I an intruder?" she asked frankly.
"My Lady," Dorlyth said, "at this point I'm just glad there's someone around who's willing to come help
us with this quar-
rel." He looked at Syth. "The Mar's been mustered on top of the High Plateau. Belra's been destroyed. I
hear rumors that I can't make any sense of at all. I'm here to join you, although I can't offer much."
"You bring us a great deal, just by offering your presence," Syth responded warmly. "As to whether it
will be enough shall we all go and find out?"
Minutes later the allied armies were marching together to-ward the High Fortress. They hadn't a hope of
conquering it all of them knew that well. But if they didn't make the effort, there would be nothing left
worth hoping for. At least, in this, they found purpose, and when hope was gone, purpose was a
worthwhile substitute.
CHAPTER SEVENTEEN
The Baying Hounds
With the fanatical courage that was sometimes born of terror, Terril drove his tiny body up the sheer
face of the cliff. He had ridden the cold winter air currents all the way from Sythia and emotionally he was
frozen. Suddenly he saw a window in the High Fortress looming up before him, and he shot through it
with a triumphant buzz. His feet, human again at last, hit the floor.
Naturally, Flayh knew the moment Terril arrived. As the shivering wizard sat by a fire slurping soup
straight from the bowl, a squat brigand tapped Terril on the shoulder. "The Lord Flayh wants to see you,"
he mumbled. "Follow me."
Terril didn't argue. He refilled his bowl from a steaming pot and followed the slaver down the hallway.
The man ushered him into a room, then left. Terril took another draught of his soup before looking
around. He suddenly noticed he wasn't alone. "Joooms?" he said, eyeing the hook-nosed man seated by
the wall.
"Hello, Twin-killer," Joooms responded.
The lizard's superior tone of voice made Terril bristle. "What arc you doing here?" he snapped angrily,
annoyed at how swiftly Joooms could make him feel incompetent.
Jooom shrugged. "The same thing you are, I assume."
"Enlarging your treasury?" Terril sneered. Joooms's greedi-ness was legendary.
"A little." The dark shaper nodded. "Though I'm more concerned with preserving the lives of my family.
But of course, family ties don't matter much to you, do they. Twin-killer?"
Weary or not, an affront was an affront and not to be tol-erated. Terril hurled a ball of flame at Joooms's
head, only to have it bounce harmlessly away at a wave of the lizard's hand. "Come, Terril. Can't you be
a little more creative?" Joooms i stood and swivelled around to face his attacker. The two shapers would
have begun then in earnest, had Flayh not appeared suddenly between them. They both leaped
backward in shock. This was not an image, a projection thrown down by a shaper still above. This was
the small sorcerer himself.
Flayh smiled gloatingly, and looked from one astonished wizard to the other. Then he shrugged, as if this
feat were nothing. In fact, it was incredible.
"My Lord Flayh," Joooms said, bowing graciously with one knee to the floor. "You've taken us
completely by surprise."
"Welcome, Lord Flayh," Terril muttered, imitating Jooom's polished charm.
"Hello, Terril. Welcome back. I hope you've brought me some usable information. I thought I'd pop
down and hear it before you two kill each other."
"A minor misunderstanding," Joooms said smoothly, and Terril nodded vigorous agreement.
"I hope so. It matters little to me what you do to one another after the war is won; but until that time, try
to stay out of each other's way. Otherwise, one of you will doubtless destroy the other, and I'd be forced
to kill the survivor. That would all be a terrible waste."
"Surely you don't actually need us," Joooms suggested with a quiet smile. "With tugoliths to trample on
the armies that
attack you, and your own remarkable powers to counter shaper assaults, what good can we do you?"
"You think my powers formidable?" Flayh asked. He ap-peared genuinely pleased.
"Of course," Joooms answered, his dark eyes fixed un-flinchingly on Flayh's disfigured countenance, his
voice oily with charm. "Never have I beheld such a feat as I've just witnessed. Have you, Twin-killer?"
He didn't wait for Terril's response but went quickly on, "Can you tell us how it's done?"
Flayh's eyes lidded slightly, and he gazed contemptuously at Joooms.
"Of course." Joooms nodded. "Trade secrets. But since your shaping is so demonstrably superior to
ours, can't you release us from your service? Your victory is assured."
"Patience, Joooms," Flayh said. "Your children aren't far, and they aren't suffering. A few more days
and, as you say, the victory will be assured. But it would make me nervous to think either of you were
out there unattached, so to speak. Besides, I need your counsel. You've both battled Pelmen and
Mar-Yilot, and I want to draw upon your experience."
Joooms chuckled. "I'll be little help to you there. While I've successfully eluded them both, I've never
defeated either of them." The dark man frowned sharply and raised his voice. "Come, Lord Flayh, speak
frankly! You know as well as we that what you've just done is impossible! The pair you battle are the
best, and by their pairing are more frightful than any shaper force I ever faced, but surely they tremble
before you, who can be anywhere you will!"
"Not anywhere. Not yet," Flayh muttered. "The range of my movement is small yet. But it should be
sufficient, you think?"
"Without question," Joooms snorted.
Flayh looked at Terril. "And you? You agree?"
"My Lord Flayh," Terril answered wearily, "you know that 1 would surrender without a fight."
"Of course," Flayh snorted. "You already did. But Pelmen did not. Nor did Mar-Yilot. What news,
man! What can I expect?"
Terril took a deep breath. "Syth has marched to Tuckad, where he gathers his armies. The son of
Dorlyth rides with him. Mar-Yilot lingers in Sythia to cover her lover, and I doubt
she'll venture anything save that. Your spell upon Syth terrified her."
"Yet that spell didn't hold. Syth raises an army against me! What about this woman with the healing
touch?"
"You know about that?"
"Naturally I know!" Flayh barked. "Did you think yourself my only pair of eyes in the north? Where is
she? If she travels with Syth, then magical attacks upon him would be useless, freeing Mar-Yilot to work
her mischief! Speak!"
"She's gone!" Terril blurted out. "She left with Pelmen on some strange quest over a week ago!"
"What quest?" Flayh asked.
Terril trembled. "I could never obtain the details."
Flayh gazed at him a moment, somewhat disinterestedly, rather as a man might regard a chicken he's
about to behead. "Where were they going?" he asked casually. "Or did you miss that as well?"
"I... don't know."
Flayh smiled slightly. "I know where Pelmen is. He travels with an army from Chaomonous that passed
through Dragons-gate three days ago."
"With Queen Bronwynn?" Terril asked earnestly. "It's her army Syth plans to join!"
"Which means?" Flayh inquired in bored tones.
'That Pelmen and this witch healer will be together again with Syth..."
"Freeing Mar-Yilot to act." Flayh grunted. "And I believe you've told me something of this young queen,
as well?"
"She's a shaper," Terril murmured, recalling the rolling inferno that ended his dream of dominating
Chaomonous.
Flayh turned to the dark wizard. "You see, Joooms, why I need you. I have potentially three shapers
aligned against me, two certainly. And while I may have superior power, I lack tactical training. I fear
nothing from these armies. The tugoliths will demolish them on the plain. Should any warriors succeed by
chance in eluding the beasts and getting up the Down Road, they'll face King Pahd and the rather colorful
assemblage that continues to muster in the citythe cream of the Mar, I'm told?" He raised an inquiring
eyebrow, and Joooms nodded:
"There are many good warriors among Pahd's supporters."
"Fine. Certainly no one could penetrate that cordon to face
my own castle guard and their hideous leader. Excepting, of course, a shaper. A shaper could neutralize
my war beasts, perhaps even neutralize Pahd's army. We can't allow that to happen, Joooms. If that
happens, I'm afraid your children will suffer. And we don't want that."
Joooms's brown eyes were expressionlesswhich in fact
expressed a great deal. "No, Lord Flayh. We would not."
"Very well then. Suppose you tell me what I may expect?"
Joooms and Terril exchanged a quick look of mutual dismay.
How could they teach a powerful novice to free his imagination?
Joooms took a deep breath, but never got any farther. He was
interrupted by a horrible sound that made all of them slam their
hands over their ears and shut their eyes. It was like the baying
of thousands of dogs. When it ceased at last and Joooms and
Terril opened their eyes, Flayh had disappeared.
"What do you do next?" Serphimera asked.
"I don't know," Pelmen replied honestly. He had arranged the six pyramids in a hexagram on the cavern
floor and now stepped back to survey them. Serphimera pulled her robe more tightly around her
shoulders and shivered. The freezing wind only blew a little colder outside.
"You have no idea where to begin?"
"None." The word boomed through the cavern more loudly than he'd intended. Had he been more
attentive to his wife, he might have noticed how this clipped utterance added to her chill. His attention
remained fixed on the diamonds before him, however, as he sat quietly and waited.
Serphimera watched his face. She saw the intensity, the resolve in his clenched jaw, and the confident
anticipation glittering in his eyes. While he didn't know the secret that would fuse these fragments into a
single magnificent gem, he knew far more than had Sheth, that wondrous wizard of times past. He knew
he couldn't do this by his own power and that he didn't need to try. Sheth's contribution was lodged
within them, evidenced by their strange blue radiance. There was no need now for Pelmen's shaper
skilla good thing, since he'd always been a user of the shaper's craft, not a scholar of it. His
contribution had nothing to do with magic. Rather, he was to furnish the one element the weapon had
lacked when first it had been formed. Pelmen provided the faith.
He couldn't even say for sure what faith was. An attitude of mind? A method of interpreting events that
saw patterns in random occurrences? A type of magic all its own? A gift? He favored the last view
himself, believing that the gift of believing had been disclosed to him here on this very mountain by that
Power who unified all things. He hadn't sought itit had come unbidden. Yet it was there within him,
irrefutably a part of him. He believed. And that belief had robbed him of his free-dom, ripped away some
measure of his own identityand had given in their place the exhilaration of purpose.
His was not a false faith, some type of hypnosis, self-induced to escape the anxiety of living in an
imperfect world. He had experienced the Power flooding through him and wash-ing him clean as it
rushed on to accomplish its own purposes through him. At the same time, his relationship with this mighty
One remained a faith, and not a knowledge. Those moments of peak intensity, when he knew he was not
the shaper but the one being shaped, fled swiftly. And there remained too many feathery brushes with the
icy tendrils of doubt. It was not knowledge, but a faithbased in his own experience. Pelmen could do
many things, but all were meaningless in contrast to his exercising of this gift. Pelmen's faith was a
gateway. As Serphimera watched, it opened.
One moment he was Pelmen. The next he was something far, far more. The change dropped him to his
knees, and he rolled back onto his heels, beaming with elation. Serphimera knew the feeling well. She
also knew the sense of isolation it produced. She felt lonely, separated from her love by that very thing
which linked them together. But Serphimera bore no jealousy. After all, she possessed a faith of her own.
Like him, she waited.
Pelmen's face, already pale from the wintertime cold, began glowing, as if reflecting back the brilliance of
some white-hot beam of light. He didn't shield his eyes, but opened them wide with wonder, as if he
gazed, astonished, upon the landscape of a new world. At the same moment a tongue of blue flame
erupted from the midst of the six pyramids, forming a seventh, larger pyramid of fire that engulfed the
other six. Serphimera was forced at last to turn away and she faced the wall, where she watched her
shadow dance and leap in the flickering of that bright blue light. Still she waited.
When at last her shadow disappeared and she dared to look again at Pelmen's face, she found his eyes
were no longer fixed on forever, but on her. His face no longer glowed, but his smile had a radiance all its
own. "Now," he murmured, "I know."
Through the cavern's mouth came a horrendous noise, which rose above the mournful wailing of the
wind. It was the music of myriads of howling hounds, waiting impatiently for him to stop talking and start
doing.
"I'll need your hands," he muttered, and Serphimera knelt beside him. They each took three of the
objects and fitted them in place, then moved around to face each other and held the whole cluster
together. Pelmen cleared his mind, and all expres-sion faded from his face as he whispered, "In faith I
plead mat six be one, if so be the will of the Power." Slowly he pulled his hands away.
The pieces did not fall apart. They had melded into a single gem.
"Is it finished?" Serphimera whispered.
Pelmen turned the pointed object before his eyes, gazing into its sparkling depths. "It's fused together, at
least."
"And ready to be used?"
"Yes." Although he only murmured the words, the howling outside suddenly grew louder.
Serphimera's head snapped around and she glared fiercely at the mouth of the cave. "Have you no
patience?" she shouted, and though her human voice could scarcely have been heard above the
supernatural cacophony, the myriads of beasts grew quiet.
Pelmen continued to stare into the crystal. "They've been waiting a long time, my love"
"They can wait just a little bit longer."
Her passion surprised and pleased him. Fascinated as he was by this glowing thorn of gemstone, he set it
aside and looked at her. He wished he could hide the melancholy in his eyes. For all his actor's skill, he
could not. Besides, their love had been forged in integrity. He would not rob her of full participation in
this, his final struggle.
She swivelled to face him with that fluid economy of motion that had so entranced the legions of Lamath.
Far more regalthan any queen, the former priestess of the Dragonfaith looked at him frankly and asked,
"What happens next, my priest?"
Pelmen blinked. "Priest? I'm not the priest in this family. You are." He said it with a teasing chuckle.
Serphimera didn't smile. She folded her skirt under her as she sat on a rock. Then, with great gravity,
she said, "I was never the priest. And you always were."
"What are you saying?" he asked, still trying to brush aside the subject with a smile. "I was the prophet,
remember?"
"What is a prophet and what's a priest? There has been much confusion here, Pelmen. The prophet
forth-tells, rebukes, and proclaims. You were never that type."
"That's right," Pelmen fervently agreed. "That's why I passed that task on to Erri as quickly as morally
justifiable."
His continued levity annoyed her briefly. Then she subdued her own frustration and asked, "Why won't
you be serious?"
The trace of a smile drained from his face, leaving behind only the grim lines of resolve. "Because I know
where this discussion leads. And I suppose I'd like to play just a few moments longer."
"Do we have a few moments?" she asked pointedly.
"I don't know," he said sadly. "I guess not. Go ahead. I'm listening."
"The other aspect of the prophetic role is that of foretelling the future. Erri has some visionary sense. He
is a true prophet. In fact, there are several who are beginning to discover the ability. That was always my
foremost gift.I was the real prophet of Lamath." She paused then, to give him a chance to argue if he
chose.
He nodded. "Continue." It seemed as if he had heard all this before, but it nevertheless needed to be
voiced. Their conversation had taken on the texture of a ritual.
"I was called," she went on. "I responded. I obeyed. I interpreted events in the only way I couldand I
was wrong. But through me, misguided though I was, the Power roused Lamath. It was the Power at
work all along." Pelmen said nothing, for no response was necessary. "And when the time was
rightwhen the opportunity arosethe intertwining of personalities and events was revealed and the
pattern became visible. The Power is so creative! My contribution was not foreordained or
predetermined. It was and is that the Power
knows what the Power chooses to see and is creative enough to be able always to draw that pattern out
of chaos."
"And my role, too, was revealed to you?"
"You are the priest, Pelmen. You have always been the priest."
"The Priest of Lamath," Pelmen murmured.
"Not of Lamath. The Priest of the One Land. The one standing between the Power and the people. The
one who offers the sacrifice."
"Who offers the sacrifice?" Pelmen asked sharply. "Or the one who is the sacrifice?"
Outside, the dogs raised an enormous howl. Pelmen waved his hand toward the mouth of the cave.
"You hear their opinion!"
"But do you understand my meaning?"
"Far better, I think, than you could appreciate." Pelmen sighed. He rose from his seat and paced around
the cavern. "Call me whatever you chooseI've understood at least that much of my task since the day I
first comprehended those strange symbols in the book Erri so treasures. I ran from it then. Later I
realized the truth in what you've saidthe Power is infinitely creative. The path I choose is the pathway
to be chosen. I thought my past was to be ended with the dragon. Instead, it's to be ended here." He
stooped and picked up the thorn-shaped crystal. 'This weapon will absorb Flayh's power and leave him
as he was beforea very greedy, very petty little man. It will take Mar-Yilot's power, as well as that of
Joooms, Terril, and Mast, because it will free all these powers we shape to return to the Power at last.
Many of them have been waiting eagerly for a long, long time." The baying outside began again and drew
Pelmen's eyes back to the cave mouth. "They can hear every word we say," he murmured and he looked
back at Serphimera. "It seems strange that, with so many powers enfleshed out there as dogs, there
should remain so many that may still be shaped. They are all active now, Serphimera. They're stirred by
the possibility of a gateway. They were disappointed when Sheth failed. Yet who can blame the man?
The price of opening this gateway is the life force of a shaper, and nothing in Sheth's experience prepared
him to make such a sacrifice."
"Unlike you," Serphimera breathed.
Pelmen nodded. "Unlike me." He gazed at her a long time in silence. "Did you know all of this?" he
asked finally.
"Most of it," she admitted. "What wasn't revealed to me, I'd guessed."
"Then perhaps you realize that you still have a priestly task to perform."
"What task?" she said wearily.
"If I'm to be offered, who is to make the offering, if not you?"
Serphimera thought a long time before responding; then she shook her head. "I don't know if I can do
that."
Pelmen sighed, turning the crystal before his eyes. "Some-body must. The point of this thing must be
plunged into my"
"1 said I can't!" Serphimera flared, and a mournful howl arose from the distant dogs. She ignored them.
"I love you, Pelmen Dragonsbane! I'll not be the one to take your life!"
Pelmen glanced up at her hopefully. "You know this?" he asked.
It took her a moment to understand what he was asking. When she did, she slumped against the cave
wall. "Not by vision, no. I've seen nothing but our coming up here."
"Then it still could be," Pelmen said dreamily. "Must be."
"No!"
"There's no other way, Serphimera," he began, but she had slumped down into the dirt and turned her
face to the rock wall. "Serphimera," he called, but she wouldn't speak. Pelmen went to crouch beside her
and slipped his hands around her waist. "Later," he whispered. "We'll do it later."
She turned her tear-streaked face back to look at him and nodded. "Maybe, thenI'll be able. But
there's time, still. There's still some time..."
The dogs, Flayh thought to himself. Those hellish dogs had been his undoing. They'd betrayed him!
They'd used him to achieve fleshly form, all the while making him believe he was using them! But now
they'd betrayed their own cause. Who could mistake that infernal racket!
Somehow, they'd managed to get the six pieces of the an-cient weapons of Sheth reassembled. How?
Flayh raged. Half of those pieces had been lost for a millennium! The thought of
their reconstruction made him shiver. All powers fled! Flayh snarled a curse.
"Now they've actually found a shaper fool enough to reas-semble it for them," he muttered. "Fool! What
senseless dolt would not only sacrifice all his personal power, but his very life as well?" Of course, he
knew the answer. Among the active shapers, only Pelmen had the peculiar turn of mind that would render
martyrdom attractive. 'Too long with those Lamathian dragon lovers. But where is he now?" Flayh
demanded, pacing his tower cell. "If only these cursed hounds would quit their all-pervasive howling,
perhaps I could"
"In faith I plead that six be one, if so be the will of the Power."
The words stunned Flayh, setting him reeling. They were only a distant whisper, yet they echoed through
his apartment. "Close!" he cried. "This Pelmen has to be nearby! Walls, did you hear?"
of course! the High Fortress moaned. Humans may cover their ears, but this fortress has none! It must
hear everything! "Where does the sound come from?" Flayh demanded. Everywhere! the High
Fortress wailed. Flayh cursed the castle savagely and fetched out his atlas. While he hadn't traveled
widely beyond the secured roads of the three lands, he was familiar with every feature of their
topography. Like all merchants, he had excellent maps, and now he thumbed through the multicolored
pages, studying the details of the Mar's physical features. No clues came from his search, however, and
he slammed the book shut.
"Dogs, dogs," he muttered, walking toward a window. He flung aside a drape and stepped out onto a
balcony, discovering with surprise that it was night. The sky above him was pitch black, overcast by
clouds pregnant with snow, but the city below was alight with bonfires. The warriors of the Mar had
congregated in its streets and were celebrating tomorrow's vic-tory in advance.
"Meaningless," Flayh muttered to himself. That certain vic-tory would be fruitless unless he could
He heard something, something besides the agony of a castle or the moaning of excited dogs. Snatches
of some private con-versation echoed through his mind. Annoyed by the distracting
laughter of the celebrants below, Flayh shouted, "Silence!" Then he ducked back into his castle.
He closed out the city sounds and bent his attention to listening. After a moment, he smiled quietly at the
darkness. He could hear it clearly. He recognized one voice as that of Pelmen, and judged the other to
be that of the shaper's woman by the nature of the intimate words they exchanged. They had remade the
weapon, obviously, but had not yet put it to use. Flayh sat cross-legged upon his floor and propped his
head in his hands. He would listen. Something they would say would give him the key to their
whereabouts. Once given, he would be there, and they would experience a most unpleasant inter-ruption
of their intimacy!
If, that is, Flayh could hear them over that incessent baying! "Silence!" he shouted again, this time to the
host of howling dogs. They were unlikely, however, to listen. Their baying was every bit as impatient as
Flayh'sand every bit as inef-fective.
CHAPTER EIGHTEEN
Into the Tower
Rosha shivered by an open window. The night was nearly gone, yet the Autumn Lady had still not made
their appointed rendezvous. He glanced across the room to where the poor couple who owned this
house huddled together under a quilt. Mar-Yilot had hidden Pelmen and himself in this same dwelling the
night of their escape off of the High Plateau, and Rosha felt sure the couple had not been pleased to see
him again. This, however, was where Mar-Yilot had sent him, and here he would remain until she came.
"Shut that thing," Mar-Yilot snapped, and Rosha grunted
with shock and whirled around to face her. Once he controlled the pounding of his heart, he reached up
and closed the window. "I didn't see you fly in," he whispered. "Let's hope Flayh didn't, either," the
shaper murmured. "Thank you, friends," she said to the city dwellers who peered up at her from under
their blanket. "You'll be well rewarded. Come on!" she barked to Rosha as she unbolted the door.
Mar-Yilot had kept Rosha cloaked until he got into Ngandib, even as she'd ridden toward the city
herself. Once he was hidden, she'd taken wing to join him. Now she covered them both as they glided
down the alleyways. "Doesn't anybody here sleep?" she whispered as they encountered a rollicking
outdoor party.
"It's been like this all night," Rosha muttered.
"Why not?" Mar-Yilot snarled. "They won't be fighting in the morning. They'll leave that to the tugoliths."
She stopped suddenly and pointed.
Rosha looked up. The spires of the High Fortress loomed above them, glowing with the ruddy orange
reflection of hundreds of bonfires. Dread came upon Rosha like a huge spider, slowly eating its way up
through his stomach. He felt his gorge rising. He was sick with terror. Despite the frozen air, he was
sweating heavily, and his heart squirmed within his chest as if frantic to escape.
They turned a corner and ran into yet another street party. A table had been moved out of one of the
taverns, and a fat drunkard danced on top of it as it wobbled and rocked on the cobblestones. Mar-Yilot
turned to move away, but Rosha reached out to grab her hand and hold her. She jerked around and
glowered at him, then leaned up to his ear and snapped an inquiry in a fierce whisper.
Rosha pointed at the frolicking slob and sneered one word. "Pezi." The name meant nothing to the
sorceress, but it ob-viously meant much to the young warrior, for she saw him grab for his dagger.
"No!" Mar-Yilot snorted, and she grabbed, toonot for a dagger but for two fistfuls of his wiry black
hair. He nearly yelped aloud, but restrained himself as she pulled him swiftly back down the alleyway and
jerked his head down to her mouth. "That's right," she spat savagely in his ear, "butcher the little pig.
Announce to the whole city that we're here. Destroy Syth's plan with a wave of your blade. Nothing
could please me more. Because then I could leave you here in good conscience and get myself back to
Syth. Go ahead." She released him then, and he jumped back to stare at her, his eyes wide and white.
She glared up at him, paused for a moment to let her words soak in, then went on: "It's all temper with
you, isn't it? Just like Dorlyth. Oh, you're all nobility and responsibility in the planning stages, but when the
pressure starts mounting and the fear takes over, then impulse wins again, doesn't it? Well, go back and
stick that little fat person, whoever he is. Then some of your fear might go away, and you can concentrate
on how stupid you are!"
Rosha stood flatfooted and slightly stooped, his mouth open, his wide eyes blinking. When it seemed
she'd finished, he closed his mouth and swallowed. Then he turned his back to one of the alley's walls
and squatted against it. After a moment, Mar-Yilot repented of her ferocity and knelt beside him. She
didn't apologizeafter all, she'd only spoken the truthbut she did reach out to put a hand on his knee.
"Are you all right now?"
It seemed a long time before he responded. When he did, he sounded remarkably controlled. "Yes, I
believe I am." He turned his head then to look into her eyes. "My Lady," he breathed softly, "is there ever
a time... do you ever grow out of responding to stress like a child?"
"I don't know," the Autumn Lady murmured; she gave him a slow, sly smile. "I'm not that old yet." She
nodded down the alley. "Who was that?"
"Doesn't matter," Rosha said, and she was convinced he meant it. "Apparently your husband and my
wife will be here by morning. We wait until Flayh marches out his tugoliths before we go in?"
"That seems wisest, doesn't it? Unless you want to get flattened against the flagstones? I'll drop my
coverage of you as soon as we set foot inside. When that castle starts whining, we'll both be discovered
immediately. You just sprint up the stairs. Get as high up as you can as quickly as you can. I expect to be
otherwise engaged."
"What are you planning to do?"
The question surprised her. "Plan? I don't plan. You never plan a shaper battle. That's the easiest way to
get killed."
"No plan?" Rosha frowned. "Then how do you fight?"
"By impulse" Mar-Yilot started to say, then stopped her-self as she saw his quick grin. Chagrined, she
smiled too, then said, "All right. You fight like a childall reflex and fury and imagination. As I said, I
haven't grown out of it either." A raucous laugh rolled around the comer, and the auburn-haired woman
turned her head lazily toward it. "Perhaps," she sug-gested, "we could lure him away. I'm sure he
wouldn't be the only man murdered in this drunken city tonight."
"It isn't necessary," Rosha said shortly, putting Pezi out of his mind. "We're near the stable entrance.
Shall we wait here until dawn?"
Mar-Yilot nodded. "That should be soon," she mumbled. Then she peeked around the comer. "Hmm,"
she grunted. "Your fat enemy just passed out beneath the table. Get back," she added quickly, then
looked at Rosha to explain, "There are several slavers coming this way."
They hid and watched as three slavers approached the table where Pezi had danced.
Pezi was dimly aware of voices above him, but was feeling too relaxed to pay them any mind. He knew
he really ought to get up, but it was just too comfortable here. He'd spent the night moving from one
celebration to another, clearing each table of leftovers before moving on to the next. He couldn't
remember when he'd had so much fun. There were no dogs out here in the city, no slavers in
evidenceand, first and foremost, no cursed tugoliths. He'd been able to put his troubles behind him and
simply enjoy himself. Now he wanted only to be left alone to sleep. The cobblestones beneath his head
were hard, but they were far preferable to
"There you are!" roared a boisterous slaver as a pair of his comrades tossed the table aside. Pezi's eyes
flew open in time for him to see the bucketful of ice water dropping onto him, but not in time to jerk
aside. His blue and lime tunic was soaked through. Moments later it was frozen. Pezi couldn't move. The
three brigands each grabbed a part of himone seized him by the nostrils as if intending to rip his nose
offand hoisted him onto his feet. They booted him in the backside, and he had the choice of moving his
legs or diving face first into the cobblestones. He walked, his fat thighs flapping against the frozen material
of his leggings. It was excruciating.
"Where were you, Pezi?" one slaver asked in mocking con-cern. "We were worried about you!"
"Especially your friend Admon Faye," a second man added. "He sent us out here to find you."
"It's a wonder you didn't freeze to death," the first man went on.
"How could he freeze?" the third asked. "He's pickled from the inside out!"
The three rogues each punctuated their comment with a shove; thus Pezi made quick progress toward
the entrance of the stable. When he saw the large doorway yawning before him, he started resisting.
"No!" he pleaded, shivering. "I don't want"
"Afraid of the tugs? But they're your friends, Pezi."
"They'll eat me!"
"Not until you thaw out," the first slaver cackled as he kicked Pezi through the door. The fat merchant
tumbled into the straw. He stumbled to his feet just as Thuganlitha raised his giant head and turned to
look at him. Pezi squalled in terror. Despite his frozen legs, he outran the brigands to the staircase. He
raced upward with amazing speed for a fat man. But when he reached the topmost stair, he stopped
dead. Admon Faye was blocking his way.
"Hello, Pezi," the grotesque slaver said pleasantly. Then he clucked his tongue. "Where were you?" he
scolded. "I thought I'd made it clear that all slavers were confined to the High Fortress?"
"I'm no slaver," Pezi rumbled, his teeth chattering.
"Ah, that's right. But you are a member of the castle security force, and a most important member of
Lord Flayh's war cab-inet. How could we make responsible decisions without our esteemed tugolith
handler to advise us?"
"Me? You're the only one who can handle them!" the round-bellied merchant protested.
"Nonsense. Who brought them here? Who shepherded them through the wilderness? Who guided them
past the dragon? Who led them into battle?"
"Please, Admon Faye, I'm freezing to death, can't you"
"But of course. General Pezi. Go don your battle dress and get ready to lead your charges once more
into the fray."
"What?" Pezi wailed.
"We missed your counsel, but we naturally needed to make some decisions. The slavers will remain here
to protect the High Fortress. King Pahd will distribute his forces throughout the city. You will lead the
battle beasts down the mountain and retrieve them for us when the carnage is done."
"But I can't do that! They'll go mad! They'll wind up tram-pling me!"
"There is that possibility," Admon Faye admitted sadly.
"No! I won't do it!"
"Be sensible, Pezi. Someone has to do it. The only people they know are you and me. Since I'm needed
here in the High Fortress, that leaves only you to lead them."
"I'llI'll get shot with an arrow!"
"Don't be ridiculous! These brave invaders will all be far too busy running to discharge any arrows."
"I'm not going to do it!"
Admon Faye sighed. "Very well." He gestured to the three slavers who had brought Pezi in. "Throw him
over the rail."
"I've reconsidered!" Pezi said quickly as three pairs of hands grabbed him. "It's actually quite an
honor..,"
The ugly slaver smirked. "I knew I could count on you in our hour of need." Admon Faye turned his
back and brushed past Tibb, who had stood quietly behind him watching this little drama unfold. Pezi's
stricken gaze met Tibb's; hoping for some look of encouragement, he rolled his eyes meaningfully.
Tibb made no response. He just leaned casually against the castle wall, fingering the hilt of his dagger.
Rosha had never grown accustomed to waiting. He paced the alley, looking at the stable door
frequently, working men-tally to stifle his fears while preparing himself for victory.
"Can't you relax?" Mar-Yilot complained. "I've been work-ing night and day trying to get us both right
here and I'd like some rest before we go charging toward that door."
"You're charging in with me?"
"Of course. This way the castle will discover us both at once. If I can work fast enough, perhaps I can
make the place too miserable for it to give a proper alarm."
"I don't understand. If the castle is conscious of magic all around it, why can't it sense your coverage of
us?"
"Because I'm not covering us," Mar-Yilot said matter-of-factly. Rosha gasped in shock. "Why do you
think I told you to get back when those slavers appeared? It's best that you understand this now: Once
we get inside, you'll be on your own. Don't rely on meI'll be busy. Hushthe tugoliths."
They heard the great beasts snorting and grumbling as Pezi and Chimolitha led them out of the stable.
They sat motionless until the column was past; then they jumped up and ran for the stable door. The
heavy, sweet scent of tugolith hide filled their nostrils as they burst inside. Rosha's gift sword flashed
above his head, but he gave no other battle cry. No one blocked them.
The pair of slavers who had been assigned to guard this entrance had counted the task meaningless.
They sat on the bottom step of the staircase, exchanging jokes, and were in the midst of a laugh as
Rosha's blade scythed cleanly through both of them at one stroke. Before they toppled into each other's
arms, he had bounded to the top of the staircase.
Mar-Yilot Filled the vast room with fire. Everything com-bustiblestalls, straw, stairway, and
bodiesburst into flame. She hoped this would prevent anyone outside from getting in to reinforce the
castle garrison. Of course, it also cut off Rosha's escape, but she shrugged that off. If he lived that long,
they would work something out.
Instantly she was a butterfly, winging her way up and out of the inferno she had created and trying to
block out the anguished howling of the High Fortress. Reaching the stone corridor she transformed
herself again, and murmured, "You sure complain a lot," to the wailing walls. Then she was off after
Rosha, flinging fireballs in every direction and chuckling to herself. There was no question about it. She
enjoyed this exercise of power.
Rosha moved faster than the shouts of alarm. He raced through intersecting corridors, stopping to do
battle only if necessary. As a result, he gathered behind him a steadily grow-ing train of startled slavers,
buzzing like an aroused swarm of angry sugar-clawsps. He paid them no mind. Let the sorceress dispose
of them. He had a more important task.
He whirled around a corner, intending to charge quickly up a staircase. He couldn't reach it, though, for
he faced his first real obstacle. His path was blocked by the most formidable swordsman in all the
MarKing Pahd mod Pahd-el had de-cided not to venture from his castle.
Pahd's flesh was a chill, ghastly white. Grief had drained him of every appearance of life. He looked
bloodless and dead but he wasn't. That same grief had charged him with a rage that demanded
venting, and this onrushing warrior seemed the perfect target. Pahd's weapon was out. He was ready to
fight. But Rosha suddenly wasn't. "Stand aside, Pahd," Rosha said. "I've no quarrel with you."
"But I have with you!" Pahd seethed. "This is my fortress! My home! You invade it and ask me to stand
aside?"
"I've come after Flayh! Step aside!" The buzzing swarm was growing louder.
"After Flayh?" Pahd shrilled. "So that he can charge me with deserting him and torture her forever? Oh
no!" Pahd whis-tled his weapon up and out. Only Rosha's quick leap backward saved his head from
being severed from his neck. "Or maybe you want my Sarie to suffer?" Pahd screamed, and his sword
sliced outward again.
"Mad," Rosha muttered as he danced aside again. It was too late. The murderous swarm was upon him.
The bellowing mob of slavers rounded the corner, howling obscenities and violent promises. Rosha
hadn't time to raise his blade in self-defense. To his astonishment, he didn't need to. They raced right past
him, and soon turned a corner at the other end of the gallery. Mar-Yilot! He wasn't entirely on his own.
The mob had passed between Rosha and Pahd. Now the crazed king squinted his eyes, searching for
his disappeared foe. "Mod Dorlyth?" he grunted.
Rosha dodged to the side, hoping still to get up the staircase without battling Pahd. But although he
couldn't be seen, he could be heard, and Pahd responded to the sound of his shuf-fling feet by jumping
onto the staircase himself. "Cloaked, are you?" Pahd snarled. "Very well, then, come and slaughter me!
I've no shaper to give me aid. I'm sick to death of shapers! And I'm tired, Rosha. Come on, boy, we
used to be friends! Put me to bed at last! You know how I long for it!"
"Pahd, back off! Give us a chance and perhaps we can save her!"
"Save her?" Pahd moaned. "Only by death! Hack me down, Rosha, but promise me First you'll go slay
her as well!"
"Pahd, will you please"
Rosha again had to dive aside, for Pahd's eyes had suddenly caught sight of him and launched a savage
strike. The cloak was gone. Mar-Yilot was otherwise engaged.
Pahd jumped down from the stairs and Rosha scooted back out of his way. The king's expression had
changed. He no longer wore his grimace of grief. He smiled playfully instead, and beckoned at Rosha.
"Fight, lad. Make it interesting."
There was no help for it. Rosha fought.
The hallway filled with the clang of sword on sword and the grunts and growls of men at exercise. In the
manner of a master with his pupil, Pahd kept up a running critique: "Ex-cellent. A little too late. Follow
through, lad. Watch yourself." Despite the friendly words, the king's strokes whistled in with awesome
wickedness, and Rosha was driven back to the wall. He battled not only with Pahd but with himself as
well. He had no wish to harm this man. King Pahd was his own liege.
Time convinced him. It occurred to him abruptly just how much time he was wasting here. Hundreds,
perhaps thousands would die today, sacrificing themselves to make his mission possible. Pahd would just
have to join them.
Once the decision was made, it was over. Pahd had lost none of his excellence as a swordsman. Rosha
was simply better. And with a parry, a slight feint and a dancing step to the side, Rosha freed himself and
ran his sovereign through.
The king froze. Blood stained his tunic, then began to flow freely from the gash. "I'm sorry," Rosha
whispered.
"I'm not," Pahd responded, and he crumbled slowly to the floor. "My pillow..." he murmured. Then he
was gone.
Rosha was already on the next landing of the staircase.
Mar-Yilot worked quickly, and the howls of the High For-tress multiplied. But her attack had been
expected. Terril and Joooms were lying in wait; as soon as the fires began in the stable, they were asking
the walls for her whereabouts. They found her standing in the hallway twenty feet behind Rosha,
overseeing his encounter with Pahd. They launched their first strike.
She felt a lizard scuttle across the top of her shoes at the same instant that a horrible burning struck the
back of her neck and she knew the shaper battle had been joined. She took her altershape and glided
frantically up the corridor, searching for a spot to stand and fight. She found an arrow slit which would be
a convenient vent to the outside and took her human form beside it. Then she threw a wall of fire across
the hallway, just in time to singe the wings of the onrushing sugar-clawsp slightly. Terril transformed
himself and skidded along the floor of the corridor on his human bottom. He had the foresight to dodge
aside immediately or he would have been engulfed by another gout of fire from the hand of the sorceress.
Instantly, he bounced to his feet, and Mar-Yilot saw the rage in his eyes just before he disappeared. She
put her back to the window to prevent his getting between her and her escape route, then she cast a
glance at the ceiling. Joooms, she knew, preferred to drop from above when attacking in his lizard shape.
She then threw all her energy into penetrating Terril's cloak. She saw them both, for Joooms had cloaked
too, and they were evidently oblivious of each other, for they were about to bump together. Mar-Yilot
didn't pause. She tossed herself backward, issuing from the arrow-slit in her butterfly shape. One
opponent at a time was plenty, and Joooms, at least, could not pursue her out here.
He could hurl missiles, however, and he immediately rushed to the window slit and began dropping
things on her. She expected fire, and dodged downward accordingly. But the liz-ard was a wily foe; he'd
tossed a small ball of water instead, and it slammed down onto her with wing-crushing brutality.
Mar-Yilot plummeted toward the pavement of the courtyard below, fluttering madly to regain control of
her tiny body. She would have been easy prey in that moment to the burning acid of a clawsp attack.
Given their relative sizes, one mere touch of Terril's chemically coated exoskeleton would have paralyzed
her long enough for her two opponents to deliver the coup de grace. But Terril and Joooms were not
fighting in concert. They couldn't read one another's minds. Thus when Mar-Yilot dove out the window,
Terril shot out afterward, and Joooms's water projectile had also knocked him from the sky.
Mar-Yilot managed to soften her fall enough to hit the cobblestones on her human feet. Not so, Terril.
He struck the pavement hard enough to bounce twice. His hard shell with-stood the shock, but it dazed
him, and he lay there motionless for a moment. Mar-Yilot chanced to see him and raced over to try to
crush him underfoot. Hearing her approach, he took his human shape. Mar-Yilot growled in frustration at
the missed opportunity, but she did manage one well-placed kick before he disappeared. She kicked
again at where he'd been, but he'd had the presence of mind to roll aside. She could remain no longer.
Joooms was throwing down fire now, and flaming balls filled the air above her. Winged again, she soared
upward, dodging his fireworks and flying past him to a higher level of the High Fortress. She wanted to
check on Rosha.
She found him catching his breath on a stairway. "Are you all right?" she whispered. He just nodded. He
hadn't the wind to tell her he'd just battled five slavers upon this stair; if she glanced around, she could see
the evidence for herself. "Good," she grunted. "I don't know how much more I can help you. Both
Joooms and Terril are onto me" She paused, listening for a moment, then raced on. "Even now this
fortress is telling them where to find me. Filthy mudgecurdle!" she screamed at the walls, and the
corridors all around them filled with flames thrown from her hands. She was angry, and her fires burned
hot.
Rosha could hear nothing save his own breathing; but from the satisfied sneer on Mar-Yilot's face, he
gathered that the fortress was howling in agony. He felt none of her satisfaction. The castle's anguish
merely saddened him. Like Pahd, it was but a helpless Drax piece in a game played by shapers. Rosha
wondered idly if he was anything more?
"Must go," Mar-Yilot said. "They've traced me here. If I battle them in your presence, you'll get killed in
the backwash. Good luck." Mar-Yilot disappeared.
A moment later Rosha heard something whistle by his head. He gave no thought to it. That was shaper's
business, not his. He focused his attention on the battle to come; despite his weariness and the blood that
coated his blade, these had been only the preliminary matches. The real fight remained above him.
He lunged up the stairway and rounded the corner that would lead him to Flayh's tower. There he
skittered to a stop, struggling to control the nausea the sight of that face always stirred inside of him. His
way was blocked by Admon Faye.
"Well." The slaver smiled. "When Lord Flayh sent me word you were on your way up, I'd hoped I might
get the chance to renew old acquaintance. I'm sure the pleasure is all mine."
"I'm sure it must be, too," Rosha responded, controlling his stomach. "I can think of no one who might
take pleasure at the sight of you."
Admon Faye chuckled deep in his throat. "Fine. Well, boy, let's get to the business of gutting you."
Ordinarily they would have been evenly matched, for the slaver was an excellent swordsman. Although
Pahd had always held the reputation of the best in the land, he had never dueled Admon Faye, and the
slaver's reputation with the blade spanned all three lands. Rosha had battled the slaver before; but at that
time, he'd had the advantage. He'd surprised the burly brigand and had wounded him in the back before
that clash had truly begun. Even at that, Rosha had been hard-pressed to beat the man.
This time Rosha was at a disadvantage. His combat with Pahd had drained him, emotionally as well as
physically. Dis-patching the five slavers on the staircase had winded him fur-ther. Then he'd had to dash
up here. Admon Faye was fresh, and Rosha saw another slaver waiting behind to reinforce his ugly
master. Rosha wished Mar-Yilot would make another brief appearance, but she did not. He awaited the
slaver's attack, marshalling his strength. -
Admon Faye sneered. "You see this lad, little Tibb? He's caused me no end of troubles. Even tore a
hole in my back once, and I think he believed he'd killed me. Life is funny, Tibb. When you least expect
it, life presents you with an op-portunity for vengeance." The slaver danced lightly forward as he said this,
and his sword tip came whistling upward. Rosha knocked it away with a jarring clang, and they were into
it. The hallway echoed like a forge with the sounds of their ham-mering.
It was a narrow passageway, unsuited for swordplay. Here again Admon Faye had the advantage, for
Rosha threw frequent glances behind him, expecting a new crowd of slavers to rush up at any moment.
Admon Faye had the security of protected flanks. He also held a shorter, more maneuverable blade. A
chuckle rumbled out of him. He was enjoying this.
Rosha kept Admon Faye back with short thrusts of his greatsword, but the slaver proved nimble. He
dodged each of Rosha's jabs, and kept advancing, watching for an opening. He used his ugly smile as a
psychological bludgeon, and his eyes bored into those of his young opponent. Rosha was ob-viously
physically weary. Admon Faye sought ways to tire him mentally as well. His eyes darted over Rosha's
shoulder, forc-ing Rosha to step backward and check behind him. When the young warrior's head
snapped forward, Admon Faye had ad-vanced another step, and was snickering. A moment later the
slaver did this again, with the same result.
"Are you going to back all the way out of the castle?" The slaver grinned. Rosha answered by springing
forward. Admon Faye dodged. At the same moment, he flicked his sword across Rosha's face. Only the
warrior's quick reflexes saved the tip of his nose. But once more he'd lost ground. He was already feeling
exhausted.
Admon Faye bobbed his head, glancing again over Rosha's shoulder. "There's no one there!" the young
swordsman bel-lowed, refusing to be duped again.
"Good," Admon Faye soothed mockingly. "Don't look behind you. Why should there be any slavers
behind you, responding to the sound of swords clashing in the heart of the fortress?"
Rosha took a chance. He lunged forward mightily, hoping to skewer his adversary. It was not a
reasoned maneuver, nor did it prove successful. Admon Faye danced aside again, but this time he threw
out a mailed hand to trap Rosha's sword against the wall. He also threw a devastating kick into Rosha's
stomach, and the young warrior came loose from his weapon. Admon Faye let the trapped blade clatter
to the floor, following up his kick with a diving tackle that knocked Rosha onto his back. They wrestled
briefly, but Admon Faye clearly had the upper hand. Rosha felt the slaver's blade against his throat, and
all the fight drained out of him. He'd done his best. He'd lost. He wished he'd had a chance to kiss
Bronwynn good-bye and wondered briefly if she was even now being trampled by a tugolith...
Rosha waited, but the expected slash never came. The blade
lay across his neck, and the slaver's obscene smile remained fixed upon that loathsome face above him,
but Admon Faye didn't kill him. Instead, the slaver toppled over.
Rosha wrestled himself away, grabbing for his dagger. By the time he got it out, he realized he didn't
need it. He glanced up at the slaver's killer, his jaw sagging open in surprise.
"He's dead," Tibb explained, waving toward the body.
Rosha stared at Tibb in shock.
"I've been planning to kill him a long time, but this was my first chance. You see, he let my best friend
die. My only friend." Rosha closed his mouth, but kept on staring. "He's right. Life gives you the
opportunity for vengeance at the most unexpected times. And mine was double, because I got to rob him
of his." Tibb looked up at Rosha and smiled slightly. "You remember me?"
"No," Rosha murmured.
"You kicked a sword out of my hand once. In Dragonsgate. Nah, you wouldn't remember. I know your
wife, though. Nice lady."
Rosha stayed in his place, clutching his knife and watching Tibb's movements. Tibb gazed back at the
slaver's body. "It went too fast, though. I wish I'd had time to make him suffer. I wish he'd died a little
slower, so I could say, 'Remember Pinter? Well, this is little Tibb's revenge!' That's how I had it planned
out in my mind. But then, if I'd done that, you wouldn't be alive now, would you?"
"No," Rosha murmured, still watching the weapon in Tibb's hand.
Tibb glanced back at him and suddenly understood. "Oh, no! Look, I'm not getting in your way. I know
you're after the little wizard at the top of the stairs. I wish you luck you're going to need it. I'm just
standing here trying to figure out how you can work and plan and scheme for something so long, and then
it's over so fast. It's not fair..."
Rosha didn't hear Tibb's ruminations. He had already scooped up his sword and bounded up the last
stairway.
CHAPTER NINETEEN
A Feast Fit for a Tugolith
Syth pointed. Although dawn was still several hours away, the top of the High Plateau could be seen for
miles, lighted as it was by huge bonfires.
"Is the city burning?" Joss asked.
"No," Dorlyth explained. "It's an old customburning the bonfires after victory. Only in this case, they're
so certain of triumph that they're celebrating the night before."
"A psychological ploy?" the general suggested, and Syth snorted with grim amusement.
"Hardly. You don't realize yet, General, what a task we face."
"Perhaps that is true. I realize enough, however, to suggest once more that we withdraw." Joss leaned
forward. "If there's no chance to win, why not fight another day?"
"Let's ride on," Bronwynn growled to Syth, ignoring her general yet again.
"One moment," Syth said, and he turned to look at Dorlyth. "You're hurting, my friend. I can tell by the
way you sit in your saddle."
"You scald your backside and see how well you ride!" Dorlyth joked, but Syth would not return the
smile. He kept his eyes on Dorlyth until the old warrior was forced to admit, "All right, so it hurts. You
think that will keep me from this battle?"
"No," Syth murmured, "but I think it ought to slow your getting there. We must hurry, Dorlyth, if we're to
reach the base of the plateau by dawn. You can't keep pace. Why not slacken your speed and lead our
reinforcements?"
Dorlyth paused then nodded. "I'll not argue, although I'd like to."
Syth barked instructions to his allies, and a Mari contingent broke off from the main force to join
Dorlyth. Then the united armies were off again, hastening toward the brightly lighted plateau.
They made good progress, reaching the High Plateau as dawn seeped slowly through the snow-laden
clouds. The chill, somber light befitted the grim scene as Syth, Bronwynn and Joss rode through the
wreckage of Kam's castle. Syth had thought himself prepared for the worst. He discovered that he
wasn't. "Gone," he groaned in disbelief. "All of it! Every-thing's completely gone!"
Joss ventured no comment. His counsel had been rejected regularly. He doubted anyone cared to hear
his opinion this time.
Bronwynn, too, held her peace. She gazed up the enormous walls of the plateau, trying to make out the
High Fortress itself. There, somewhere, was Rosha. It was there she needed to go.
"Suicidal," Syth whispered softly.
Joss couldn't hold his tongue. "I believe I've made use of the same word," he muttered under his breath.
"What kind of evil beasts do such a thing?" the Lord Seriliath pleaded to the gray heavens.
"The beasts aren't evil. Their keepers are," Bronwynn said flatly. She felt nothing for this place nor for
the grand family that had called it home. To her they were only names. But Syth felt much, and her
passionless statement sparked his tem-per.
"You're an expert on these tugoliths?" he snapped.
Bronwynn looked at him. "I've offended you. I'm sorry. Pardon my callous manner, but I only stated a
fact."
Syth ignored her apology and issued a brisk order. "Joss, prepare your people to flee at the first sign of
these beasts. I'll go ready mine to do the same."
"I thought we had planned this frontal assault to distract Flayh's attention from his own fortress," the
queen said quietly.
"When he has beasts who can do this to send against us? Look at this! There's not a wall standing! Not
a single bone in sight! Consumed. The House of Kam has been consumed! You wish that fate upon your
Golden Throng?"
"I thought you knew what we were facing, Syth."
"I thought I did, too," he mumbled. "In any case, we've done what we could. If we succeed in drawing
Flayh's army out, perhaps that's something. I don't see how sacrificing our people to these monsters can
lend any further aid."
"If by our standing we can win Rosha another"
"Look!" Joss shouted, and his finger stabbed upward toward the top of the Down Road.
The beasts had begun their descent. They moved ponder-ously, as befitted animals of such enormous
size. That was deceptive, however, for their strides were of tremendous length. Before any of the three
could shake off the shock, the column was halfway down the mountain.
"Fly!" Syth cried, spurring his steed and wheeling toward his warriors.
Joss flicked his gaze to his queen. Despite Syth's order, he had not forgotten who commanded him. "Do
it," Bronwynn grunted. Then she dug her heels into the flanks of her own war horse and rode
harddirectly for the foot of the Down Road.
"Bronwynn!" Joss bellowed and, for the first time in his memory, he disobeyed his sworn ruler. He
whipped his steed and galloped after her.
They raced across the plain, the tails of their horses stream-ing in the wind. Less than a hundred yards
short of the road, Joss drew alongside Bronwynn and made a grab for her bridle. She reined in and
whirled around to face him, her eyes wide with outrage. "What are you doing?" she demanded.
"What are you doing?" he shouted back.
"I gave you a command! Obey me!"
"My first duty is to save my queen! These beasts are going to eat you!"
"No, they're not!" she spat, and she spurred her horse for-ward, flicking her reins from his grasp.
"How do you know?" Joss cried, aghast.
"Because I'm going to talk them out of it!"
Joss sat stiffly in his saddle, watching helplessly as Bron-wynn turned onto the Down Road and drew up
face-to-face with the leading tugolith. He shook his head in grief. "Just like your father," he murmured
mournfully.
By the time they got halfway down the mountain, Pezi felt rather proud of himself. In fact, he was even
feeling kindly toward Admon Faye After all, but for the slaver's insistence, Pezi would be missing this
glorious moment. As it was, he had the best of seats for watching the final victory. He cackled as the
warriors below caught sight of his descending beasts and broke ranks. The slaver had been right, of
course. After the destruction of Kam's castle, no one would be fool enough to challenge Pezi's beasties.
He would certainly receive an exalted place within Flayh's expansive dominion. After all, using tug-oliths
as battle beasts had been his idea! When the history of this time was written, Pezi felt sure he would loom
large upon the pages.
What realm would he be awarded? Lamath, perhaps? He could imagine himself sealed upon the throne
of the grand old palace, surrounded by beautiful courtesans! Each of them would be holding trays piled
high with the most succulent of victual delicacies. He could almost smell the mingling aromas of rare
meats and subtle but substantial vegetables...
So lost was Pezi in this delicious daydream that he didn't notice the onrushing rider. Chimolitha had to
point Bronwynn out to him.
"Man?" Chim called. Try as she might, Chimolitha simply could never remember Pezi's nameand her
memory was exceptionally accurate. "One is coming toward us."
"What?" Pezi grunted, his eyes still closed. "One what?"
"A rider."
The startling thought caught Pezi off guard. "Ridiculous!" He snorted as he opened his eyes. Then he
beheld the oncoming queen, and angrily shouted, "Absurd!" She refused to disap-pear. "Help!" Pezi
squealed. He stood up on Chimolitha's head and scrambled around to look back over her tail in search
of an escape route. All he saw was a column of gleaming horns. One of those, he knew, belonged to
Thuganlitha.
"Man," Chimolitha complained with long-suffering pa-tience. "You're standing in my eye."
"Sorry," Pezi said, and he sat down quickly and pivoted upon his huge rump to face forward again. Then
he cringed in fear. Despite the fact that he sat atop what was currently the most powerful weapon in the
world, over which he held at least nominal control, and the fact that the lone warrior he faced was a
rather slightly built woman, Pezi's heart quailed. Gloom descended upon him. And when Bronwynn spat
out her brisk challenge, he was too distraught to argue.
"Stand still!" Bronwynn commanded the tugolith. When the beast heard no countering command from
above, Chimolitha obeyed. "Where are you going?" the queen of Chaomonous demanded.
When Pezi still didn't answer, Chimolitha decided she must. "Down," the tugolith replied.
"Why?" Bronwynn asked sharply.
"To kill those people," the tugolith said, waving her horn toward the plain.
Once again, Bronwynn demanded to know, "Why?"
Chimolitha, while quite bright for a tugolith, was hardly quick by human standards. Nevertheless, the
greatest genius among generals could not have given a more intelligent reply. "I don't know."
"Did someone tell you to?" Bronwynn asked.
"Someone was going to," the tugolith answered.
"Who?" Bronwynn inquired, and the huge animal rolled her eyes upward to indicate the mass of
quivering flesh that trem-bled atop her skull.
"Pezi!" Bronwynn spat, as if his name was a piece of sew-age. "So it's you, is it?"
"What are you going to do with me?" he implored.
"What am I going to do with you? You appear to hold the reins of power, seated as you are astride this
massive living weapon. What do you intend to do to me?"
Her question jogged Pezi somehow, reminding him what enormous power he did indeed possess. "Eat
her!" he shouted to Chimolitha. "Eat her now!"
Chimolitha again rolled her eyes up to look at him. "Why? I like her."
A great deal of suffering and bloodshed might have been averted then had certain tugoliths up the hill
exhibited a tiny bit of patience. But tugoliths were not a patient breed, being short on understanding and
long on means of expressing irri-tation. Fifteen tugoliths up the road, Thuganlitha expressed his by homing
the beast in front of him. A chain reaction of hom-ings ensued.
When the tug behind Chimolitha rammed its single gleaming
tusk into her hind quarters, she reacted instinctively. She jumped forward several paces. Her huge body
landed only a couple of feet in front of Bronwynn's horseor rather, where Bron-wynn's horse had
stood.
At the sight of that monster hurtling toward him, Bron-wynn's steed turned tail and raced back down the
Down Road. The queen could not control him, which was perhaps a good thing. Thuganlitha had not
been content with homing his pre-decessor just once. As the gored flanks multiplied, the herd of tugoliths
stampeded down the remainder of the incline. Bron-wynn would surely have been tossed aside or
crushed, had her terrified horse not carried her out of the danger.
They broke onto the battlefield, a phalanx of rampaging, wounded monsters. They fanned out across the
plain, some running aimlessly, others with deadly purpose. They drove before them a long wave of fleeing
warriors warned to run. Some had nevertheless hesitated to watch Bronwynn's confer-ence with the
beasts. Those who had delayed too long now paid with their lives.
Oblivious to the thunderlike pounding of tugolith hooves around him, General Joss flogged his war horse
toward Bronwynn's side. He avoided being trampled in the same man-ner he'd avoided being skewered
by an arrow in times past by ignoring the danger and attending to duty. He rode with the fatalistic
assurance that when it was time for him to die he would die, and no sooner. He reached his queen's side
just as she managed to regain control of her spooked animal. "My Lady, we must"
"Get to the leader!" Bronwynn screamed, cutting him off. "That's the only way to turn them!"
Joss craned around to look. "Which one?" he cried.
"There!" the queen shouted, spurring her horse forward. "The one with a fat lump on its head!"
Pezi clung to Chimolitha's scaly hide by every means avail-able arms, legs, toes, fingers, and teeth.
He'd even buried his nose in a crevice between two scales. He heard the wind swishing around him, but
he didn't feel it. He was in shock. He wondered where they were, but dared not raise his head to look.
For a while, he feared that they would race on forever, but soon he felt the beast below him slowing
down. He pleaded around teeth clenched upon a bony projection that she not stop suddenly.
Chimolitha came at last to a standstill, and the fat merchant warily raised his head and looked around.
What he saw made him weep with frustration. The interfering woman was riding toward them again! He
wasted no time in getting down from his perch. He didn't know what Bronwynn's intentions might be, but
they certainly could include nothing advantageous to himself. He'd been fortunate enough to survive one
headlong charge across this battlefield. He wouldn't subject his over-worked heart to another. It took
only a moment for him to establish the quickest route back to the Down Road. Then Pezi started running.
Chimolitha seemed rather embarrassed as Bronwynn raced up to greet her. "They stuck me," she started
to explain.
"No time for that!" the queen cried breathlessly. She threw up her hand and pointed at those tugoliths
who were gleefully mauling warriors. "Can you stop that?" she cried.
Chimolitha swivelled her head to look, then turned back to the queen and shrugged her enormous
shoulders. "I will try."
For a beast that appeared so clumsy and slow, Chimolitha moved with amazing speed. Bronwynn
charged along in the tugoliths' wake with Joss in frantic pursuit. The animal ob-viously took her
commitments seriously. One by one, she chased down her peers, got their attention with a quick prick of
the flanks, then demanded they stop squashing people. Only one gave her any real objection. Not
surprisingly, that one was Thuganlitha.
"Stop!" Chimolitha shouted as she rumbled up beside him.
Thug was busily goring a supply wagon. He'd already con-sumed its contents, including the unfortunate
driver. At first he pretended not to understand. "What?"
"Stop!" Chimolitha repeated.
Thug looked around, surveying all the wonderful people and wagons remaining to be demolished.
"Why?" he whined.
This was a question Chimolitha had not yet faced. She turned to look at Bronwynn, who stood in her
stirrups watching this confrontation with wide eyes. "Why?" Chimolitha asked the young queen.
"Why! Because it's so dreadfully wrong! It's senseless slaughter! It's..." she paused, searching for the
proper words. "It's bad!" Bronwynn blurted, and left it at that.
The tugolith brightened, and turned back to Thuganlitha. "It's bad," Chimolitha explained.
Thuganlitha frowned. Then a wicked little smile curled the corners of his leathery lips. "I like bad."
That shocked Chimolitha. "What?" she demanded, and the recalcitrant tug repeated more forcefully, "I
like bad!"
"No!" Chimolitha growled.
"Yes!" Thug roared back.
"No!" Chim bellowed.
"Yes!" Thuganlitha thundered. To emphasize his point, he rammed his horn through the heavy wagon and
flipped it over as effortlessly as if it had been a dried leaf.
Chimolitha lowered her head and stabbed. The sharp tip of her horn pierced deeply into Thuganlitha's
hindquarters.
Thug screamed and bolted forward, crashing through the remains of the wagon and dashing onward
another fifty feet before turning back to face his nemesis. His giant eyes were bloody with rage, and his
voice tore the sky like a trumpet as he shouted at Chimolitha, "I'll kill you!" Evidently, however, he wasn't
ready to do that immediately. He wheeled around and shot off across the field, heading for the road up
the cliff face. He would go back up to the top of the mountain. There, he remembered, were men who
would let him play.
Chimolitha looked back at Bronwynn. "He's going up," she explained.
Bronwynn seized the opportunity. "I want to go up, too. Will you lead me there?"
With a curt nod of assent Chimolitha started off across the field, and Bronwynn swiftly followed her.
Joss turned back at last toward his fleeing army, scanning the retreating line in search of a trumpeter.
Moments later he'd found one, and the horns of Chaomonous echoed across the bloodstained, trampled
snow.
"I'm safe!" Pezi cried aloud as he reached the foot of Down Road. There he fell on his face in the snow
and thanked what-ever powers had given him the strength to waddle across that vast field of battle. He'd
not believed he would make it, what with tugoliths whizzing here and there around him and bodies
and equipment tripping him up. His whole life had passed before himseveral times, in fact, for it took
Pezi a lot longer to cover that wasteland of half-eaten carcasses than it might have a man who was in
shape. But he'd made it! His tugoliths were busy doing their nasty work, but there were still plenty of
warriors left out on the plain to eat, so they would not finish up until long after he was back inside the
High Fortress. Then he could sit back, enjoy a well-deserved victory feast, and start planning how he
would rule his new kingdom.
As he got to his feet and started his climb, he wore a smile almost as broad as his belly. He'd come a
long way from his days as a petty merchant in Chaomonous. Yes, sir, there was still room at the top for
the tough few who were willing to work to make their dreams come true.
He heard a rumble behind him. He couldn't believe it. He jerked around in astonishment and froze in
place. Thuganlitha! It was Thuganlitha! And he had nowhere to run!
Thug was still snorting with rage when he turned up the road. When he saw Pezi standing there waiting
for him, Thug, too, froze in astonishment. This was incredibly good fortune! Thuganlitha smiled and
started slowly toward the tubby little merchant.
"Chimolitha?" Pezi croaked, but his voice had been stolen away by terror. "Help?" he whispered again.
He finally got his legs to move and started backing away up the road. Al-though his voice was gone, his
mind remained quite active. It had been right here that Queen Bronwynn had talked Chimo-litha out of
attacking her. If she could do it, perhaps he could do the same! He summoned his courage, found his
voice, and shouted, "You'd better not eat me!"
Thuganlitha stopped moving and frowned. "Why not?" he asked.
"Because I'd be dead!" Pezi explained crossly.
"You would?" Thug replied and he puzzled over that a moment. He knew about eating and he knew
about dead, but he'd really not connected those two things in his mind.
"That's right," Pezi went on, gaining confidence. "And that would be most unpleasant."
Thuganlitha looked at him. "Un-plea..."
"Unpleasant," Pezi reiterated.
"What's that?" the tugolith demanded belligerently.
"Unpleasant? Why, you know. Terrible! Horrible! Bad!" "Bad?" said Thuganlitha, perking up. "Yes,"
Pezi affirmed. "Bad"
Pezi had said the wrong word. Thuganlitha's naughty smile returned. "I like bad," he said, and he started
toward Pezi, his great jaws sagging open.
"You" Pezi choked "you what?"
"I like to do bad!" Thuganlitha smiled wickedly.
"Wait!" Pezi cried, backing away earnestly. "Let me figure this out! Youyou like to do bad things, so if
eating me is bad then you" Pezi suddenly stood his ground and an-nounced, "You cannot eat me!" His
new confidence made Thuganlitha pause.
"Why not?" the tugolith snorted.
"Because! I am a bad man. To eat me would be a good act. Therefore, since you like to do bad, you
don't want to eat me, because that would be good! It's a moral issue, you see."
Thuganlitha was confused. "I don't understand," he com-plained, and Pezi's spirits brightened.
"Ah, yes, but you don't want to understand. Understanding is good, and since you want to do bad, then
understanding is not for you at all." As he said this Pezi casually resumed backing away. It was
impractical, he knew, to expect that he could hold the beast in check until he could back all the way up
the road. His only hope rested on so confusing the tugolith that it would be forced to sit down and think.
Then he could escapeor so he hoped!
Thuganlitha plodded up the hill after Pezi, his huge forehead furrowed in thought. "I can't eat you..." he
said.
"That's right!" Pezi prompted.
"... because you are bad."
"I am!" Pezi agreed enthusiastically. "Yes, indeed, I am!"
"I'm confused!" Thuganlitha bellowed.
"Good!" Pezi called, looking over his shoulder.
"Confused is good?" Thuganlitha grinned, his sharp teeth gleaming. He gazed at Pezi hungrily. "You
confuse me!"
Something in the monster's tone made Pezi turn around and face the beast again. Thuganlitha was
salivating, and Pezi's anxiety level shot up. "Yes?" he whined.
"So you're good!" the tugolith trumpeted happily and he went on merrily, "I can eat you!"
"No...!" the fat merchant whined plaintively, but it was too late. He suddenly visualized what his own
mouth had looked like to his fork all these years
Then he was gone. Thuganlitha ate Pezi in two huge bites. The merchant who'd devoted a lifetime to
gobbling goodies had become a goody himselfand got gobbled.Lord Syth heard the horns of
Chaomonous and swung his charger around. He couldn't imagine what had happened, but he spent no
time pondering it. He gave a quick order and Mari trumpets answered those of their southern
counterparts. The army of the north wheeled and galloped for the High Plateau.
Syth's retreat had been more orderly than that of the Golden Throng. As a result, there had been fewer
Mari casualties. Though they had further to come, his warriors were better prepared for battle. A couple
of hundred Chaons preceded them up the road, eagerly following the lead of their queen. Syth honored
their courage, but feared for them. If Pahd had properly marshalled his forces in the streets of the city
above, these undisciplined Chaons stood little chance of surviving. Perhaps it was prejudice, but Syth
thought it only reasonable that it would be his own force, skilled and experienced in the Mari way of
battle, who would make the differenceassuming, of course, they were not all swept off the Down Road
by some new act of sorcery.
Rocks and garbage began dropping from the cliffs. "Shields up!" Syth ordered, but most of his men had
already had the good sense to cover themselves. No boiling oil or burning pitch fell yet. That made sense.
King Pahd had never expected them to advance this far, and had not prepared for such. Syth smiled
grimly and raised his own shield against the fusillade of refuse.
There was now as much confusion on top of the plateau as there had been on the plain below less than
an hour before. The destruction of the enemy by the tugolith had been so certain that no one had
established any defensive strategy. Since there had never been any previous assault upon the city itself,
the jorls and shurls loyal to Pahd were uncertain what its weak points would be. There were many things
that could be done, of course, and not one of them thought for a moment that Syth and his allies would
actually succeed in taking Ngandib. But
decisions needed to be made immediately-and King Pahd was not to be found.
There was no shortage of leaders shouting orders. Most prominent among them was Janos, Pahd's
cousin, who had long been Jorl of the Nethermar and was also the newly elected Citylord of Carlog. His
contingent was the largest, aside from that from the capital city itself, and his intimacy with the king
demanded respect. But Janos was arrogant and rude, and the men of the High City had never liked him.
Despite this present threat, they chose to wait for Pahd to lead them. A messenger was dispatched to the
fortress to inform the king of these de-velopments.
Thuganlitha had already reached the top of the road when the rider returned with startling news. He
couldn't get into the castle, but those on the walls had shouted down that King Pahd was dead. It was
rumored that he'd been slain by traitors among his own palace guard. As the tugolith churned toward
them, the men of the city quailed and fled. In its moment of crisis, the Mar was leaderless.
Janos was enraged, both by their cowardice and their un-willingness to accept his leadership. He barked
an order, and those who served him lined up across the main thoroughfare, facing the Down Road. They
didn't have long to wait.
Chimolitha rumbled up onto the High Plateau. Not two steps behind the huge beast came Queen
Bronwynn. Janos was shocked. He'd expected warriors, not a woman. Yet this woman was evidently a
warrior as well. Her visage was fierce, and her tawny hair streamed from beneath a golden helmet. Her
sword was out, and now she waved it toward the High Fortress and shrieked a savage battle cry. Gilded
soldiers were spilling onto the plateau behind her. Janos raised his weapon and gave the command to
charge.
Only a few obeyed him, for obvious reasons. Chimolitha was lumbering toward them, the golden queen
at her side. Suddenly the beast stopped.
"Thug has gone back," the tug explained apologetically to Bronwynn.
"Then go find him!" Bronwynn shouted, adrenaline coursing through her in anticipation of battle. "I'll
follow you there!"
"I can't," the tugolith told her.
"Why not?"
"There are men in the way."
It took Bronwynn a moment to comprehend the problem. She glanced at Janos's line, then cried, "Just
run them down!"
Chimolitha gave the queen her most puzzled look. "I can't," she whined again, and Bronwynn demanded
to know why. "It's bad," Chimolitha explained, and her huge eyes pleaded with Bronwynn for
understanding. Chimolitha had two great virtuesa moral sense and a memory. If it was wrong to
squash men on the field below, it was wrong to do so now. The young queen suddenly understood.
"You're right, my friend. This is our battle. Stay here." Bronwynn wheeled her horse back toward the
High Fortress and screamed the command to attack. It was lost in the noises of warfare, for already the
flanks had clashed together. She spurred her horse forward and closed the gap in the middle, riding hard
for Janos. Her subjects swarmed in behind her, giving the watching tugolith a wide berth. As this wave
broke on the defensive wall, the Mari warriors had to give ground. They were quickly reinforced,
however, by the men of the city. Despite their hatred for Flayh and mistrust for Janos, they hated
foreigners more. Those Chaons were invading their home!
Janos smirked as the woman rode toward him, expecting easy prey. He was unprepared for her shrewd
handling of a blade. He had no way of knowing she'd been schooled in the arts of war by Admon Faye
himself. Eventually his superior size and strength prevailed, and he was able to drive her back. He
couldn't manage to wound her, however, nor to knock her from her steed.
Bronwynn broke off and moved further down the line. Her concern was not to win individual duals, but
to get through this wall of Maris and closer to Rosha. She was not a strategist. She could provide little
leadership for her valiant cohorts, ex-cepting that of example. So believing, she whirled toward a new
opponent and attacked him. This man was less fortunate than Janos. He dropped from his saddle,
gushing blood.
Syth and his warriors had finally reached the top of the road. A plan had already formed in his mind, and
a quick glance at the situation assured him it had a chance of working. He broke off toward the right,
leading his riders around the northern rim of the plateau.
Janos saw the maneuver. "Qirl! Ngarl!" he shouted to a pair
of his lords still in the rear. "Mod Syth is circling! Cut him off!" Men sprang quickly to obey. The battle
for Ngandib had started to radiate outward through the city.
In the midst of the struggle, Chimolitha stood calmly in her place. She gave little heed to the confusion all
around her. She didn't understand any of it, but she was used to not under-standing the things that
mankind did. She had done what she'd been told by a lady that she liked. That was good. And the lady
had told her to wait here. She gazed placidly over the heads of the combatants at the high-gabled
townhouses along the street and waited.
"Why me?" Joooms asked quietly. "Why not you?"
"Because Lord Flayh put me in charge, and I'm command-ing you to do it!" Terril thundered.
"The man must be beside himself," the dark wizard said dryly. "And so must you, to choose to battle
Mar-Yilot on your own and let me play with the armies. But fair enough. I'll be in the city, if you need
me."
"I can handle her by myself!" the twin-killer shouted, and Joooms's only response was a chuckle that
disappeared as he took his altershape. An instant later the lizard had skittered down a stairwell and was
gone.
She's behind you, the High Fortress warned.
Terril instinctively cloaked himself and dodged aside. A sword that would certainly have impaled him
whizzed on down the corridor, and Mar-Yilot muttered a new string of curses at the castle. Terril
pinpointed the source of the sound. He dropped his cloak long enough to shoot a thought at a beam right
above her invisible form. It ripped out of the wall and crashed to the floor, bringing a large chunk of the
floor above with it. Through the dust, Terril made out a butterfly gliding upward. It escaped through the
newly made hole in the ceiling into the next level, and it was Terril's turn to swear.
You pair of foul insects! The High Fortress protested. Is it not enough to torment this house? Must
you wreck its struc-ture as well?
Terril had no time to argue. Trapped by his own choosing in a singlehanded struggle for his life, he had
time only to respond to attacks. And he was terrified by the possibilities.
Joooms had already started down the stable stairs when he discovered they were no longer there. They
had been burned away by Mar-Yilot's fire. He fell into the ashes. It was a long drop, but his lizard form
absorbed such shocks well. He rolled onto his four legs with a flick of his tail and looked around.
He'd come in search of a horse. There were none. What he did see was a tugolith, who appeared to be
cowering in a charred corner. "Hello there," he said, taking his human shape right in Thuganlitha's face.
The tug grunted in surprise, and backed further into the corner. "Aren't you supposed to be mauling
people out on the battlefield?"
The tugolith seemed chagrined. "I can't," Thuganlitha an-swered.
"Why not?"
"Chimolitha stuck me."
"I see." Joooms nodded. "Well I happen to need a mount and there are no horses available. Would you
be willing to carry me?"
Thuganlitha didn't know how to respond. He didn't much like the idea of going back out to face
Chimolitha, however. "I'll eat you!" he threatened, hoping to chase the man away.
"No, you won't," Joooms said and he climbed onto Thug's head. "Let's go," he ordered.
"I won't," Thug grumbled. A moment later a ball of flame exploded under his belly, and Thuganlitha
bolted out of the stables, content that here, at last, was a man who could enforce his directives.
As they rumbled down the main street, Joooms studied the action. He saw Ngarl and Qirl leading a
group of warriors toward the north and decided to follow them. "That way," he told Thuganlitha, and the
beast dutifully turned the corner. When they turned westward again on the next major artery, they
barrelled into the thick of a battle. Syth mod Syth-el had made good progress toward the castle, and the
city's defenders were going to be hard-pressed to stop them. The tugolith's appearance turned the tide
immediately.
It surprised Joooms to see Syth. He had never before seen him in battle. Although they'd been on
opposite sides many times, Mar-Yilot had always had Syth carefully cloaked. But Mar-Yilot was busy,
Joooms remembered with some satisfac-tion. He bore no animosity toward Syth. But Joooms had
battled Mar-Yilot all morning, and this was merely an extension of
that same struggle. His purpose was to do injury to the Autumn Lady, and nothing could injure her more
than the death of this warrior. "That man," Joooms said to Thuganlitha as he pointed. 'Trample him." The
tugolith gave a happy trumpet, and charged. Syth saw the monster coming. He glanced around for some
route of escape, but his way was blocked on all sides by horses and riders. Then he saw Joooms on the
tugolith's back and realized there was no chance. Other men were being trampled, but only because they
happened to be in the way. The beast was coming for him. Syth glanced up at the High Fortress, bidding
a bittersweet good-bye to his lady. When he looked back, monster and magician had disappearedjust
as he'd known they would. But he could still hear the rumble of the heavy beast's horrible hooves.
Mar-Yilot was ducking around a corner when it struck her that Joooms was gone. An inexplicable fear
clutched her. She dove recklessly for the nearest window, and beat the air with her wings, seeking a
breeze that would carry her over the battlefield.
"Where is she?" Terril demanded a moment later.
She has left. Good riddance! The High Fortress replied.
Terril, too, found a window, and flew out in pursuit. He had more speed than Mar-Yilot; but if she
caught a wind, those widespread wings would carry her off like a sail. If he could only brush her butterfly
body, he could stun her to the ground, but first he had to catch her.
The city lay spread out below her, and she marveled at what she beheld. The allied attackers had
reached the plateau! She sought out the banner of Sythia Isle and dropped toward them. Suddenly Terril
buzzed before her, cutting her off. She dodged around himan easy trick, since her own form of flight
was so erratic in contrast to his. The sugar-clawsp moved quickly, though, and he blocked her again. He
swooped toward her, trying desperately to brush her with his purple shell. Again she fluttered aside.
When Terril buzzed toward her again, she was ready. She timed her transformation perfectly. There, in
midair, she took her human shape and clapped the insect between her two palms. "Got you!" she shouted
as again she donned her altershape. Then she glided onward toward the pennants of Syth. The body of
Terril the twin-killer plummeted from the sky and smashed through a housetop. He was already dead,
however. He'd thought his last thought within the stinking body he despised and died as a squashed
insect.
Mar-Yilot soared above the skirmish, frantically scanning the faces of the living. Things were going badly
for Syth's men. The city's defenders were driving them back toward the edge of the cliff. Mar-Yilot made
no effort to protect them. She had other concerns that drove her desperately on, fluttering back and forth
above the heads of the battlers. Her hope was fading fast. Then she saw his body and dived toward it.
She alighted beside him, a woman again, and knelt to touch his face. "Syth," she called quietly. "Syth."
The battle still swirled around her, but she was oblivious to it as she called his name over and over and
stroked his thick black hair. Only a tugolith could have so utterly crushed and ruined his hand-some
body. And she'd not been here to protect him! She dropped her head to his chest to listen. Was it wishful
thinking, or was there a faint rhythm still to his heart?
"My Lady!" pleaded a voice nearby, and she glanced up to see a warrior from the Isle reaching out his
free hand in sup-plication. '"Autumn Lady, defend us!" he cried as a pair of Ngari's swordsmen fell upon
him.
Mar-Yilot blinked. She knew what Syth would do. Syth would help. But she was not Syth. She was
Mar-Yilot, and her first and only concern was preserving her husband's fragile hold on life. Ignoring the
warrior's pleas, she pulled a magic cloak around Syth and herself. Then she bent her head across his
chest and wept with mingled fear and relief.
It snowed. Large, fluffy flakes drifted out of the sky. On the plain below, the tugoliths frolicked in
excitement. Gerrig could have seen them if he'd looked over his shoulder. He and those with him had
been driven near to the edge of the cliff. He had no time, though, to look at anything save the weapons
that sliced toward him.
The snow made the cobbled streets slick. Between parries, he shifted his feet in search of more secure
footing. All around him men were slipping. Some never had the chance to get back up. Others had
already taken too many steps backward and fallen off the High Plateau. Gerrig certainly would have pan-
icked if he'd had a chance to think about it, but he was too busy surviving to think at all. He could see
Bronwynn about thirty feet in front of him. She was still mounted and still dealing misery to anyone with
the temerity to challenge her. But the burst of power, the magical explosion that Gerrig and his com-rades
kept expecting, had still not materialized. She was prov-ing to be a wonderful warrior, but at the moment
they needed her to be much more.
Syth's flanking attack had evidently collapsed. Mari de-fenders swarmed in from the right side. The top
of the Down Road was also to Gerrig's right, and a quick glance that way told him that soon the enemy
would control it, cutting off any possibility of retreat. He longed for an intermission, but none was
forthcoming. Suddenly the screams behind him took on a very different quality, and he looked around to
see what caused the change.
He saw, yet didn't see. Something huge and very noisy was coming around the northern rim, but it was
also completely invisible. Gerrig could see the terrified warriors it was knocking over the cliff, as well as
those it trampled underfoot. But he couldn't see the beast itself. "Magic," he gasped, and the Mari he'd
been fighting grunted agreement. Gerrig glanced around to see that his opponent, too, was staring at the
spectacle. He brought his sword scything around across the other man's un-protected belly, chopping a
deep gash there. Soon the cobbled street was even more slippery; but, at least for a moment, he was
free. He stepped carefully toward his right to get a better view.
It had to be a tugolith. Gerrig didn't know much about them, other than what he'd learned today. But he
had heard the story of how Pelmen was almost pulled apart by a pair of these beasts and how quick wits
and a smooth tongue got him free. Gerrig believed himself to be at least as quick-witted as his old acting
partner, and even more loquacious. Perhaps he could turn that talent to advantage?
Certainly somebody had to do something. The cloaked mon-ster was drawing very near. Gerrig realized
he'd taken refuge in the shadow of another tugolith, the beast that had led Bron-wynn up the Down
Road. With a boldness born of years of facing potentially hostile audiences, Gerrig tapped Chimolitha on
the hind leg. "Excuse me?" he called.
Chimolitha had been at peace until she felt this annoying tapping. She turned around to see what was
causing it, very nearly crushing Gerrig in the process. "What?" she demanded, dropping one enormous
eyes down to stare the player in the face.
Gerrig swallowed. Despite his own rather large size, this eye alone stretched from his waist to several
inches above his head. Ft was impressive, to say the least. He smiled. "Hello."
"Hello," Chimolitha answered politely.
"Ah... are you on our side?" Gerrig asked.
The tugolith was puzzled. "What side?"
"The side that Queen Bronwynn is on," Gerrig explained quickly.
"Who?"
"Queen Bronwynn! That lady there." Gerrig pointed.
Chimolitha looked over her shoulder. "1 like that lady," she said gravely.
"Good!" Gerrig said enthusiastically. "That's great to hear! You see that thing coming toward us?" he
continued, pointing now at the invisible Thuganlitha.
Chimolitha looked in that direction. "No," she replied hon-estly.
"That's right. Of course, you don't see it, but can't you see what it's doing?"
"What's if?" Chimolitha asked, frowning. Already this con-versation was well beyond her, but she kept
struggling to com-prehend.
"I think it's a tugolith," Gerrig murmured quietly. "Cloaked, of course, so there's a powershaper involved.
But it's destroy-ing our side! You've got to do something!" Indeed, the invisible beast was coming closer
by the second. Gerrig's voice reflected a trace of panic.
"What side?" the bewildered tugolith asked. She still hadn't figured out that concept, yet this strange man
kept on using it anyway.
"Our side! The friends of Queen Bronwynn! Look, that tugolith is right there! Do something!"
"Where?" Chimolitha asked, dancing with anxiety.
"Right there!" Gerrig pointed, moving away from her giant feet with no little anxiety of his own.
"I don't see!" Chimolitha cried frantically. This stress had unnerved her.
"No! It's invisible! But look where it's squashing those men!"
Chimolitha stopped jumping and frowned. "That's bad," she grunted.
"You better believe it," Gerrig earnestly agreed.
Chimolitha understood almost nothing of what was going on. This was a perplexing climax to what had
already been a most confusing day. But one thing did make sense. Where there was bad, there was
usually Thuganlitha. That was some-thing she could deal with. "Thuganlitha?" Chimolitha trum-peted.
"Are you there?"
"Yes," came a petulant reply out of nowhere.
"Don't talk," another disembodied voice commanded, and the sound of it caused Gerrig to quake in
terror. Granted, he'd recognized this as the handiwork of a shaper, but what little he knew about shaping
had convinced him that the magician himself would be somewhere miles away. This voice had clearly
come from the hidden tugolith's head! Gerrig swung around behind Chimolitha's hindquarters in the hopes
of not being noticed. He had courage to spare, but no one ever accused him of being foolhardy.
"Why can't I see you?" Chim asked Thug.
"I don't know," Thuganlitha replied, and once again the sorcerer's voice said:
"I told you not to talk!"
"But she asked me," Thuganlitha explained, despite the magician's shooshing whisper.
What Gerrig knew of magic he had learned from Yona Parmi, who'd gotten his information from
Pelmen. One thing Yona had emphasized stuck now in Gerrig's mind. A power-shaper could only do one
thing at a time. Whoever sat on the back of that beast was shielding himself and the tugolith from view.
As long as the shaper was busy doing that, Gerrig could feel relatively safe. That gave the player an idea.
"Thuganlitha, you are bad," Chimolitha announced.
"I like bad," Thug agreed pugnaciously.
"I'm going to horn you."
"I'll horn you first!"
"Be quiet, both of you!" Joooms shouted. "Neither of you
shall horn the other! You must cease this arguing and trample the remainder of these golden-mailed
warriors!"
"What's golden?" Thuganlitha asked.
"Trampling men is bad!" Chimolitha shouted, frowning re-provingly.
"Only if you trample on the wrong men!" Joooms instructed. "It's good if you trample on theaugh!"
"Man?" Thuganlitha said, "something is climbing on me." But the tugolith's warning came too late.
Gerrig's blind sword thrust had struck soft flesh, and Joooms was wearing no armor. The shaper fell from
his perch, clutching his rump, and im-mediately magician and tugolith alike became visible to all. Gerrig
never saw the dark-skinned wizard alter his shape and skitter away, leaving a piece of his tail behind to
thrash in the snow. The actor was too busy rolling across the cobblestones, away from those stamping
hooves.
At the sight of Thuganlitha before her, Chimolitha had trum-peted and charged.
They crossed horns. Those mighty tusks clacked together with the jarring impact of a pair of tree trunks.
Up the street, where Bronwynn fought on, the battle raged unabated. But the combatants who were
clustered around the top of the Down Road stopped fighting and searched for a place to hide while this
battle of behemoths unfolded.
The horns clacked together again, the sound accompanied by a pair of tugolith bellows. The two beasts
began circling one another, their huge eyes bloodshot with rage. This was an old grudge, and the battle
had long been delayed. They'd never liked each other from the day their mother calfed them, and all
toleration had vanished in the violent events of the morning. They circled. Then Thug lunged forward.
He'd always been impulsive, and never as bright as his sister. She'd stepped aside, turning her head to
gore him as he thundered past. He wheeled about, screaming in pain and frustration, and launched
another charge at her. When she tried to skip away again he moved with her. He buried his horn three
feet into her fore-quarters, and it was Chim's turn now to cry.
Thug backed up and took aim again. Chim was wounded now, and moving more slowly. He darted for
her side, and only her quick leap forward prevented Chim from taking an-other devastating puncture. As
it was, he didn't miss her completely. A new streak of blood marked her hindquarters. But she gave
something back in return. Angled as she was, Chim couldn't get her horn into him, but she could swing
her head. She slung it around, slamming it into his hind leg. Thug wasn't cut, but he was bruised, an
Chimolitha swung back to face him head on. They trumpeted their challenges, and once more Thuganlitha
charged. Chimolitha wisely stepped to the other side this time. Thuganlitha raced past her unchecked,
and launched himself out into space. He'd run off the top of the High Plateau.
Chimolitha whirled around to face him. She was greatly surprised when he wasn't there. "Thuganlitha?
Thuganlitha! Why can't I see you? Are you there? Thuganlitha!" Certain that her antagonist was once
again playing tricks on her vision, she wandered off around the northern rim, calling the name of an
adversary who could no longer hear at all.
Behind her, the interrupted battle resumed. Now, however, things were worse than ever for Bronwynn's
beleaguered band. They were completely encircled, and Janos was tightening the noose.
CHAPTER TWENTY
The Opening Gate
Rosha paused before the door, battling his memory and his fear. The last time he'd stood here, he'd been
an arrogant fool. Was he any different now? He and Mar-Yilot had never dis-cussed what they would do
if he got this farperhaps because neither of them expected he would. Was she covering him at this
moment? He wished he could understand the speech of the walls.
He was but a plaything of powers, he thought to himself, but he felt no bitterness at thatonly an aching
pain that he had managed to come so far but was so unequal to the task. If Pelmen were only here, he
would
What would Pelmen do? The answer hit Rosha with a shock of realization. Pelmen would do nothing.
Pelmen would let the Power do it.
Suddenly the young warrior felt new strength in his arms and new breath in his lungs. He charged
forward. He slammed through Flayh's door and leaped to the center of the room, swinging his great
sword before him in a grand arc. Anyone seated there would have been decapitated immediately. Of
course, no one was.
"Was that your entire plan?" a voice asked from the corner, and Rosha whirled to face Flayh once again.
Then he froze as he watched a beautiful ball of green flame explode before him. His sword slipped from
his fingers. A chill crawled up his body, starting in his toes and numbing him slowly from the floor up. As
it touched his throat it choked off his voice; as it touched his mind it erased all possible options of escape.
It left only a portion of his thought processes freeenough for him to recognize what was happening to
him.
Then he began to see the fears and miseries of all mankind become a vivid part of his own experience.
Failure, hatred, disappointment, disease, griefhe participated vicariously in every horror. The most
telling burden of all was his realization that he was powerless to change it, and that he was just as lost as
all of those whose cries of misery he had heard. This was the dread, the true dread that had condemned
Lord Syth to days of hell. Now it consumed Rosha. He wanted to scream, but that release was denied
him. There was no release available. "That was it?" Flayh asked pleasantly. "To rush in here, whirling a
sword about? What foolishness. What waste! Oh, not for me. Those bodies you left on the stairs are no
concern of mine. But what a waste for you. All that effort, with not a thing to show for it." Flayh paced
around Rosha and picked his book up off the lectem. "I was just about to depart when the castle told me
of how the little slaver had knifed his master in the back. Such treachery intrigued me. Then I grew
curious, wondering just how you planned to challenge me. I thought you must certainly have some other
stratagem besides the one that failed so miserably the last time you came leaping into this
room. How anticlimactic. I'm disappointed. On the other hand, you've never impressed me as a man of
subtle thought."
The sorcerer walked to the black drapes and threw them aside. He winced at the bright light that
streamed in the win-dow. Down in the city it was still snowing; but here above the clouds, the sun burned
brilliantly.
"Your friend Pelmen has just revealed his location to me, so I must be off. And you, my insistent young
gadfly, must be off as well. Of course, you left by air the last time, too," Flayh said as he opened the door
to the balcony. "But that was through the back window, and you fell into the reservoir. Re-markable,
how you managed to clear the wall. Perhaps you'll clear the front battlements today! Of course, there's
no lake on the front side of this fortress. Only cobbled streets." Flayh turned back to Rosha and
summoned him with a wave of his hand. "Come along," he said. "Jump off."
Rosha had no control over his muscles. They now took all orders directly from the powershaper. His
legs walked obedi-ently to the opened door and onto the balcony. There they climbed the small
balustrade.
Like the frantic flutterings of a trapped bird, Rosha's mind sought some means of survival. Abruptly,
however, a calm settled upon him, a peace the young warrior could not account for. He was in dread, yet
he was also in the presence of the Power, for the Power was present in him. In that moment Rosha
tossed his need for self-control aside and surrendered to the future. Come what might, he suddenly
understood the shaping of the Power. Everything was all right. He watched disinter-estedly as Flayh
caused his legs to throw him off the tower. Then he was falling...
Try as she might, Bronwynn couldn't make the magic come. She vented her frustration on a string of
foes, yet she made no more progress toward her goal. As her warriors dwindled in number, she began to
look behind more than she looked ahead, hoping for some sign of reinforcements coming up the Down
Road. Only a fraction of her army had made it up the hill, and she'd not seen General Joss since he
turned aside to regroup for the first assault. But the men of the Mar now held the top of the road, and
Mari supporters lined the cliffs. Without a tugolith to lead Joss up, any attempt to scale the heights would
be senselessin the general's own words, suicidal.
The queen had started applying that same description to her own situation. Hopelessness stole its way
into her spirit, and her arm felt the immediate effects. Suddenly it lost the elas-ticity, the wiry toughness
that had allowed her to sling the sword from side to side all day. She reined her horse away from the
fight, seeking refuge in the midst of her faltering force. Her arm dangled limply as she sucked in air,
wishing she had some new inspiration to suck in along with it. A moment later, a new wave of sound
deepened her despair the Maris who stood along the cliff were all looking downward and were
cheering wildly.
"The tugoliths have returned to their bloody business," she mumbled to herself. That's why Joss hadn't
come. The beasts were nothing but huge children. Left to their own devices, they would behave as any
group of unsupervised children might with utmost cruelty. And she could do nothing about it.
The cheers swelled in volume. Bronwynn hung her head in defeat. Then her defiant spirit surged back,
and she jerked up to glare savagely at the Mari warriors clustered around the top of the Down Road.
Suddenly they were falling back before the object of their adulation, and Bronwynn saw a new troop of
warriors gallop onto the High Plateau. Leading that charge was Dorlyth mod Karis, riding upon the steel
shoulders of Pelmen's old horse.
Dorlyth had long been a Mari hero. Since leading his people to victory in the Battle of Westmouth, his
story had taken on the proportions of a legend. The rumors of his death had trav-eled widely, but many
had disbelieved. Now those who'd scorned the story crowed aloud in their triumph. King Pahd had
fallen, and golden-mailed invaders fought in the very heart of the High City. But here was Dorlyth mod
Karis, come to lead the Mar to victory once again! Little wonder the people of the city cheered. They
were perplexed, however, to see golden warriors riding up behind him. Side by side with Ferlyth came a
tall, grim-faced soldier in armor the color of sun!
"General Joss," Bronwynn breathed, and she swung her weary horse and rode wildly out to meet them.
All around her, the battle ceased as Mari eyes turned expectantly to watch Dorlyth cut this woman from
her saddle. The watchers were astonished when Bronwynn and Dorlyth saluted each other and reined
their mounts around to face the fortress.
"You're just in time!" she cried in relief.
"Maybe," he grunted. "Maybe not. Where's Rosha?"
"There!" she shouted, flinging her arm around to point to-ward the castle.
"Then let's go!" Dorlyth shouted, and Minaliss sprang for-ward. The ranks of puzzled Maris parted to let
them fly past, and soon the great war horse led the invaders to the foot of the High Fortress.
Bronwynn gazed upward, trying to penetrate the mist. The instant she saw the body dropping, she knew
who it was. "Rosha!" she screamed in terror and grief. Suddenly Bronwynn leaped into the sky.
She was aware of the wings on her back and the scales on her flanks, but she paid them no heed. The
exultation over at last finding her altershape would have to wait. At this moment, she was a golden
dragon with a single purposeto catch her lover before he struck the ground.
As quickly as she thought it, it was done. Rosha landed between her shoulder bladesright between her
wings. The impact knocked the breath out of her and nearly slammed her to the ground. She screamed
again, in pain this timea rau-cous, shrill cry unintelligible in human speech. Then she was rising again,
soaring upward, and Rosha was safely with her at last.
"A dragon!" she thought to herself. "My altershape is a dragon!" And the joy of that thought carried her
up through the cloud and out of it, into the sunlight above. She glanced down at herself and marveled.
She wasn't a very big dragon, true, but she was a dragon just the same. And what other powershaper in
all the world could boast such an altershape! She glided in a lazy curve around the castle's uppermost
spires and uttered a screech of total joy. Then she dropped back into the clouds, flying with an expertise
born of instinct down to rejoin Dorlyth and Joss on the ground.
It was fortunate that she'd chosen that moment to descend. An instant before she touched down, her
dragon-form disap-peared, and the young queen and her lover bounced uncere-moniously across the
pavement.
Bronwynn quickly got up onto her skinned knees and looked at Dorlyth in shock. "What happened?"
she gasped.
In somber silence, Pelmen and Serphimera had built an altar. It wasn't muchjust a pile of rocks
stacked against a stone shelf that jutted up from the cave floor. But as they stood beside it, their shadows
thrown across it by the radiant object that glowed at their backs, this poor altar seemed to them the
holiest spot in the universe. Here they would sacrifice their love and their future in order to redeem the
past.
In that moment, it seemed worth it all to both of them. They were, after all, believers, and the Power in
which they trusted had cleansed their spirits through an ecstatic experience of its presence. Purity hung in
the air like acrid smoke. Nothing about the world outside the cave seemed real any longer; true reality
had localized in this place and focused upon this rough, rocky ground.
"It's time," Pelmen said. He climbed onto the altar and stretched out on his back. Serphimera glided
wordlessly to her feet. She pivoted around, and her eyes fixed intently on the pointed crystal object. She
stepped to it and lifted it gently in her hands, thrilling to its touch. Then she spun again and walked
gracefully back to Pelmen's side. "In the heart," he said. She turned the crystal point downward and
raised it over her head to strike.
"Stop!" commanded a voice behind her, and Serphimera whirled around in surprise. For one brief
instant, hope flared within her. Nothing would please her more than a stay of execution. But the sight of
the figure standing in the cave's mouth caused her expression to harden. She felt a chill tingle through her
toes. She ignored it, and turned back to her ritual task.
Pelmen was gone. The altar was empty. She gasped in sur-prise and gasped again when his voice cried
up from the altar, "Strike!" By the time it registered with her that, while she couldn't see him, he still was
there, she no longer held the crystal thorn. A ball of blazing fire had knocked it from her grasp. She
scrambled after it.
"Leave it!" Flayh cried, as he jumped across the cave. When the woman would not obey, he exploded
another ball of flame in her face, setting her back on her heels. He couldn't fathom
how she'd deflected his spell of dread, but it didn't matter. She was obviously responsive to simple fire.
He raced to the gleaming object and grabbed for it. Other, invisible hands closed on it at the same
moment and struggled to jerk it away. Flayh won the contest, but only briefly. A fist cracked across his
jaw and sent him spinning to the ground. Once again the object bounced away. Another fist struck him,
and Flayh roared with anger. This was foolishness. He cloaked himself and bounded after the glistening
object. It shot into the air, and Flayh tackled the empty space below it. His arms closed around Pelmen's
legs, tripping him to the floor.
Pelmen landed heavily on several sharp rocks projecting from the cave floor and he groaned in pain. He
couldn't hold onto the large gem. It flew away and lodged against the wall. Flayh vaulted toward it.
Pelmen couldn't see his opponent, but he heard and felt Flayh's movements. He responded by twisting
onto his back and throwing his legs into the air. They tangled together with Flayh's, and Pelmen heard the
crunch as his opponent took a heavy tumble.
Serphimera crouched beside the altar. Her face and hands burned horribly, but what most concerned
her were her eyes. She could hear the shapers struggling but couldn't see them. The afterimage of the
flash still partially blinded her, and she worried about permanent damage. She and her lover were in the
midst of a struggle. She needed her sight to aid him.
The two shapers rolled apart. Both kept themselves cloaked. Both plotted their shortest route to the
magical object, while each tried to outguess the other.
Flayh acted first. Pelmen saw the other wizard briefly appear and immediately disappear again. He
lunged for Flayh and grabbed only air. Recovering quickly, he dodged to the side and fastened his gaze
on the glowing jewel.
"Here, Pelmen," a voice said from the cave's mouth, and Pelmen jerked his head around to look.
"And here," it spoke again, this time from beyond the altar.
"And here," it said a third time, now from a corner of the cave not three feet from where Pelmen stood.
Pelmen was still cloaked in invisibility and had no wish to give himself away. He swivelled his head
slowly, to keep the collar of his robe from rustling. He saw Flayh standing next to him, smiling
grotesquely toward the center of the cavern, light reflecting off his bald, blue pate.
"You see I can be anywhere" Flayh began, but he was soon interrupted. A fist split his blue-tinted lip
and bloodied his mouth. He howled with rage and leaped magically to the far side of the room, terribly
incensed that bad luck had po-sitioned him within Pelmen's striking distance. "I can be any-where I
choose in a moment!" Flayh finished, his smile gone. He bolted out of that spot into another and
continued, "That's how I came to be here, Pelmen. Moments ago I was in my tower in Ngandib." Flayh
cloaked himself and put up his fists to shield his face. He listened carefully, but Pelmen made no reply.
Flayh turned his attention toward the treasure and watched it a moment. It didn't move. He tiptoed out
of that spot, ex-pecting at any moment to collide with his invisible foe. So this was shaper battle, Flayh
thought to himself. He wasn't sure he liked it.
Serphimera was up on her knees, staring around at the empty cavern. She could see now. The patterns
of light and shadow were different, since the source of their light had shifted over to the wall. She'd come
to realize that it was through no fault of her vision that she couldn't see the shapers. They were hidden
from one another and from her. At the moment, there was little she could do to help Pelmen except keep
quiet. The shapers were using silence as a weapon. She didn't know what effect it might be having on
them, but to her it was tortuous.
Flayh broke the tension. "You are skilled, Pelmen, in forc-ing others to play your game. But isn't it rather
childish? You've bloodied my lip like a schoolboy. Doesn't it strike you as silly for the two foremost
powershapers in the world to resort to bare knuckles?"
As Flayh spoke, Serphimera felt a reassuring hand on her shoulder. She almost reached up to pat it.
Such a gesture would surely draw Flayh's eye.She fought the temptation as Flayh continued. "Very well.
If you so choose, follow my voice and strike me again. Come ahead. I've chosen to battle you on my
terms."
The hand remained on Serphimera's shoulder. Pelmen was not responding to this challenge. Flayh's
image flickered into view and abruptly disappeared again. The voice continued from
another part of the cave. "I know why you're here. Those poor, howling beasts outside have given you
away. They wanted me to free them, you realize. When 1 wouldn't, they sought out you. And you,
replete with moral obligation and ethical sen-sibility, naturally have agreed."
"It had nothing to do with the dogs," Serphimera said, and Pelmen's invisible hand clenched slightly on
her shoulder. She assumed he was trying to silence her, but she saw no need to be quiet now. After all,
Flayh could see her clearly.
"Ah," Flayh said. "The woman with the healing touch, I assume? None other than our crazed,
dragon-loving priestess. What an unlikely couple! The two of you make a formidable alliance. You
realize, of course, that if you follow through with your use of this object, your partnership will be
permanently dissolved?"
"We think it's worth the price," the woman responded se-renely. She wondered why Pelmen didn't act.
Flayh chuckled. "Serphimera, you're so transparent. Keep me talking while your lover prepares to
subdue me, isn't that your intention? But I'm talking to him. Pelmen, is it worthwhile to you? Certainly
you'll be killed; you've already accepted that sacrifice. But do you want to see her killed, too? She will
be, you know. Think of itall those powers my artistry has ren-dered into canine form, along with all the
other powers who choose to go, departing in a single instant through that little crystal object. Why, the
power vacuum that creates will lift the top off this mountain. It will take us all. And tell me now, is all this
necessary just to defeat me?"
Pelmen spoke. "Your ego is enormous, Flayh."
"Ah-ha!" Flayh crowed. "So he does have a voice."
"I'm not surprised that you believe history revolves around you. It's a common fault of man. And you,
Flayh, for all your power, are certainly common."
Flayh's laughter rang out of another section of the cave. Pelmen's hand left Serphimera's shoulder. She
immediately felt lonely.
"So you're doing all this out of purer, grander motives, is that it?" Flayh asked. "Would you like to tell me
what you hope to achieve?"
"We'd like to change man."
Flayh laughed again. This time he seemed genuinely amused.
"Now who's being egocentric? History revolves not around Flayh, oh no. It centers instead on Pelmen
the Player!" When Pelmen did not respond, Flayh went on scornfully, "You think this act of yours will
accomplish that?"
"We believe so."
"How? A few words muttered in darkness, a ritual blood-letting, an explosion on a distant mountain
peak? Why should that change man? It will please those hounds out there, no question about that. It will
suck away my power and Mar-Yilot's and your own. But it won't change man. Most people pay no
attention at all to the powers. Magic won't be missed. And power will revert back to where it resided
before your interferenceto the hands of the Merchant League. You won't change man, Pelmen. You'll
only exalt mediocrity. There'll no longer be means for a man to soar to the heights."
"You're wrong, Flayh. Quite wrong. But I doubt you could comprehend the joys of soaring under the
Power's control."
"Ridiculous," Flayh grunted. "Meaningless words. Your powers arc great, Pelmen, but greatest of all is
your power of self-delusion. Your time in Lamath affected your mind. You've been influenced by those
fanatics who hungered only to be swallowed by the dragon. What a fool you are, Pelmen, to have had
such power and wasted it in foiling me! You could have been king over three lands at once! Now I will
be, instead. Because, while you've agonized over the responsibilities of power, I've learned how to use
it."
"As you see," he finished, and once again his voice had shifted over a wide space in an instant. "You
surely understand by now that I could, at any moment, dart over to that beautiful object you've labored
so hard to assemble, snatch it up, and begone with it back to my tower."
"Why don't you?" Pelmen asked.
"Because it seems evident I must kill you first. Otherwise I should have to contend with your repeated
attempts to over-throw me. Is that not so? And I must remove dear Serphimera from the picture as well,
for who can say? She may have the power in her fingertips to resurrect the dead. While I have you here
together, it would be inefficient of me not to dispose of you both. Inefficient and dangerous to the new
state."
"Meaning yourself," Pelmen said.
"Of course. But don't fear too much for the land's future,
Pelmen. I will be a benevolent despot. I can be a good ruler when my authority is not being regularly
challenged."
"But that's just the problem, isn't it, Flayh?"
"What do you mean?"
"There will always be someone to threaten you."
"You think so?" Flayh asked. Then the light disappeared.
While the two men had argued, Serphimera had decided to act. She was tired of being the only
participant in this con-frontation who could be seen. She'd remedied that, creeping unnoticed to the
glowing object, snatching it up and hiding it beneath her voluminous robes. She kept her grip on it,
though, so she was ready to wield it as a weapon.
Pelmen and Flayh both shouted in surprise and dashed to-ward the spot where the jewel had glowed.
Serphimera had turned her body toward the source of Flayh's voice, and now she felt Flayh brush against
her. How did she know it was he? Smell, perhaps? The boniness of his body, so different from that of
her lover? Somehow she knew, and she stabbed upward with the object, burying its point deeply and
drawing a scream from the pierced shaper. She jerked it free and stabbed again, this time toward what
she thought was his throat.
Flayh's death rattle both relieved and terrified her. The life force of a shaper had been expended, and
she had not been obliged to kill her love!
She was certain, however, that neither she not Pelmen would survive the aftermath. The mountain
rumbled and the dogs howled. For one horrible instant, she feared she'd be forced to witness the
cataclysmic events she'd set in motion. It was blessedly brief, however. She passed away into darkness.
Noise and light sundered the mountain. The bodies of thou-sands of dogs dropped lifeless into the snow.
The proud, ancient firs of the forest fell prostrate in obeisance. The earth trembled with excitement, the
clouds parted, and the sun and stars cho-rused together in jubilation. Myriads of powers, long lost and
lonely, were in that moment reunited with their Maker. And in the process, that fabulous jewel wrought
from six perfect diamonds was smashed into powder. The Power's gateway had opened and closed.
The world of men experienced a slight tremor. It was quickly forgotten.
Rosha sat up and looked at Bronwynn. "It's over," he said.
She'd expected him to be dazed and shaken, but he was alert and very much in control of himself. His
eyes troubled her, however, as they met hers. They showed unspeakable suffering and great calm at the
same time. "What happened?" she asked again.
"Didn't you feel it?" Rosha asked. "The magic passed. That's why you lost your altershape and why I lost
the dread."
"The dread!" Bronwynn gasped in horror. "Flayh laid a dread spell on you?"
"He didat the same moment the Power took me. And I was aware of all that happened while I lay on
your back."
Bronwynn studied him doubtfully. This wasn't the Rosha she'd known. He was different. As he climbed
to his feet, there was an attitude of confidence and certainty about his move-ments. Somehow, he'd
finally found himself, and she wasn't sure she liked the change.
But as he reached out to pull her to him and kiss her soundly, she decided she did like it. This was the
Rosha she'd always wanted.
"I hate to interrupt..." Dorlyth spoke beside them, and Rosha whirled around, delighted shock on his
face.
"Father!" he shouted. Holding Bronwynn in his left arm, he reached out with his right to return Dorlyth's
embrace. "They told me you were dead!"
"I thought I was, too. But you know how these shapers are, flying off to a new thing before they've
finished the old. Rosha, what is all this business? I don't understand at all."
Rosha sighed. "Pelmen and Serphimera remade the ancient weapon that was designed to kill the dragon.
And just before he made me jump, Flayh said he was going there to the Mount of Power. With the
Power in me, 1 was aware of the struggle of the three of them for the weapon. Serphimera got it and
sacrificed Flayh. Magic departed at that instant, and the top of the mountain blew off. We'll search, of
course, but I'm certain all three were destroyed."
Silence greeted his words. Then Dorlyth whispered, "Pel-men gone!"
"And all magic departed," Bronwynn murmured, her gaze far away.
Rosha gave his wife a quick squeeze and then turned to the
crowd clustered around themMaris mingled with the invaders who had been locked with them in a
deadly struggle only minutes before. "Mar-Yilot," he barked. "Has anyone seen Mar-Yilot?"
"I saw her briefly," a Mari warrior volunteered. "Lord Syth was trampled by a tugolith, and she covered
them both"
"Where was this?" Rosha asked. The man pointed. "You, you, and you," Rosha commanded members
of the crowd. "Go with this man, find them, and bring them to the castle. You others, start looking among
the fallen. We'll bury the dead later, but the wounded must be treated now."
He didn't wait to see if his orders were obeyed, but turned to look up at the High Fortress. "Mar-Yilot
burned away the stairway," he muttered to himself. "But there must be someone inside." He marched
toward the stable entrance, and people parted to let him pass.
The stable was filled with ashes. Rosha stepped over them to gaze up through the castle's open floor.
"Anyone up there?" he called.
"I'm here," a voice answered, and the slaver who'd stabbed Admon Faye tossed a rope down through
the hole.
"A slaver!" someone who'd followed Rosha snarled.
Rosha smiled grimly. "One who saved my life. Are there other slavers still there?"
"None to give you trouble," Tibb answered. "I let the slaves out of the pit and armed them. They took a
bit of vengeance. There's a winch here. Shall I draw you up?"
"In a moment," Rosha called. Then he turned to set the crowd to cleaning the stables and to finding
wood to rebuild the staircase. Minutes later, the group he'd sent to find Syth returned, carrying the Lord
of Seriliath on an improvised stretcher. Mar-Yilot followed.
"Is he alive?" Rosha asked.
"Barely," she muttered, her eyes averted. There was a sob in her voice as she looked down at her
unconscious husband. "And this time, there's no Serphimera to help him with her healing touch!"
"There's one here who can help him," a voice called from above. They all looked up to see a woman
peeking through the hole in the ceiling.
"Sarie?" Rosha asked. "Sarie Ian Pahd?"
"That's right," Sarie answered. "Let me send you the man who healed me."
A man came sliding down the rope to kneel quickly beside Syth.
"Wait!" Mar-Yilot ordered suspiciously, blocking the man's hands away from Syth. "Who are you?"
"My name is Tahli-Damen," he told her brightly. Clear eyes, freed from the blue haze with the end of
magic and spells, locked onto those of Mar-Yilot. "I'm from the Power."
There was the sound of massive feet pounding the ground outside, and the crowd cleared away from the
door. Chimolitha stepped carefully inside, with Gerrig sitting gingerly astride her horn.
"Gerrig!" Bronwynn shouted, clapping her hands. "You survived!"
"Yes, your Highness, thanks to this beast. I found her wan-dering around the streets. I thought she might
be able to help us in cleaning up."
"An excellent idea," Rosha said. Then, at someone's cry, he turned to see Syth mod Syth-el's eyes
fluttering open.
Syth tried to move his head, found he couldn't, and lay back. He peered curiously up into Rosha's face.
"Did we win?"
"We won," Rosha replied, his voice at once sad and proud. "But it cost us."
He looked around and saw that the crowd continued to grow as people from the city shoved their way
inside the stable. He raised his hands to get their attention and addressed them all:
"King Pahd is dead. He died honorably, defending his for-tress and his family. The intruder who
bewitched his family is gone for good. These golden-mailed warriors are merely guests in our city who
will soon be returning to their own land.
"Ngandib is once again a free city of the Mari confederacy and will remain so. Your contributions to her
defense will long be remembered. Let it be proclaimed through all the streets that the battle is over.
Tonight there is a true cause for cele-bration."
Dorlyth beamed with pride. Less than two years before, his son couldn't say a single sentence without
stumbling over his own tongue. Now he made speeches in the palace!
Rosha raised his gaze to the entrance to the palace. He nodded. "Perhaps we should get on with the
business..."
But the murmurs of approval from the crowd were turning to cheers. Then someone raised a shout:
"Rosha for citylord of Ngandib!"
"Rosha for king," another voice cried. "Hail King Rosha, who drove out the evil wizard!" More voices
picked it up, giving Rosha no time to correct the idea. Then it was a clamor from all.
By night, it was official. The new king stood with his queen at a palace window, watching the celebrating
crowds below. It was then a messenger bird arrived from Lamath.
"What does it say?" Bronwynn asked as Rosha stood frown-
ing over the note. . .
"It's from Erri," he told her. "He wants us to be king and queen of Lamath. He says it was his idea and
that it has finally been voted on. Oh, he also congratulates us on the victory."
Bronwynn nodded. "We'll have to accept. It was always Pelmen's dream to unite the One Land again.
But with three capitals, where will we live?"
"Dragonsgate," Rosha told her. "We won't have to reside there all the time, but it's the logical center of
the lands. That's why the dragon chose it."
CHAPTER TWENTY-ONE
Crowns
Spring had come by the time the crowning of the new king and queen of the One Land could be
arranged. But the months before had been busy ones.
The wreckage of the brief war had to be repaired, wounded required healing, and the tugoliths had to be
returned to Dolna. Above all, a search for the bodies of Pelmen and Serphimera had to be undertaken.
They were never discovered. The searchers found that the
top of the mountain had been blown off, and the bodies must have been blown to bits or buried under
the wreckage. But the remains of Flayh had been tossed to the bottom of the mountain, entangled with
the bodies of an immense pack of midnight black dogs. They left it where they'd found it.
Pahd's body was accorded full honors. Along with two empty coffins for Pelmen and Serphimera, his
casket was dropped from the top of the Rock of Tombs. Pahd slept at .last where he could never be
disturbed.
It was left to Kherda to plan the coronation, and the Prime Minister gloried in the task. He was
disappointed when Bronwynn vetoed his elaborate plans for a great scaffolding and platform, telling him
that the ledge of the dragon's cave was the right place. Hope revived briefly when he visited the place
and discovered its condition and the nauseating odor. But Bronwynn was adamant.
"It can be cleaned," she told him. "See to it."
Hordes of workmen were organized and induced to work at immense task. Kherda watched from a safe
distance. He soon discovered that, even allowing for some theft by the workers, the jewels mixed among
the muck would pay for the labor many times over. And he consoled himself with thoughts of the grand
palace he would design for the royal couple.
Even that plan collapsed when the great throne room inside the cave was discovered. In the end,
Kherda had to content himself with the building of an impressive stairway up to the cave.
But at last the day arrived.
The parades began, streaming into the Central Gate from each of the three mouths, with musicians from
each of the three lands struggling to outdo one another.
Lord Joss led the Golden Throng from Chaomonous. Kherda watched as the general climbed the
stairway to the entrance. His face registered only a slight shock as the remaining odor struck his nose, but
he took his place stoically.
Dorlyth, mounted on a strangely agitated Minaliss and ac-companied by Ferlyth and Bainer, led the Mari
lords. Syth was recovering, but still not strong enough for the journey. And Mar-Yilot, slowly learning to
cope with her loss of power, elected to remain with him. Even Janos put in an appearance. Maris and
Chaons regarded each other cautiously, but both
were glad hostilities were ended. New markets and trade were in all minds, now that the old merchant
monopolies had col-lapsed.
The arrival of the Lamathians caused barely a ripple of excitement. The ubiquitous pale blue robes were
a common sight now. But when the tugoliths advanced into the pass, Chaon and Mari alike took notice.
These were the newest wonders of the world. The huge beasts wore enormous smiles; with Thuganlitha
gone, there was much less quarreling.
Last of all, Rosha, Bronwynn, and Erri entered the pass at the same moment, each through a separate
mouth. They rode to the center of Dragonsgate, where they dismounted and em-braced. Then Erri led
the two young sovereigns up the stairway. Loud fanfares greeted their ascent.
"What is that? Erri muttered as he turned to smile and wave at the wildly cheering throng.
"That is dragon," Bronwynn said cheerfully. "Just a ghost of what it smelled like when I was here before.
Kherda promises it will all be gone after the final washing."
There were solemn vows to be made and oaths to be sworn. Then Erri took up one of the two identical
crowns and raised it above his head. Bronwynn knelt.
"I wonder what they think we're saying down there?" Rosha muttered.
Bronwynn chuckled. "The wisest words ever uttered, prob-ably."
"Very well then, let's say them. Remember the Power. All wisdom proceeds from that." Erri smiled and
placed the crown on her head.
Bronwynn got to her feet and waved, while the assembled nations cheered loudly. Then Erri picked up
the other crown and turned to Rosha. "Do you still feel pain from the memories of the dread?" he asked.
"Some," Rosha murmured as he knelt.
Erri nodded and pressed the crown down on Rosha's thick curls. "That may be good. Some dread may
be desirable in a leader. A long memory certainly must be."
Rosha stood to receive the adulation of the crowd. As he gazed down at the sea of faces, he murmured,
"Now can we go?"
"Not without saying good-bye," an unexpected voice said from behind them.
The three figures high above the crowd turned their backs on the throng in such precise unison that
everyone assumed it had been planned. Suddenly they disappeared into the cave. A moment later, Erri
emerged to step quickly down the stairs to the Prime Minister. "Kherda, what's next on the program?"
Kherda was flabbergasted. "Why, the recessional, of course"
"Not yet. Do something else."
"Butwhat?"
"Just stall. You know how, I'm sure." Erri started back up the stairs.
"Wait!" Kherda cried. "What are you discussing?"
Erri smiled mysteriously. "Secrets. Matters of faith," he said. Then he popped back inside the cave.
Kherda sighed, wishing they'd let him know before they changed the ritual. But he had the coronation to
control and little time for resentment. He called upon years of experience as a professional courtling and
stalled.
Erri found Pelmen embracing Bronwynn and Serphimera in a crushing hug from Rosha. "Where have
you been?" the new king of the One Land was demanding.
"On our way here," Serphimera answered. "At least, we've been for the last two weeks. Before that we
were-sleeping."
Bronwynn peered at Pelmen. "Where?"
"Underneath the mountain."
"How did you survive?" Erri asked.
"In your own words, remember the Power!" Pelmen looked at the three, smiling. "I assume that the
Power saved us."
"And the explosion?"
"I never heard the explosion. I woke in darkness with Ser-phimera beside me. It took us a while to
convince ourselves that we weren't some kind of shades, but then we started look-ing for a way out."
"We were in a tunnel of some kind," Serphimera added. "When we reached the end of it, we found
ourselves climbing out in the middle of the Great North Fir. Then we heard of the coronation and came
here to wait. We couldn't miss that."
"But how did you see to get out?" Rosha asked.
Pelmen shrugged. "We had light." He stretched out his hand
before him, and suddenly a globe of blue flame burst into life above his palm.
"Shaping!" Rosha whispered in shocked surprise. "Then magic isn't gone! Some of the powers haven't
left?"
"Some apparently never leave. They're just not ready for new discoverers."
Rosha and Bronwynn stared at their friends in surprised delight. Erri stood to one side, chuckling.
"We buried you," Rosha remembered suddenly. "We've got to tell the people you're alive!" He started
for the cave mouth. Pelmen grabbed his wrist and pulled him back.
"Please," Pelmen said quietly. "Don't do that."
"Why not?"
Pelmen looked at Serphimera. "It's very pleasant for us nowa welcome rest. Give us that. Then, after
you've moved into this underground castle, we'll find you from time to time. There are corridors that lead
to other entrances, and we can come and go without being noticed."
Rosha looked back and forth between them, then nodded slowly. "So be it," he said. He glanced at his
wife. "That's all right with you?"
Bronwynn smiled. "It is indeed."
"Good," Rosha said, he grabbed his wife and the prophet by their hands. "Come on. We've a coronation
to conclude." They started for the mouth of the old twi-beast's lair, but there Rosha paused and looked
over his shoulder.
"We'll see you later," he said firmly.
Pelmen the powershaper smiled. "We'll come."
Then the new King and Queen of the One Land stepped back into the sunshine to accept the rights and
responsibilities of their realm. As he smiled down at his new subjects, Rosha permitted himself a quick
glance over the shoulder. But Pel-man and Serphimera had already gone. His throat ached with a touch
of sorrow, but he quickly overcame it. This was a day of joy. He raised his hand high above his head,
and waved.
Glossary
Admon Faye: An obscenely ugly slaver and outlaw, chosen by Flayh to be head of security in the High
Fortress.
Agarnalath: A warrior of Lamath.
Asher Once Chieftain of Defense and Expansion of Lamath, he was eaten by Vicia-Heinox while helping
Pelmen to kill the beast.
Bainer: A Mari warrior allied to Syth and Mar-Yilot.
Barleb: Operator of the barge between the North Coast and Sythia Isle and a servant of Syth.
Belra: A Mari warrior, Citylord of Garnabel and Shurl of the Upper Coast, allied with Dorlyth against
Pahd mod Pahd-el.
Blez: One of the ancient trading houses participating in the Council of Elders, the merchant monopoly.
Blue flyer: A magical breed of bird used to carry messages over long distances.
Bronwynn: Queen of Chaomonous, wife to Rosha mod Dor-lyth, and long a friend of Pelmen
Dragonsbane.
Carlog. One of the larger cities of Ngandib-Mar, located in the Furrowmar region.
Cerdeb: A Mari leader from the Downlands region allied to Syth mod Syth-el.
Chanos: A lord of Ngandib-Mar loyal to King Pahd with a long personal grudge against Tuckad.
Chaomonous: "The Golden Land," the largest of the three na-tions clustered around Dragonsgate, ruled
by Queen Bron-wynn.
Chimolitha: "Chim," a pleasant-tempered tugolith who was involved in the near execution of Pelmen and
who helped him survive.
Chogi Ian Pahd-el: Mother of King Pahd mod Pahd-el and a powerful force in the administration of
Ngandib-Mar.
Clawsp: See Sugar-clawsp.
Danyilyn: A professional actress in Chaomonous and a close friend of Pelmen.
Dolna: Official handler of tugoliths in Lamath.
Downlands: One of the six regions of Ngandib-Mar, located far to the south in the area of Arl Lake.
Dorlyth mod Karis: Warrior, hero, father to Rosha mod Dorlyth and friend to Pelmen Dragonsbane. He
was made Jorl of the Westmouth by Pahd mod Pahd-el for his victory over Chaomonous.
Dragonfaith: The ancient religion of Lamath, centered on wor-ship of the two-headed dragon.
Dragonsgate: The central mountain pass connecting Lamath, Chaomonous and Ngandib-Mar, formerly
the home of Vicia-Heinox.
Drax: A three-sided table game played throughout the three lands, usually with wagers on the outcome.
Erri: The Prophet of Lamath and chief architect of the growth of the skyfaith, as well as the potential
ruler of Lamath.
Ferlyth mod Kerlyth: Cousin and ally of Dorlyth mod Karis and Jorl of the Furrowmar.
Flayh: Once the ruling elder of the trading house of Ognadzu, now an immensely powerful wizard
residing in the High Fortress of Ngandib. His altershape is the dog.
Furrowmar: One of the six regions of Ngandib-Mar composed of the highland farmlands in the central
west.
Garnabel: A large city in Ngandib-Mar, located in the Furrow-mar.
Gerrig: A professional actor in Chaomonous and close friend of Pelmen.
Golden Throng: The army of Chaomonous.
Hann: One of the merchant families participating in the Council of Elders, the merchant monopoly.
High Fortress of Ngandib: The ancient castle situated on a spur jutting from the High Plateau that was
the home of Pahd, which was brought magically to life by Flayh.
High Plateau: The outcropping of rock in central Ngandib-Mar upon which the city of Ngandib was
built.
Imperial House of Chaomonous: The royal palace of the ruling family of Chaomonous, brought to life
before the making of the dragon by the wizard Nobalog.
The Isles: One of the six regions in Ngandib-Mar, composed of all the islands off the North Coast in the
far north of the land.
Jagd: Ruling Elder of the trading family of Uda, residing in Chaomonous.
Janos mod Jerrid: Cousin to Pahd mod Pahd-el, Jorl of the Nethermar, and ally with Pahd against the
rebels of the North Coast.
Joooms: A Mari powershaper of dark complexion and secretive nature, known for his greed. His
altershape is the lizard.
Jorl: Administrative head of one of the six regions of Ngandib-Mar and a hereditary title. Upon the death
of a Jorl without an heir, the title is conferred upon an individual of the King's choice.
Joss: General of the Golden Throng, long-time Lord of War for Chaomonous, appointed Ambassador
to Lamath by Queen Bronwynn.
Kam: A lord of Ngandib-Mar whose lands touch the base of the High Plateau, and who is allied with
Syth against Pahd.
Kherda: Prime Minister of the land of Chaomonous.
Lamath: The large coastal kingdom north of Dragonsgate, long ruled by a weak king in consultation with
the leaders of the Dragonfaith, now ruled by the Prophet of Lamath.
Laph mod Parem: Ruling Elder of the merchant house of Hann in Ngandib-Mar and an ally of Syth mod
Syth-el.
Maliff: Falconer to Queen Bronwynn in the Imperial House of Chaomonous.
Maris: People of Ngandib-Mar.
Mar-Yilot: "The Autumn Lady," a sorceress of Ngandib-Mar and wife of Syth mod Syth-el. Her
altershape is the butterfly.
Mast: A squat, somewhat cowardly wizard of Ngandib-Mar. His altershape is the frog.
Minaliss: A powerful war horse once belonging to Pezi, later ridden by Pelmen and Bronwynn.
Mudgecurdle: A small furry creature looking much like a pleas-ant bunny but ejecting a horrible stench
when startled. Used as an epithet meaning "traitor" or "betrayer."
Naquin: Formerly the High Priest of the Dragonfaith (by he-redity, not conviction), later an initiate of the
skyfaith and a missionary sent by Erri to Chaomonous.
Nethermar: The rich, diamond-producing region of Ngandib-
Mar stretching from the Garnabel Bridge to the North Coast.
Ngandib: The capital city of Ngandib-Mar, sitting upon a high plateau in the center of the land. The city
lord is considered to be King of Ngandib-Mar.
Ngandib-Mar: The warlike, highland country to the west of Dragonsgate, rich in jewels and martial
tradition, and the land of magic. Also called simply "The Mar."
Ngarl: A Mari lord loyal to Pahd and his cousin Janos.
Nobalog: An ancient wizard from the time before the making of the dragon who brought the Imperial
House to life and wrote the spell-book that became the source of Flayh's knowledge.
Ognadzu: One of the two premier trading houses in the three lands and a leading participant in the
Council of Elders, the merchant monopoly. Its ruling elder is Flayh.
Pahd mod Pahd-el: City lord of Ngandib and King of Ngandib-Mar, a formidable swordsman. His chief
interest is in sleep-ing, allowing Flayh to usurp his power.
The Parks: One of the six regions of Ngandib-Mar, a heavily wooded area stretching northeastward
from the High Plateau to the Great North Fir.
Pelmen Dragonsbane: Formerly Pelmen the player and the Prophet of Lamath, renewer of the skyfaith
and killer of the dragon. A powershaper when in the Mar. His altershape is a falcon.
Pezi: An obese merchant of the House of Ognadzu, nephew to Flayh. An earnest, unprincipled
incompetent.
Pinter: Once a slaver and an outlaw, he died after the battle beneath the Imperial House of Chaomonous
in the arms of his companion, Tibb.
Pleclypsa: The largest city in the southern region of Chao-monous and the site of an annual dramatic
festival.
Powershaper: Anyone gifted with the ability to shape the pow-ers, but classically only those who, among
other talents, can change into an altershape.
Qirl: A Mari warrior loyal to King Pahd made Jorl of the Isles by Pahd's command.
Riganlitha: A curious but unassertive tugolith frequently har-assed by Thuganlitha.
Rosha mod Dorlyth: The son of Dorlyth, friend of Pelmen,
and husband to Queen Bronwynn of Chaomonous. Hero and bear's-bane.
Seriliath: One of the largest cities of Ngandib-Mar located in the Nethermar region on the North Coast.
Its city lord is Syth mod Syth-el.
Serphimera: The former priestess of the Dragonfaith, blessed with ecstatic visions and healing power.
The love of Pelmen Dragonsbane.
Sheth: An ancient powershaper from the time of the making of the dragon who failed in his attempt to
use the Power's gateway to kill the beast and was himself killed in the pro-cess.
Shurl: An office conferred by the king of Ngandib-Mar upon favored supporters.
Skyfaith: A renewal of the ancient, pre-dragon faith based on dependence upon the Power.
Strahn: A young Lamathian initiate of the skyfaith and the aide to Erri the prophet.
Sugar-clawsp: A small, purple-shelled, flying insect that exudes a chemical harmful to human skin
whenever it is aroused.
Syth mod Syth-el: Lord of Sythia Isle, his family home; Ci-tylord of Seriliath, and husband to Mar-Yilot,
he became the leader of a group of northern lords opposed to the nep-otism of King Pahd. A wise
leader and a good husband.
Tahli-Damen: Once the ruling elder of the trading house of Uda in Ngandib-Mar, now a blind initiate of
the skyfaith.
Terril: "The twin-killer," a Mari powershaper. A crafty, treach-erous man whose altershape is a
sugar-clawsp.
Thuganlitha: a mean-spirited, violent tugolith given to homing anyone or anything that displeases him.
Tibb: A small but nimble slaver and brigand from Lamath with a deep sense of personal loyalty.
Tuckad mod Pak: A Mari lord allied with Syth mod Syth-el and the City lord of Drabeld.
Tugolith: An enormous horned creature from the far north of Lamath who can carry on human
conversation at the level of a toddler.
Uda: One of the premier trading houses participating in the Council of Elders, the merchant monopoly.
Vicia-Heinox: 'The twi-beast," a two-headed dragon created in ancient times, who dominated the three
lands for a millennium from his home in Dragonsgate. He could talk in-telligently, and loved diamonds.
Wayleeth: Devoted wife of the merchant Tahli-Damen.
Westmouth: One of the six regions of Ngandib-Mar stretching eastward from the High Plateau to
Dragonsgate. A sparsely settled, hilly country with no major cities.
Yona Parmi: A professional actor and a close friend of Pelmen.
About this Title
This eBook was created using ReaderWorksŽPublisher 2.0, produced by OverDrive, Inc.
For more information about ReaderWorks, please visit us on the Web at
Extracted pictures